diff options
| author | Roger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org> | 2025-10-15 02:14:32 -0700 |
|---|---|---|
| committer | Roger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org> | 2025-10-15 02:14:32 -0700 |
| commit | dcef5476caa050de65396bbd369d52ab88ba70c0 (patch) | |
| tree | 2a15849bef50b9d17f2bfcf8b11fd095a8dd27d9 /24800.txt | |
Diffstat (limited to '24800.txt')
| -rw-r--r-- | 24800.txt | 12890 |
1 files changed, 12890 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/24800.txt b/24800.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..a422296 --- /dev/null +++ b/24800.txt @@ -0,0 +1,12890 @@ +The Project Gutenberg EBook of Darwin, and After Darwin (Vol. 1 and 3, of +3), by George John Romanes + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + + +Title: Darwin, and After Darwin (Vol. 1 and 3, of 3) + An Exposition of the Darwinian Theory and a Discussion of + Post-Darwinian Questions + +Author: George John Romanes + +Release Date: March 11, 2008 [EBook #24800] + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: ASCII + +*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK DARWIN *** + + + + +Produced by Marilynda Fraser-Cunliffe, LN Yaddanapudi and +the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at +http://www.pgdp.net + + + + + +[Illustration: Frontispiece-Charles Darwin] + + + + +DARWIN, AND AFTER DARWIN + +_AN EXPOSITION OF THE DARWINIAN THEORY +AND A DISCUSSION OF +POST-DARWINIAN QUESTIONS_ + +BY + +GEORGE JOHN ROMANES, M.A., LL.D., F.R.S. +_Honorary Fellow of Gonville and Caius College, Cambridge_ + +I +THE DARWINIAN THEORY + +FOURTH EDITION + +Chicago +THE OPEN COURT PUBLISHING COMPANY +1910 + + +The Illustrations of this book (with the exception of the Frontispiece +and the colored plate facing page 332) are copyrighted under the title +"Darwinism Illustrated." + +THE OPEN COURT PUBLISHING CO. + + +PRESS OF THE +BLAKELY-OSWALD PRINTING CO. +CHICAGO + + [Illustration: Letter to Mr. Hegeler + + Transcription: + + Ch. Ch. Oxford: + March 15th 1892. + + My dear Sir, + + As we have now agreed that + the Open Court Publishing Company is to + undertake the American edition of my + work entitled "Darwin and after + Darwin," I have much pleasure + in transferring to you the copyright + thereof, with all that this + includes. + + Thanking you very much for + the kindness and liberality which + have marked your conduct of these + negotiations, + + I remain, + + Yours very faithfully, + + George J. Romanes + + To + Edward C. Hegeler Esq. + La Salle, Ill. U. S.] + + + + +PREFACE + + +Several years ago Lord Rosebery founded, in the University of Edinburgh, +a lectureship on "The Philosophy of Natural History," and I was invited +by the Senatus to deliver the lectures. This invitation I accepted, and +subsequently constituted the material of my lectures the foundation of +another course, which was given in the Royal Institution, under the +title "Before and after Darwin." Here the course extended over three +years--namely from 1888 to 1890. The lectures for 1888 were devoted to +the history of biology from the earliest recorded times till the +publication of the "Origin of Species" in 1859; the lectures for 1889 +dealt with the theory of organic evolution up to the date of Mr. +Darwin's death, in 1882; while those of the third year discussed the +further developments of this theory from that date till the close of the +course in 1890. + +It is from these two courses--which resembled each other in comprising +between thirty and forty lectures, but differed largely in other +respects--that the present treatise has grown. Seeing, however, that it +has grown much beyond the bulk of the original lectures, I have thought +it desirable to publish the whole in the form of three separate works. +Of these the first--or that which deals with the purely historical side +of biological science--may be allowed to stand over for an indefinite +time. The second is the one which is now brought out and which, as its +sub-title signifies, is devoted to the general theory of organic +evolution as this was left by the stupendous labours of Darwin. As soon +as the translations shall have been completed, the third portion will +follow (probably in the Autumn season), under the sub-title, +"Post-Darwinian Questions." + +As the present volume is thus intended to be merely a systematic +exposition of what may be termed the Darwinism of Darwin, and as on this +account it is likely to prove of more service to general readers than to +professed naturalists, I have been everywhere careful to avoid assuming +even the most elementary knowledge of natural science on the part of +those to whom the exposition is addressed. The case, however, will be +different as regards the next volume, where I shall have to deal with +the important questions touching Heredity, Utility, Isolation, &c., +which have been raised since the death of Mr. Darwin, and which are now +being debated with such salutary vehemence by the best naturalists of +our time. + +My obligations to the Senatus of the University of Edinburgh, and to the +Board of Management of the Royal Institution, have already been +virtually expressed; but I should like to take this opportunity of also +expressing my obligations to the students who attended the lectures in +the University of Edinburgh. For alike in respect of their large +numbers, their keen intelligence, and their generous sympathy, the +members of that voluntary class yielded a degree of stimulating +encouragement, without which the labour of preparing the original +lectures could not have been attended with the interest and the +satisfaction that I found in it. My thanks are also due to Mr. R. E. +Holding for the painstaking manner in which he has assisted me in +executing most of the original drawings with which this volume is +illustrated; and likewise to Messrs. Macmillan and Co. for kindly +allowing me to reprint--without special acknowledgment in every +case--certain passages from an essay which they published for me many +years ago, under the title "Scientific Evidences of Organic Evolution." +Lastly, I must mention that I am indebted to the same firm for +permission to reproduce an excellent portrait of Mr. Darwin, which +constitutes the frontispiece. + +G. J. R. + +CHRIST CHURCH, OXFORD, +_April 19th, 1892._ + + + + +CONTENTS + + + PAGE + +CHAPTER I. +INTRODUCTORY 1 + +CHAPTER II. +CLASSIFICATION 23 + +CHAPTER III. +MORPHOLOGY 50 + +CHAPTER IV. +EMBRYOLOGY 98 + +CHAPTER V. +PALAEONTOLOGY 156 + +CHAPTER VI. +GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION 204 + +CHAPTER VII. +THE THEORY OF NATURAL SELECTION 251 + +CHAPTER VIII. +EVIDENCES OF THE THEORY OF NATURAL SELECTION 285 + +CHAPTER IX. +CRITICISMS OF THE THEORY OF NATURAL SELECTION 333 + +CHAPTER X. +THE THEORY OF SEXUAL SELECTION, AND CONCLUDING REMARKS 379 + + * * * * * + +APPENDIX TO CHAPTER V. 421 + +NOTE A TO PAGE 257 443 + +NOTE B TO PAGE 295 445 + +NOTE C TO PAGE 394 448 + +INDEX 451 + + + + +LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS + + + FIG. PAGE + + 1. Successive forms of Paludina, from the Tertiary deposits of + Slavonia 19 + + 2. Skeleton of Seal 52 + + 3. Skeleton of Greenland Whale 53 + + 4. Paddle of Whale compared with Hand of Man 54 + + 5. Wing of Reptile, Mammal, and Bird 56 + + 6. Skeleton of _Dinornis gravis_ 61 + + 7. Hermit crabs compared with the cocoa-nut crab 64 + + 8. Rudimentary or vestigial hind-limbs of Python 67 + + 9. _Apteryx Australis_ 69 + + 10. Illustrations of the nictitating membrane in various animals + named 75 + + 11. Rudimentary, or vestigial and useless, muscles of the human + ear 76 + + 12. Portrait of a young male gorilla 78 + + 13. Portrait of a young male child 79 + + 14. An infant, three weeks old, supporting its own weight 81 + + 15. Sacrum of Gorilla compared with that of Man, showing the + rudimentary tail-bones of each 82 + + 16. Diagrammatic outline of the human embryo when about seven + weeks old 83 + + 17. Front and back view of adult human sacrum 84 + + 18. _Appendix vermiformis_ in Orang and in Man 85 + + 19. The same, showing variation in the Orang 85 + + 20. Human ear 86 + + 21. Foetus of an Orang 87 + + 22. Vestigial characters of human ears 88 + + 23. Hair-tracts on the arms and hands of Man, as compared with + those on the arms and hands of Chimpanzee 90 + + 24. Molar teeth of lower jaw in Gorilla, Orang, and Man 93 + + 25. Perforation of the humerus (supra-condyloid foramen) in three + species of Quadrumana where it normally occurs, and in Man, + where it does not normally occur 95 + + 26. Antlers of stag, showing successive addition of branches in + successive years 100 + + 27. Fission of a Protozooen 107 + + 28. _Hydra viridis_, partly in section 111 + + 29. Successive stages in the division of the ovum, or egg-cell, + of a worm 113 + + 30. Ovarian ovum of a Mammal 121 + + 31. Amoeboid movements of young egg-cells 122 + + 32. Human ovum, mature and greatly magnified 123 + + 33. Stages in the formation of the polar bodies in the ovum of a + star-fish 125 + + 34. Fertilization of the ovum of an echinoderm 126 + + 35. Fertilization of the ovum of a star-fish 127 + + 36. Karyokinesis of a typical tissue-cell (epithelium of + Salamander) 129 + + 37. Study of successive changes taking place in the nucleus of an + epithelium-cell, preparatory to division of the cell 131 + + 38. Formation and conjugation of the pronuclei in _Ascaris + megalocephala_ 132, 133 + + 39. Segmentation of ovum 135 + + 40. The contents of an ovum in an advanced stage of segmentation, + drawn in perspective 135 + + 41. Formation of the gastrula of _Amphioxus_ 137 + + 42. Gastrulation 138 + + 43. Gastrula of a Chalk Sponge 139 + + 44. _Prophysema primordiale_, an extant gastraea-form 140 + + 45. Ideal primitive vertebrate, seen from the left side 143 + + 46. The same in transverse section through the ovaries 144 + + 47. _Amphioxus lanceolatus_ 145 + + 48. _Balanoglossus_ 148 + + 49. A large Sea-lamprey (_Petromyzon marinus_) 148 + + 50. Adult Shark (_Carcharias melanopterus_) 149 + + 51. Diagram of heart and gill-arches of a fish 150 + + 52. One gill-arch, with branchial fringe attached 150 + + 53. Diagram of heart and gill-arches in a lizard 150 + + 54. Ideal diagram of primitive gill-or aortic-arches 151 + + 55. The same, modified for a bird 151 + + 56. The same, modified for a mammal 151 + + 57. A series of embryos at three comparable and progressive + stages of development, representing each of the classes of + vertebrated animals below the Mammalia 152 + + 58. Another series of embryos, also at three comparable and + progressive stages of development, representing four different + divisions of the class Mammalia 153 + + 59. Diagram of geological succession of the classes of the Animal + Kingdom 165 + + 60. Skull of _Oreodon Culbertsoni_ 167 + + 61,62. Horns of _Cervus dicrocerus_ 168 + + 63. Horns of _C. matheronis_ 168 + + 64. Horns of _C. pardinensis_ 168 + + 65. Horns of _C. issiodorensis_ 168 + + 66. Horns of _C. Sedgwickii_ 168 + + 67. Successive stages in the development of an existing Deer's + Antlers 169 + + 68. Homocercal tail 169 + + 69. Heterocercal tail 170 + + 70. Vertebrated but symmetrical fin (diphycercal) 170 + + 71. Tail of _Archaeopteryx_ 171 + + 72. Tail of modern Bird 171 + + 73. _Archaeopteryx macura_, restored 172 + + 74. Skeleton of Polar Bear 174 + + 75. Skeleton of Lion 175 + + 76. Anterior limb of Man, Dog, Hog, Sheep, and Horse 176 + + 77. Posterior limb of Man, Monkey, Dog, Sheep, and Horse 177 + + 78. Posterior limb of _Baptanodon discus_, and anterior limb of + _Chelydra serpentina_ 179 + + 79. Paddle of a Whale 180 + + 80. Fossil skeleton of _Phenacodus primaevus_ 184 + + 81. Bones of the foot of four different forms of the perissodactyl + type 186 + + 82. Bones of the foot of four different forms of the artiodactyl + type 187 + + 83. Feet and teeth In fossil pedigree of the Horse 189 + + 84. _Palaeotherium_. (Lower Tertiary of Paris Basin) 190 + + 85. _Hipparion_. (New World Pliocene) 192 + + 86. Comparative series of Brains 194 + + 87. Ideal section through all the above stages 195 + + 88. Skulls of Canadian Stag, _Cervalces Americanus_, and Elk 198 + + 89. Transmutations of _Planorbis_ 200 + + 90. Transformation of _Strombus_ 202 + + 91. Pigeons. Drawn from life 298 + + 92. Pigeons (_continued_). Drawn from life 299 + + 93. Fowls. Drawn from life 300 + + 94. Fowls (_continued_). Drawn from life 301 + + 95. Pair of Japanese Fowls, long-tailed breed 302 + + 96. Canaries. Drawn from life 303 + + 97. Sebastopol, or Frizzled Goose 304 + + 98. The Dingo, or wild dog of Australia 304 + + 99. Dogs. Drawn from life 305 + + 100. Dogs (_continued_). Drawn from life 306 + + 101. The Hairless Dog of Japan 307 + + 102. The skull of a Bull-dog compared with that of a Deer-hound 307 + + 103. Rabbits. Drawn from life 308 + + 104. Horses. Drawn from life 309 + + 105. Sheep. Drawn from life 310 + + 106. Cattle. Drawn from life 311 + + 107. Wild Boar contrasted with a modern Domesticated Pig 312 + + 108. Seasonal changes of colour in Ptarmigan (_Lagopus mutus_) 317 + + 109. _Oedicneus crepitans_, showing the instinctive attitude of + concealment 320 + + 110. Imitative forms and colours in insects 322 + + 111. The larva of Puss Moth (_Cerura vinula_) 325 + + 112. The larva of Puss Moth in disturbed attitude 326 + + 113. Three cases of mimicry 328 + + 114. Two further cases of mimicry; flies resembling a wasp in the + one and a bee in the other 329 + + 115. A case of mimicry where a non-venomous species of snake + resembles a venomous one 330 + + 116. A case of mimicry where a homopterous resembles a leaf-cutting + ant 332 + + 117. Feather-footed pigeon 359 + + 118. _Raia radiata_ 368 + + 119. Electric organ of the Skate 369 + + 120. Electric cells of _Raia radiata_ 370 + + 121. The Garden Bower-bird (_Amblyornis inornata_) 382 + + 122. Courtship of Spiders 388 + + 123. Courtship of Spiders (_continued_) 389 + + 124. The Bell-bird (_Chasmorhynchus niveus_) 396 + + 125. _C. tricarunculatus_ 397 + + + + +SECTION I + +_EVOLUTION_ + + + + +CHAPTER I. + +INTRODUCTORY. + + +Among the many and unprecedented changes that have been wrought by Mr. +Darwin's work on the _Origin of Species_, there is one which, although +second in importance to no other, has not received the attention which +it deserves. I allude to the profound modification which that work has +produced on the ideas of naturalists with regard to method. + +Having had occasion of late years somewhat closely to follow the history +of biological science, I have everywhere observed that progress is not +so much marked by the march of discovery _per se_, as by the altered +views of method which the march has involved. If we except what +Aristotle called "the first start" in himself, I think one may fairly +say that from the rejuvenescence of biology in the sixteenth century to +the stage of growth which it has now reached in the nineteenth, there is +a direct proportion to be found between the value of work done and the +degree in which the worker has thereby advanced the true conception of +scientific working. Of course, up to a certain point, it is notorious +that the revolt against the purely "subjective methods" in the sixteenth +century revived the spirit of _inductive_ research as this had been left +by the Greeks; but even with regard to this revolt there are two things +which I should like to observe. + +In the first place, it seems to me, an altogether disproportionate value +has been assigned to Bacon's share in the movement. At most, I think, he +deserves to be regarded but as a literary exponent of the _Zeitgeist_ of +his century. Himself a philosopher, as distinguished from a man of +science, whatever influence his preaching may have had upon the general +public, it seems little short of absurd to suppose that it could have +produced any considerable effect upon men who were engaged in the +practical work of research. And those who read the _Novum Organon_ with +a first-hand knowledge of what is required for such research can +scarcely fail to agree with his great contemporary Harvey, that he wrote +upon science like a Lord Chancellor. + +The second thing I should like to observe is, that as the revolt against +the purely subjective methods grew in extent and influence it passed to +the opposite extreme, which eventually became only less deleterious to +the interests of science than was the bondage of authority, and +addiction to _a priori_ methods, from which the revolt had set her free. +For, without here waiting to trace the history of this matter in detail, +I think it ought now to be manifest to everyone who studies it, that up +to the commencement of the present century the progress of science in +general, and of natural history in particular, was seriously retarded by +what may be termed the Bugbear of Speculation. Fully awakened to the +dangers of web-spinning from the ever-fertile resources of their own +inner consciousness, naturalists became more and more abandoned to the +idea that their science ought to consist in a mere observation of facts, +or tabulation of phenomena, without attempt at theorizing upon their +philosophical import. If the facts and phenomena presented any such +import, that was an affair for men of letters to deal with; but, as men +of science, it was _their_ duty to avoid the seductive temptations of +the world, the flesh, and the devil, in the form of speculation, +deduction, and generalization. + +I do not allege that this ideal of natural history was either absolute +or universal; but there can be no question that it was both orthodox and +general. Even Linnaeus was express in his limitations of true scientific +work in natural history to the collecting and arranging of species of +plants and animals. In accordance with this view, the _status_ of a +botanist or a zoologist was estimated by the number of specific names, +natural habitats, &c., which he could retain in his memory, rather than +by any evidences which he might give of intellectual powers in the way +of constructive thought. At the most these powers might legitimately +exercise themselves only in the direction of taxonomic work; and if a +Hales, a Haller, or a Hunter obtained any brilliant results in the way +of observation and experiment, their merit was taken to consist in the +discovery of facts _per se_: not in any endeavours they might make in +the way of combining their facts under general principles. Even as late +in the day as Cuvier this ideal was upheld as the strictly legitimate +one for a naturalist to follow; and although Cuvier himself was far from +being always loyal to it, he leaves no doubt regarding the estimate in +which he held the still greater deviations of his colleagues, St. +Hilaire and Lamarck. + +Now, these traditional notions touching the severance between the facts +of natural history and the philosophy of it, continued more or less to +dominate the minds of naturalists until the publication of the _Origin +of Species_, in 1859. Then it was that an epoch was marked in this +respect, as in so many other respects where natural history is +concerned. For, looking to the enormous results which followed from a +deliberate disregard of such traditional canons by Darwin, it has long +since become impossible for naturalists, even of the strictest sect, not +to perceive that their previous bondage to the law of a mere ritual has +been for ever superseded by what verily deserves to be regarded as a new +dispensation. Yet it cannot be said, or even so much as suspected, that +Darwin's method in any way resembled that of pre-scientific days, the +revolt against which led to the straight-laced--and for a long time most +salutary--conceptions of method that we have just been noticing. Where, +then, is the difference? To me it seems that the difference is as +follows; and, if so, that not the least of our many obligations to +Darwin as the great organizer of biological science arises from his +having clearly displayed the true principle which ought to govern +biological research. + +To begin with, he nowhere loses sight of the primary distinction between +fact and theory; so that, thus far, he loyally follows the spirit of +revolt against subjective methods. But, while always holding this +distinction clearly in view, his idea of the scientific use of facts is +plainly that of furnishing legitimate material for the construction of +theories. Natural history is not to him an affair of the herbarium or +the cabinet. The collectors and the species-framers are, as it were, his +diggers of clay and makers of bricks: even the skilled observers and the +trained experimentalists are his mechanics. Valuable as the work of all +these men is in itself, its principal value, as he has finally +demonstrated, is that which it acquires in rendering possible the work +of the architect. Therefore, although he has toiled in all the trades +with his own hands, and in each has accomplished some of the best work +that has ever been done, the great difference between him and most of +his predecessors consists in this,--that while to them the discovery or +accumulation of facts was an end, to him it is the means. In their eyes +it was enough that the facts should be discovered and recorded. In his +eyes the value of facts is due to their power of guiding the mind to a +further discovery of principles. And the extraordinary success which +attended his work in this respect of _generalization_ immediately +brought natural history into line with the other inductive sciences, +behind which, in this most important of all respects, she has so +seriously fallen. For it was the _Origin of Species_ which first clearly +revealed to naturalists as a class, that it was the duty of their +science to take as its motto, what is really the motto of natural +science in general, + + Felix qui potuit rerum cognoscere causas. + +Not facts, then, or phenomena, but causes or principles, are the +ultimate objects of scientific quest. It remains to ask, How ought this +quest to be prosecuted? + +Well, in the second place, Darwin has shown that next only to the +importance of clearly distinguishing between facts and theories on the +one hand, and of clearly recognising the relation between them on the +other, is the importance of not being scared by the Bugbear of +Speculation. The spirit of speculation is the same as the spirit of +science, namely, as we have just seen, a desire to know the causes of +things. The _hypotheses non fingo_ of Newton, if taken to mean what it +is often understood as meaning, would express precisely the opposite +spirit from that in which all scientific research must necessarily take +its origin. For if it be causes or principles, as distinguished from +facts or phenomena, that constitute the final aim of scientific +research, obviously the advancement of such research can be attained +only by the framing of hypotheses. And to frame hypotheses is to +speculate. + +Therefore, the difference between science and speculation is not a +difference of spirit; nor, thus far, is it a difference of method. The +only difference between them is in the subsequent process of verifying +hypotheses. For while speculation, in its purest form, is satisfied to +test her explanations only by the degree in which they accord with our +subjective ideas of probability--or with the "Illative Sense" of +Cardinal Newman,--science is not satisfied to rest in any explanation as +final until it shall have been fully verified by an appeal to objective +proof. This distinction is now so well and so generally appreciated that +I need not dwell upon it. Nor need I wait to go into any details with +regard to the so-called canons of verification. My only object is to +make perfectly clear, first, that in order to have any question to put +to the test of objective verification, science must already have so far +employed the method of speculation as to have framed a question to be +tested; and, secondly, that the point where science parts company with +speculation is the point where this testing process begins. + +Now, if these things are so, there can be no doubt that Darwin was +following the truest method of inductive research in allowing any amount +of latitude to his speculative thought in the direction of scientific +theorizing. For it follows from the above distinctions that the danger +of speculation does not reside in the width of its range, or even in the +impetuosity of its vehemence. Indeed, the wider its reach, and the +greater its energy, the better will it be for the interests of science. +The only danger of speculation consists in its momentum being apt to +carry away the mind from the more laborious work of adequate +verification; and therefore a true scientific judgment consists in +giving a free rein to speculation on the one hand, while holding ready +the break of verification with the other. Now, it is just because Darwin +did both these things with so admirable a judgment, that he gave the +world of natural history so good a lesson as to the most effectual way +of driving the chariot of science. + +This lesson we have now all more or less learnt to profit by. Yet no +other naturalist has proved himself so proficient in holding the balance +true. For the most part, indeed, they have now all ceased to confound +the process of speculation _per se_ with the danger of inadequate +verification; and therefore the old ideal of natural history as +concerned merely with collecting species, classifying affinities, and, +in general, tabulating facts, has been well-nigh universally +superseded. But this great gain has been attended by some measure of +loss. For while not a few naturalists have since erred on the side of +insufficiently distinguishing between fully verified principles of +evolution and merely speculative deductions therefrom, a still larger +number have formed for themselves a Darwinian creed, and regard any +further theorizing on the subject of evolution as _ipso facto_ +unorthodox. + +Having occupied the best years of my life in closely studying the +literature of Darwinism, I shall endeavour throughout the following +pages to avoid both these extremes. No one in this generation is able to +imitate Darwin, either as an observer or a generalizer. But this does +not hinder that we should all so far endeavour to follow his _method_, +as always to draw a clear distinction, not merely between observation +and deduction, but also between degrees of verification. At all events, +my own aim will everywhere be to avoid dogmatism on the one hand, and +undue timidity as regards general reasoning on the other. For everything +that is said justification will be given; and, as far as prolonged +deliberation has enabled me to do so, the exact value of such +justification will be rendered by a statement of at least the main +grounds on which it rests. The somewhat extensive range of the present +treatise, however, will not admit of my rendering more than a small +percentage of the facts which in each case go to corroborate the +conclusion. But although a great deal must thus be necessarily lost on +the one side, I am disposed to think that more will be gained on the +other, by presenting, in a terser form than would otherwise be +possible, the whole theory of organic evolution as I believe that it +will eventually stand. My endeavour, therefore, will be to exhibit the +general structure of this theory in what I take to be its strictly +logical form, rather than to encumber any of its parts by a lengthy +citation of facts. Following this method, I shall in each case give only +what I consider the main facts for and against the positions which have +to be argued; and in most cases I shall arrange the facts in two +divisions, namely, first those of largest generality, and next a few of +the most special character that can be found. + +As explained in the Preface, the present instalment of the treatise is +concerned with the theory of evolution, from the appearance of the +_Origin of Species_ in 1859, to the death of its author in 1882; while +the second part will be devoted to the sundry post-Darwinian questions +which have arisen in the subsequent decade. To the possible criticism +that a disproportionate amount of space will thus be allotted to a +consideration of these post-Darwinian questions, I may furnish in +advance the following reply. + +In the first place, besides the works of Darwin himself, there are a +number of others which have already and very admirably expounded the +evidences, both of organic evolution as a fact, and of natural selection +as a cause. Therefore, in the present treatise it seemed needless to go +beyond the ground which was covered by my original lectures, namely, a +condensed and connected, while at the same time a critical statement of +the main evidences, and the main objections, which have thus far been +published with reference to the distinctively Darwinian theory. Indeed +while re-casting this portion of my lectures for the present +publication, I have felt that criticism might be more justly urged from +the side of impatience at a reiteration of facts and arguments already +so well known. But while endeavouring, as much as possible, to avoid +overlapping the previous expositions, I have not carried this attempt to +the extent of damaging my own, by omitting any of the more important +heads of evidence; and I have sought to invest the latter with some +measure of novelty by making good what appears to me a deficiency which +has hitherto obtained in the matter of pictorial illustration. In +particular, there will be found a tolerably extensive series of +woodcuts, serving to represent the more important products of artificial +selection. These, like all the other original illustrations, have been +drawn either direct from nature or from a comparative study of the best +authorities. Nevertheless, I desire it to be understood that the first +part of this treatise is intended to retain its original character, as a +merely educational exposition of Darwinian teaching--an exposition, +therefore, which, in its present form, may be regarded as a compendium, +or hand-book, adapted to the requirements of a general reader, or +biological student as distinguished from those of a professed +naturalist. + +The case, however, is different with the second instalment, which will +be published at no very distant date. Here I have not followed with +nearly so much closeness the material of my original lectures. On the +contrary, I have had in view a special class of readers; and, although I +have tried not altogether to sacrifice the more general class, I shall +desire it to be understood that I am there appealing to naturalists who +are specialists in Darwinism. One must say advisedly, naturalists who +are specialists in Darwinism, because, while the literature of Darwinism +has become a department of science in itself, there are nowadays many +naturalists who, without having paid any close attention to the subject, +deem themselves entitled to hold authoritative opinions with regard to +it. These men may have done admirable work in other departments of +natural history, and yet their opinions on such matters as we shall +hereafter have to consider may be destitute of value. As there is no +necessary relation between erudition in one department of science and +soundness of judgment in another, the mere fact that a man is +distinguished as a botanist or zoologist does not in itself qualify him +as a critic where specially Darwinian questions are concerned. Thus it +happens now, as it happened thirty years ago, that highly distinguished +botanists and zoologists prove themselves incapable as judges of general +reasoning. It was Darwin's complaint that for many years nearly all his +scientific critics either could not, or would not, understand what he +had written--and this even as regarded the fundamental principles of his +theory, which with the utmost clearness he had over and over again +repeated. Now the only difference between such naturalists and their +successors of the present day is, that the latter have grown up in a +Darwinian environment, and so, as already remarked, have more or less +thoughtlessly adopted some form of Darwinian creed. But this scientific +creed is not a whit less dogmatic and intolerant than was the more +theological one which it has supplanted; and while it usually +incorporates the main elements of Darwin's teaching, it still more +usually comprises gross perversions of their consequences. All this I +shall have occasion more fully to show in subsequent parts of the +present work; and allusion is made to the matter here merely for the +sake of observing that in future I shall not pay attention to +unsupported expressions of opinion from any quarter: I shall consider +only such as are accompanied with some statement of the grounds upon +which the opinion is held. And, even as thus limited, I do not think it +will be found that the following exposition devotes any disproportional +amount of attention to the contemporary movements of Darwinian thought, +seeing, as we shall see, how active scientific speculation has been in +the field of Darwinism since the death of Mr. Darwin. + + * * * * * + +Leaving, then, these post-Darwinian questions to be dealt with +subsequently, I shall now begin a systematic _resume_ of the evidences +in favour of the Darwinian theory, as this was left to the world by +Darwin himself. + +There is a great distinction to be drawn between the fact of evolution +and the manner of it, or between the evidence of evolution as having +taken place somehow, and the evidence of the causes which have been +concerned in the process. This most important distinction is frequently +disregarded by popular writers on Darwinism; and, therefore, in order to +mark it as strongly as possible, I will effect a complete separation +between the evidence which we have of evolution as a fact, and the +evidence which we have as to its method. In other words, not until I +shall have fully considered the evidence of organic evolution as a +process which somehow or another _has_ taken place, will I proceed to +consider _how_ it has taken place, or the causes which Darwin and others +have suggested as having probably been concerned in this process. + +Confining, then, our attention in the first instance to a proof of +evolution considered as a fact, without any reference at all to its +method, let us begin by considering the antecedent standing of the +matter. + + * * * * * + +First of all we must clearly recognise that there are only two +hypotheses in the field whereby it is possible so much as to suggest an +explanation of the origin of species. Either all the species of plants +and animals must have been supernaturally created, or else they must +have been naturally evolved. There is no third hypothesis possible; for +no one can rationally suggest that species have been eternal. + +Next, be it observed, that the theory of a continuous transmutation of +species is not logically bound to furnish a full explanation of _all_ +the natural causes which it may suppose to have been at work. The +radical distinction between the two theories consists in the one +assuming an immediate action of some supernatural or inscrutable cause, +while the other assumes the immediate action of natural--and therefore +of possibly discoverable--causes. But in order to sustain this latter +assumption, the theory of descent is under no logical necessity to +furnish a full proof of _all_ the natural causes which may have been +concerned in working out the observed results. We do not know the +natural causes of many diseases; but yet no one nowadays thinks of +reverting to any hypothesis of a supernatural cause, in order to explain +the occurrence of any disease the natural causation of which is obscure. +The science of medicine being in so many cases able to explain the +occurrence of disease by its hypothesis of natural causes, medical men +now feel that they are entitled to assume, on the basis of a wide +analogy, and therefore on the basis of a strong antecedent presumption, +that all diseases are due to natural causes, whether or not in +particular cases such causes happen to have been discovered. And from +this position it follows that medical men are not logically bound to +entertain any supernatural theory of an obscure disease, merely because +as yet they have failed to find a natural theory. And so it is with +biologists and their theory of descent. Even if it be fully proved to +them that the causes which they have hitherto discovered, or suggested, +are inadequate to account for all the facts of organic nature, this +would in no wise logically compel them to vacate their theory of +evolution, in favour of the theory of creation. All that it would so +compel them to do would be to search with yet greater diligence for the +natural causes still undiscovered, but in the existence of which they +are, by their independent evidence in favour of the theory, bound to +believe. + +In short, the issue is not between the theory of a supernatural cause +and the theory of any one particular natural cause, or set of +causes--such as natural selection, use, disuse, and so forth. The issue +thus far--or where only the _fact_ of evolution is concerned--is between +the theory of a supernatural cause as operating immediately in +numberless acts of special creation, and the theory of natural causes as +a whole, whether these happen, or do not happen, to have been hitherto +discovered. + +This much by way of preliminaries being understood, we have next to +notice that whichever of the two rival theories we choose to entertain, +we are not here concerned with any question touching the origin of life. +We are concerned only with the origin of particular forms of life--that +is to say, with the origin of species. The theory of descent starts from +life as a _datum_ already granted. How life itself came to be, the +theory of descent, as such, is not concerned to show. Therefore, in the +present discussion, I will take the existence of life as a fact which +does not fall within the range of our present discussion. No doubt the +question as to the origin of life is in itself a deeply interesting +question, and although in the opinion of most biologists it is a +question which we may well hope will some day fall within the range of +science to answer, at present, it must be confessed, science is not in a +position to furnish so much as any suggestion upon the subject; and +therefore our wisdom as men of science is frankly to acknowledge that +such is the case. + + * * * * * + +We are now in a position to observe that the theory of organic evolution +is strongly recommended to our acceptance on merely antecedent grounds, +by the fact that it is in full accordance with what is known as the +principle of continuity. By the principle of continuity is meant the +uniformity of nature, in virtue of which the many and varied processes +going on in nature are due to the same kind of method, i. e. the method +of natural causation. This conception of the uniformity of nature is +one that has only been arrived at step by step through a long and +arduous course of human experience in the explanation of natural +phenomena. The explanations of such phenomena which are first given are +always of the supernatural kind; it is not until investigation has +revealed the natural causes which are concerned that the hypotheses of +superstition give way to those of science. Thus it follows that the +hypotheses of superstition which are the latest in yielding to the +explanations of science, are those which refer to the more recondite +cases of natural causation; for here it is that methodical investigation +is longest in discovering the natural causes. Thus it is only by degrees +that fetishism is superseded by what now appears a common-sense +interpretation of physical phenomena; that exorcism gives place to +medicine; alchemy to chemistry; astrology to astronomy; and so forth. +Everywhere the miraculous is progressively banished from the field of +explanation by the advance of scientific discovery; and the places where +it is left longest in occupation are those where the natural causes are +most intricate or obscure, and thus present the greatest difficulty to +the advancing explanations of science. Now, in our own day there are but +very few of these strongholds of the miraculous left. Nearly the whole +field of explanation is occupied by naturalism, so that no one ever +thinks of resorting to supernaturalism except in the comparatively few +cases where science has not yet been able to explore the most obscure +regions of causation. One of these cases is the origin of life; and, +until quite recently, another of these cases was the origin of species. +But now that a very reasonable explanation of the origin of species has +been offered by science, it is but in accordance with all previous +historical analogies that many minds should prove themselves unable all +at once to adjust themselves to the new ideas, and thus still linger +about the more venerable ideas of supernaturalism. But we are now in +possession of so many of these historical analogies, that all minds with +any instincts of science in their composition have grown to distrust, on +merely antecedent grounds, any explanation which embodies a miraculous +element. Such minds have grown to regard all these explanations as mere +expressions of our own ignorance of natural causation; or, in other +words, they have come to regard it as an _a priori_ truth that nature is +everywhere uniform in respect of method or causation; that the reign of +law universal; the principle of continuity ubiquitous. + +Now, it must be obvious to any mind which has adopted this attitude of +thought, that the scientific theory of natural descent is recommended by +an overwhelming weight of antecedent presumption, as against the +dogmatic theory of supernatural design. + +To begin with, we must remember that the fact of evolution--or, which is +the same thing, the fact of continuity in natural causation--has now +been unquestionably proved in so many other and analogous departments of +nature, that to suppose any interruption of this method as between +species and species becomes, on grounds of such analogy alone, well-nigh +incredible. For example, it is now a matter of demonstrated fact that +throughout the range of _inorganic_ nature the principles of evolution +have obtained. It is no longer possible for any one to believe with our +forefathers that the earth's surface has always existed as it now +exists. For the science of geology has proved to demonstration that seas +and lands are perpetually undergoing gradual changes of relative +positions--continents and oceans supplanting each other in the course of +ages, mountain-chains being slowly uplifted, again as slowly denuded, +and so forth. Moreover, and as a closer analogy, within the limits of +animate nature we know it is the universal law that every individual +life undergoes a process of gradual development; and that breeds, races, +or strains, may be brought into existence by the intentional use of +natural processes--the results bearing an unmistakeable resemblance to +what we know as natural species. Again, even in the case of natural +species themselves, there are two considerations which present enormous +force from an antecedent point of view. The first is that organic forms +are only then recognised as species when intermediate forms are absent. +If the intermediate forms are actually living, or admit of being found +in the fossil state, naturalists forthwith regard the whole series as +varieties, and name all the members of it as belonging to the same +species. Consequently it becomes obvious that naturalists, in their work +of naming species, may only have been marking out the cases where +intermediate or connecting forms have been lost to observation. For +example, here we have a diagram representing a very unusually complete +series of fossil shells, which within the last few years has been +unearthed from the Tertiary lake basins of Slavonia. Before the series +was completed, some six or eight of the then disconnected forms were +described as distinct species; but as soon as the connecting forms were +found--showing a progressive modification from the older to the newer +beds,--the whole were included as varieties of one species. + + [Illustration: FIG. 1.--Successive forms of Paludina, from the + Tertiary deposits of Slavonia (after Neumayr).] + +Of course, other cases of the same kind might be adduced, and therefore, +as just remarked, in their work of naming species naturalists may only +have been marking out the cases where intermediate forms have been lost +to observation. And this possibility becomes little less than a +certainty when we note the next consideration which I have to adduce, +namely, that in all their systematic divisions of plants and animals in +groups higher than species--such as genera, families, orders, and the +rest--naturalists have at all times recognised the fact that the one +shades off into the other by such imperceptible gradations, that it is +impossible to regard such divisions as other than conventional. It is +important to remember that this fact was fully recognised before the +days of Darwin. In those days the scientifically orthodox doctrine was, +that although species were to be regarded as fixed units, bearing the +stamp of a special creation, all the higher taxonomic divisions were +to be considered as what may be termed the artificial creation of +naturalists themselves. In other words, it was believed, and in many +cases known, that if we could go far enough back in the history of the +earth, we should everywhere find a tendency to mutual approximation +between allied _groups of species_; so that, for instance, birds and +reptiles would be found to be drawing nearer and nearer together, until +eventually they would seem to become fused in a single type; that the +existing distinctions between herbivorous and carnivorous mammals +would be found to do likewise; and so on with all the larger +group-distinctions, at any rate within the limits of the same +sub-kingdoms. But although naturalists recognised this even in the +pre-Darwinian days, they stoutly believed that a great exception was to +be made in the case of species. These, the lowest or initial members of +their taxonomic series, they supposed to be permanent--the miraculously +created units of organic nature. Now, all that I have at present to +remark is, that this pre-Darwinian exception which was made in favour of +species to the otherwise recognised principle of gradual change, was an +exception which can at no time have been recommended by any antecedent +considerations. At all times it stood out of analogy with the principle +of continuity; and, as we shall fully find in subsequent chapters, it is +now directly contradicted by all the facts of biological science. + +There remains one other fact of high generality to which prominent +attention should be drawn from the present, or merely antecedent, point +of view. On the theory of special creation no reason can be assigned why +distinct specific types should present any correlation, either in time +or in space, with their nearest allies; for there is evidently no +conceivable reason why any given species, A, should have been specially +created on the same area and at about the same time as its nearest +representative, B,--still less, of course, that such should be a general +rule throughout all the thousands and millions of species which have +ever inhabited the earth. But, equally of course, on the theory of a +natural evolution this is so necessary a consequence, that if no +correlation of such a two-fold kind were observable, the theory would be +negatived. Thus the question whether there be any indication of such a +two-fold correlation may be regarded as a test-question as between the +two theories; for although the vast majority of extinct species have +been lost to science, there are a countless number of existing species +which furnish ample material for answering the question. And the answer +is so unequivocal that Mr. Wallace, who is one of our greatest +authorities on geographical distribution, has laid it down as a general +law, applicable to all the departments of organic nature, that, so far +as observation can extend, "every species has come into existence +coincident both in space and time with a pre-existing and closely allied +species." As it appears to me that the significance of these words +cannot be increased by any comment upon them, I will here bring this +introductory chapter to a close. + + + + +CHAPTER II. + +CLASSIFICATION. + + +The first line of direct evidence in favour of organic evolution which I +shall open is that which may be termed the argument from Classification. + +It is a matter of observable fact that different forms of plants and +animals present among themselves more or less pronounced resemblances. +From the earliest times, therefore, it has been the aim of philosophical +naturalists to classify plants and animals in accordance with these +resemblances. Of course the earliest attempts at such classification +were extremely crude. The oldest of these attempts with which we are +acquainted--namely, that which is presented in the books of Genesis and +Leviticus--arranges the whole vegetable kingdom in three simple +divisions of Grass, Herbs, and Trees; while the animal kingdom is +arranged with almost equal simplicity with reference, first to habitats +in water, earth, or air, and next as to modes of progression. These, of +course, were what may be termed common-sense classifications, having +reference merely to external appearances and habits of life. But when +Aristotle laboriously investigated the comparative anatomy of animals, +he could not fail to perceive that their entire structures had to be +taken into account in order to classify them scientifically; and, also, +that for this purpose the internal parts were of quite as much +importance as the external. Indeed, he perceived that they were of +greatly more importance in this respect, inasmuch as they presented so +many more points for comparison; and, in the result, he furnished an +astonishingly comprehensive, as well as an astonishingly accurate +classification of the larger groups of the animal kingdom. On the other +hand, classification of the vegetable kingdom continued pretty much as +it had been left by the book of Genesis--all plants being divided into +three groups, Herbs, Shrubs, and Trees. Nor was this primitive state of +matters improved upon till the sixteenth century, when Gesner +(1516-1565), and still more Caesalpino (1519-1603), laid the foundations +of systematic botany. + +But the more that naturalists prosecuted their studies on the anatomy of +plants and animals, the more enormously complex did they find the +problem of classification become. Therefore they began by forming what +are called artificial systems, in contradistinction to natural systems. +An artificial system of classification is a system based on the more or +less arbitrary selection of some one part, or set of parts; while a +natural classification is one that is based upon a complete knowledge of +all the structures of all the organisms which are classified. + +Thus, the object of classification has been that of arranging organisms +in accordance with their natural affinities, by comparing organism with +organism, for the purpose of ascertaining which of the constituent +organs are of the most invariable occurrence, and therefore of the most +typical signification. A porpoise, for instance, has a large number of +teeth, and in this feature resembles most fish, while it differs from +all mammals. But it also gives suck to its young. Now, looking to these +two features alone, should we say that a porpoise ought to be classed as +a fish or as a mammal? Assuredly as a mammal; because the number of +teeth is a very variable feature both in fish and mammals, whereas the +giving of suck is an invariable feature among mammals, and occurs +nowhere else in the animal kingdom. This, of course, is chosen as a very +simple illustration. Were all cases as obvious, there would be but +little distinction between natural and artificial systems of +classification. But it is because the lines of natural affinity are, as +it were, so interwoven throughout the organic world, and because there +is, in consequence, so much difficulty in following them, that +artificial systems have to be made in the first instance as feelers +towards eventual discovery of the natural system. In other words, while +forming their artificial systems of classification, it has always been +the aim of naturalists--whether consciously or unconsciously--to admit +as the bases of their systems those characters which, in the then state +of their knowledge, seemed most calculated to play an important part in +the eventual construction of the natural system. If we were dealing with +the history of classification, it would here be interesting to note how +the course of it has been marked by gradual change in the principles +which naturalists adopted as guides to the selection of characters on +which to found their attempts at a natural classification. Some of these +changes, indeed, I shall have to mention later on; but at present what +has to be specially noted is, that through all these changes of theory +or principle, and through all the ever-advancing construction of their +taxonomic science, naturalists themselves were unable to give any +intelligible reason for the faith that was in them--or the faith that +over and above the artificial classifications which were made for the +mere purpose of cataloguing the living library of organic nature, there +was deeply hidden in nature itself a truly natural classification, for +the eventual discovery of which artificial systems might prove to be of +more or less assistance. + +Linnaeus, for example, expressly says--"You ask me for the characters of +the natural orders; I confess that I cannot give them." Yet he maintains +that, although he cannot define the characters, he knows, by a sort of +naturalist's instinct, what in a general way will subsequently be found +to be the organs of most importance in the eventual grouping of plants +under a natural system. "I will not give my reasons for the distribution +of the natural orders which I have published," he said: "you, or some +other person, after twenty or after fifty years, will discover them, and +see that I was right." + +Thus we perceive that in forming their provisional or artificial +classifications, naturalists have been guided by an instinctive belief +in some general principle of natural affinity, the character of which +they have not been able to define; and that the structures which they +selected as the bases of their classifications when these were +consciously artificial, were selected because it seemed that they were +the structures most likely to prove of use in subsequent attempts at +working out the natural system. + +This general principle of natural affinity, of which all naturalists +have seen more or less well-marked evidence in organic nature, and after +which they have all been feeling, has sometimes been regarded as +natural, but more often as supernatural. Those who regarded it as +supernatural took it to consist in a divine ideal of creation according +to types, so that the structural affinities of organisms were to them +expressions of an archetypal plan, which might be revealed in its +entirety when all organisms on the face of the earth should have been +examined. Those, on the other hand, who regarded the general principle +of affinity as depending on some natural causes, for the most part +concluded that these must have been utilitarian causes; or, in other +words, that the fundamental affinities of structure must have depended +upon fundamental requirements of function. According to this view, the +natural classification would eventually be found to stand upon a basis +of physiology. Therefore all the systems of classification up to the +earlier part of the present century went upon the apparent axiom, that +characters which are of most importance to the organisms presenting them +must be characters most indicative of natural affinities. But the truth +of the matter was eventually found to be otherwise. For it was +eventually found that there is absolutely no correlation between these +two things; that, therefore, it is a mere chance whether or not organs +which are of importance to organisms are likewise of importance as +guides to classification; and, in point of fact, that the general +tendency in this matter is towards an inverse instead of a direct +proportion. More often than not, the greater the value of a structure +for the purpose of indicating natural affinities, the less is its value +to the creatures presenting it. + +Enough has now been said to show three things. First, that long before +the theory of descent was entertained by naturalists, naturalists +perceived the fact of natural affinities, and did their best to +construct a natural system of classification for the purpose of +expressing such affinities. Second, that naturalists had a kind of +instinctive belief in some one principle running through the whole +organic world, which thus served to bind together organisms in groups +subordinate to groups--that is, into species, genera, orders, families, +classes, sub-kingdoms, and kingdoms. Third, that they were not able to +give any very intelligible reason for this faith that was in them; +sometimes supposing the principle in question to be that of a +supernatural plan of organization, sometimes regarding it as dependent +on conditions of physiology, and sometimes not attempting to account for +it at all. + +Of course it is obvious that the theory of descent furnishes the +explanation which is required. For it is now evident to evolutionists, +that although these older naturalists did not know what they were doing +when they were tracing these lines of natural affinity, and thus helping +to construct a natural classification--I say it is now evident to +evolutionists that these naturalists were simply tracing the lines of +genetic relationship. The great principle pervading organic nature, +which was seen so mysteriously to bind the whole creation together as in +a nexus of organic affinity, is now easily understood as nothing more or +less than the principle of Heredity. Let us, therefore, look a little +more closely at the character of this network, in order to see how far +it lends itself to this new interpretation. + +The first thing that we have to observe about the nexus is, that it is a +nexus--not a single line, or even a series of parallel lines. In other +words, some time before the theory of descent was seriously entertained, +naturalists for the most part had fully recognised that it was +impossible to arrange either plants or animals, with respect to their +mutual affinities, in a ladder-like series (as was supposed to be the +type of classification by the earlier systematists), or even in map-like +groups (as was supposed to be the type by Linnaeus). And similarly, also, +with respect to grades of organization. In the case of the larger +groups, indeed, it is usually possible to say that the members of this +group as a whole are more highly organized than the members of that +group as a whole; so that, for instance, we have no hesitation in +regarding the Vertebrata as more highly organized than the Invertebrata, +Birds than Reptiles, and so on. But when we proceed to smaller +subdivisions, such as genera and species, it is usually impossible to +say that the one type is more highly organized than another type. A +horse, for instance, cannot be said to be more highly organized than a +zebra or an ass; although the entire horse-genus is clearly a more +highly organized type than any genus of animal which is not a mammal. + +In view of these facts, therefore, the system of classification which +was eventually arrived at before the days of Darwin, was the system +which naturalists likened to a tree; and this is the system which all +naturalists now agreed upon as the true one. According to this system, a +short trunk may be taken to represent the lowest organisms which cannot +properly be termed either plants or animals. This short trunk soon +separates into two large trunks, one of which represents the vegetable +and the other the animal kingdom. Each of these trunks then gives off +large branches signifying classes, and these give off smaller, but more +numerous branches, signifying families, which ramify again into orders, +genera, and finally into the leaves, which may be taken to represent +species. Now, in such a representative tree of life, the height of any +branch from the ground may be taken to indicate the grade of +organization which the leaves, or species, present; so that, if we +picture to ourselves such a tree, we may understand that while there is +a general advance of organization from below upwards, there are many +deviations in this respect. Sometimes leaves growing on the same branch +are growing at a different level--especially, of course, if the branch +be a large one, corresponding to a class or sub-kingdom. And sometimes +leaves growing on different branches are growing at the same level: that +is to say, although they represent species belonging to widely divergent +families, orders, or even classes, it cannot be said that the one +species is more highly organized than the other. + +Now, this tree-like arrangement of species in nature is an arrangement +for which Darwin is not responsible. For, as we have seen, the detecting +of it has been due to the progressive work of naturalists for centuries +past; and even when it was detected, at about the commencement of the +present century, naturalists were confessedly unable to explain the +reason of it, or what was the underlying principle that they were +engaged in tracing when they proceeded ever more and more accurately to +define these ramifications of natural affinity. But now, as just +remarked, we can clearly perceive that this underlying principle was +none other than Heredity as expressed in family likeness,--likeness, +therefore, growing progressively more unlike with remoteness of +ancestral relationship. For thus only can we obtain any explanation of +the sundry puzzles and apparent paradoxes, which a working out of their +natural classifications revealed to botanists and zoologists during the +first half of the present century. It will now be my endeavour to show +how these puzzles and paradoxes are all explained by the theory that +natural affinities are merely the expression of genetic affinities. + +First of all, and from the most general point of view, it is obvious +that the tree-like system of classification, which Darwin found already +and empirically worked out by the labours of his predecessors, is as +suggestive as anything could well be of the fact of genetic +relationship. For this is the form that every tabulation of family +pedigree must assume; and therefore the mere fact that a scientific +tabulation of natural affinities was eventually found to take the form +of a tree, is in itself highly suggestive of the inference that such a +tabulation represents a _family_ tree. If all species were separately +created, there can be no assignable reason why the ideas of earlier +naturalists touching the form which a natural classification would +eventually assume should not have represented the truth--why, for +example, it should not have assumed the form of a ladder (as was +anticipated in the seventeenth century), or of a map (as was anticipated +in the eighteenth), or, again, of a number of wholly unrelated lines, +circles, &c. (as certain speculative writers of the present century have +imagined). But, on the other hand, if all species were separately and +independently created, it becomes virtually incredible that we should +everywhere observe this progressive arborescence of characters common to +larger groups into more and more numerous, and more and more delicate, +ramifications of characters distinctive only of smaller and smaller +groups. A man would be deemed insane if he were to attribute the origin +of every branch and every twig of a real tree to a separate act of +special creation; and although we have not been able to witness the +growth of what we may term in a new sense the Tree of Life, the +structural relations which are now apparent between its innumerable +ramifications bear quite as strong a testimony to the fact of their +having been due to an organic growth, as is the testimony furnished by +the branches of an actual tree. + +Or, to take another illustration. Classification of organic forms, as +Darwin, Lyell, and Haeckel have pointed out, strongly resembles the +classification of languages. In the case of languages, as in the case of +species, we have genetic affinities strongly marked; so that it is +possible to some extent to construct a Language-tree, the branches of +which shall indicate, in a diagrammatic form, the progressive divergence +of a large group of languages from a common stock. For instance, Latin +may be regarded as a fossil language, which has given rise to a group of +living languages--Italian, Spanish, French, and, to a large extent, +English. Now what would be thought of a philologist who should maintain +that English, French, Spanish, and Italian were all specially created +languages--or languages separately constructed by the Deity, and by as +many separate acts of inspiration communicated to the nations which now +speak them--and that their resemblance to the fossil form, Latin, must +be attributed to special design? Yet the evidence of the natural +transmutation of species is in one respect much stronger than that of +the natural transmutation of languages--in respect, namely, of there +being a vastly greater number of cases all bearing testimony to the fact +of genetic relationship. + +But, quitting now this most general point of view--or the suggestive +fact that what we have before us is a _tree_--let us next approach this +tree for the purpose of examining its structure more in detail. When we +do this, the fact of next greatest generality which we find is as +follows. + +In cases where a very old form of life has continued to exist +unmodified, so that by investigation of its anatomy we are brought back +to a more primitive type of structure than that of the newer forms +growing higher up _upon the same branch_, two things are observable. In +the first place, the old form is less differentiated than the newer +ones; and, in the next place, it is seen much more closely to resemble +types of structure belonging to some of the other and larger branches of +the tree. The organization of the older form is not only _simpler_; but +it is, as naturalists say, more _generalized_. It comprises within +itself characters belonging to its own branch, and also characters +belonging to neighbouring branches, or to the trunk from which allied +branches spring. Hence it becomes a general rule of classification, that +it is by the lowest, or by the oldest, forms of any two natural groups +that the affinities between the two groups admit of being best detected. +And it is obvious that this is just what ought to be the case on the +theory of descent with divergent modification; while, upon the +alternative theory of special creation, no reason can be assigned why +the lowest or the oldest types should thus combine the characters which +afterwards become severally distinctive of higher or newer types. + +Again, I have already alluded to the remarkable fact that there is no +correlation between the value of structures to the organisms which +present them, and their value to the naturalist for the purpose of +tracing natural affinity; and I have remarked that up to the close of +the last century it was regarded as an axiom of taxonomic science, that +structures which are of most importance to the animals or plants +possessing them must likewise prove of most importance in any natural +system of classification. On this account, all attempts to discover the +natural classification went upon the supposition that such a direct +proportion must obtain--with the result that organs of most +physiological importance were chosen as the bases of systematic work. +And when, in the earlier part of the present century, De Candolle found +that instead of a direct there was usually an inverse proportion between +the functional and the taxonomic value of a structure, he was unable to +suggest any reason for this apparently paradoxical fact. For, upon the +theory of special creation, no reason can be assigned why organs of +least importance to organisms should prove of most importance as marks +of natural affinity. But on the theory of descent with progressive +modification the apparent paradox is at once explained. For it is +evident that organs of functional importance are, other things equal, +the organs which are most likely to undergo different modifications in +different lines of family descent, and therefore in time to have their +genetic relationships in these different lines obscured. On the other +hand, organs or structures which are of no functional importance are +never called upon to change in response to any change of habit, or to +any change in the conditions of life. They may, therefore, continue to +be inherited through many different lines of family descent, and thus +afford evidence of genetic relationship where such evidence fails to be +given by any of the structures of vital importance, which in the course +of many generations have been required to change in many ways according +to the varied experiences of different branches of the same family. +Here, then, we have an empirically discovered rule in the science of +classification, the _raison d'etre_ of which we are at once able to +appreciate upon the theory of evolution, whereas no possible explanation +of why it should ever have become a rule could be furnished upon the +theory of special creation. + +Here, again, is another empirically determined rule. The larger the +_number_, as distinguished from the _importance_, of structures which +are found common to different groups, the greater becomes their value as +guides to the determination of natural affinity. Or, as Darwin puts it, +"the value of an aggregate of characters, even when none are important, +alone explains the aphorism enunciated by Linnaeus, namely, that the +characters do not give the genus, but the genus gives the characters; +for this seems founded on the appreciation of many trifling points of +resemblance, too slight to be defined[1]." + + [1] _Origin of Species_, p. 367. + +Now it is evident, without comment, of how much value aggregates of +characters ought to be in classification, if the ultimate meaning of +classification be that of tracing lines of pedigree; whereas, if this +ultimate meaning were that of tracing divine ideals manifested in +special creation, we can see no reason why single characters are not +such sure tokens of a natural arrangement as are aggregates of +characters, even though the latter be in every other respect +unimportant. For, on the special creation theory, we cannot explain why +an assemblage, say of four or five trifling characters, should have been +chosen to mark some unity of plan, rather than some one character of +functional importance, which would have served at least equally well any +such hypothetical purpose. On the other hand, as Darwin remarks, "we +care not how trifling a character may be--let it be the mere inflection +of the angle of the jaw, the manner in which an insect's wing is folded, +whether the skin be covered with hair or feathers--if it prevail +throughout many and different species, especially those having very +different habits of life, it assumes high value; for we can account for +its presence in so many forms, with such different habits, only by +inheritance from a common parent. We may err in this respect in regard +to single points of structure, but when several characters, let them be +ever so trifling, concur throughout a large group of beings having +different habits, we may feel almost sure, on the theory of descent, +that these characters have been inherited from a common ancestor; and +we know that such aggregated characters have especial value in +classification[2]." + + [2] _Origin of Species_, p. 372. + +It is true that even a single character, if found common to a large +number of forms, while uniformly absent from others, is also regarded by +naturalists as of importance for purposes of classification, although +they recognise it as of a value subordinate to that of aggregates of +characters. But this also is what we should expect on the theory of +descent. If even any one structure be found to run through a number of +animals presenting different habits of life, the readiest explanation of +the fact is to be found in the theory of descent; but this does not +hinder that if several such characters always occur together, the +inference of genetic relationship is correspondingly confirmed. And the +fact that before this inference was ever drawn, naturalists recognised +the value of single characters in proportion to their constancy, and the +yet higher value of aggregates of characters in proportion to their +number--this fact shows that in their work of classification naturalists +empirically observed the effects of a cause which we have now +discovered, to wit, hereditary transmission of characters through +ever-widening groups of changing species. + +There is another argument which appears to tell strongly in favour of +the theory of descent. We have just seen that non-adaptive structures, +not being required to change in response to change of habits or +conditions of life, are allowed to persist unchanged through many +generations, and thus furnish exceptionally good guides in the science +of classification--or, according to our theory, in the work of tracing +lines of pedigree. But now, the converse of this statement holds equally +true. For it often happens that adaptive structures are required to +change in different lines of descent in analogous ways, in order to meet +analogous needs; and, when such is the case, the structures concerned +have to assume more or less close resemblances to one another, even +though they have severally descended from quite different ancestors. The +paddles of a whale, for instance, most strikingly resemble the fins of a +fish as to their outward form and movements; yet, on the theory of +descent, they must be held to have had a widely different parentage. +Now, in all such cases where there is thus what is called an analogous +(or adaptive) resemblance, as distinguished from what is called an +homologous (or anatomical) resemblance--in all such cases it is +observable that the similarities do not extend further into the +structure of the parts than it is necessary that they should extend, in +order that the structures should both perform the same functions. The +whole anatomy of the paddles of a whale is quite unlike that of the fins +of a fish--being, in fact, that of the fore-limb of a mammal. The +change, therefore, which the fore-limb has here undergone to suit it to +the aquatic habits of this mammal, is no greater than was required for +that purpose: the change has not extended to any one feature of +_anatomical_ significance. This, of course, is what we should expect on +the theory of descent with modification of ancestral characters; but on +the theory of special creation it is not intelligible why there should +always be so marked a distinction between resemblances as analogical or +adaptive, and resemblances as homological or of meaning in reference to +a natural classification. To take another and more detailed instance, +the Tasmanian wolf is an animal separated from true wolves in a natural +system of classification. Yet its jaws and teeth bear a strong general +resemblance to those of all the dog tribe, although there are +differences of anatomical detail. In particular, while the dogs all have +on each side of the upper jaw four pre-molars and two molars, the +Tasmanian wolf has three pre-molars and four molars. Now there is no +reason, so far as their common function of dealing with flesh is +concerned, why the teeth of the Tasmanian wolf should not have resembled +homologically as well as analogically the teeth of a true wolf; and +therefore we cannot assign any intelligible reason why, if all the +species of the dog genus were separately created with one pattern of +teeth, the unallied Tasmanian wolf should have been furnished with what +is practically the same pattern from a functional point of view, while +differing from a structural point of view. But, of course, on the theory +of descent with modification, we can well understand why similarities of +habit should have led to similarities of structural appearance of an +adaptive kind in different lines of descent, without there being any +trace of such real or anatomical similarities as could possibly point to +genetic relationship. + +Lastly, to adduce the only remaining argument from classification which +I regard as of any considerable weight, naturalists have found it +necessary, while constructing their natural classifications, to set +great store on what Mr. Darwin calls "chains of affinities." Thus, for +instance, "nothing can be easier than to define a number of characters +common to all birds; but with crustaceans any such definition has +hitherto been found impossible. There are crustaceans at the opposite +ends of the series, which have hardly a character in common; yet the +species at both ends, from being plainly allied to others, and these to +others, and so onwards, can be recognised as unequivocally belonging to +this, and to no other class of the articulata[3]." Now it is evident +that this progressive modification of specific types--where it cannot be +said that the continuity of resemblance is anywhere broken, and yet +terminates in modification so great that but for the connecting links no +one could divine a natural relationship between the extreme members of +the series,--it is evident that such chains of affinity speak most +strongly in favour of a transmutation of the species concerned, while it +is impossible to suggest any explanation of the fact in terms of the +rival theory. For if all the links of such a chain were separately +forged by as many acts of special creation, we can see no reason why B +should resemble A, C resemble B, and so on, but with ever slight though +accumulating differences, until there is no resemblance at all between A +and Z. + + [3] _Origin of Species_, pp. 368-9. + + * * * * * + +I hope enough has now been said to show that all the general principles +and particular facts appertaining to the natural classification of +plants and animals, are precisely what they ought to be according to the +theory of genetic descent; while no one of them is such as might +be--and, indeed, used to be--expected upon the theory of special +creation. Therefore, the only possible way in which all this uniform +body of direct evidence can be met by a supporter of the latter theory, +is by falling back upon the argument from ignorance. We do not know, it +may be said, what hidden reasons there may have been for following all +these general principles in the separate creation of specific types. +Now, it is evident that this is a form of argument which admits of being +brought against all the actual--and even all the possible--lines of +evidence in favour of evolution. Therefore I deem it desirable thus +early in our proceedings to place this argument from ignorance on its +proper logical footing. + +If there were any independent evidence in favour of special creation as +a _fact_, then indeed the argument from ignorance might be fairly used +against any sceptical cavils regarding the _method_. In this way, for +example, Bishop Butler made a legitimate use of the argument from +ignorance when he urged that it is no reasonable objection against a +revelation, _otherwise accredited_, to show that it has been rendered in +a form, or after a method, which we should not have antecedently +expected. But he could not have legitimately employed this argument, +except on the supposition that he had some independent evidence in +favour of the revelation; for, in the absence of any such independent +evidence, appeal to the argument from ignorance would have become a mere +begging of the question, by simply assuming that a revelation had been +made. And thus it is in the present case. A man, of course, may quite +legitimately say, _Assuming that the theory of special creation is +true_, it is not for us to anticipate the form or method of the +process. But where the question is as to whether or not the theory _is_ +true, it becomes a mere begging of this question to take refuge in the +argument from ignorance, or to represent in effect that there is no +question to be discussed. And if, when the form or method is +investigated, it be found everywhere charged with evidence in favour of +the theory of descent, the case becomes the same as that of a supposed +revelation, which has been discredited by finding that all available +evidence points to a natural growth. In short, the argument from +ignorance is in any case available only as a negative foil against +destructive criticism: in no case has it any positive value, or value of +a constructive kind. Therefore, if a theory on any subject is destitute +of positive evidence, while some alternative theory is in possession of +such evidence, the argument from ignorance can be of no logical use to +the former, even though it maybe of such use to the latter. For it is +only the possession of positive evidence which can furnish a logical +justification of the argument from ignorance: in the absence of such +evidence, even the negative value of the argument disappears, and it +then implies nothing more than the gratuitous assumption of a theory. + + * * * * * + +I will now sum up the various considerations which have occupied us +during the present chapter. + +First of all we must take note that the classification of plants and +animals in groups subordinate to groups is not merely arbitrary, or +undertaken only for a matter of convenience and nomenclature--such, for +instance, as the classification of stars in constellations. On the +contrary, the classification of a naturalist differs from that of an +astronomer, in that the objects which he has to classify present +structural resemblances and structural differences in numberless +degrees; and it is the object of his classification to present a tabular +statement of these facts. Now, long before the theory of evolution was +entertained, naturalists became fully aware that these facts of +structural resemblances running through groups subordinate to groups +were really facts of nature, and not merely poetic imaginations of the +mind. No one could dissect a number of fishes without perceiving that +they were all constructed on one anatomical pattern, which differed +considerably from the equally uniform pattern on which all mammals were +constructed, even although some mammals bore an extraordinary +resemblance to fish in external form and habits of life. And similarly +with all the smaller divisions of the animal and vegetable kingdoms. +Everywhere investigation revealed the bonds of close structural +resemblances between species of the same genus, resemblance less close +between genera of the same family, resemblance still less close between +families of the same order, resemblance yet more remote between orders +of the same class, and resemblance only in fundamental features between +classes of the same sub-kingdom, beyond which limit all anatomical +resemblance was found to disappear--the different sub-kingdoms being +formed on wholly different patterns. Furthermore, in tracing all these +grades of structural relationship, naturalists were slowly led to +recognise that the form which a natural classification must eventually +assume would be that of a tree, wherein the constituent branches would +display a progressive advance of organization from below upwards. + +Now we have seen that although this tree-like arrangement of natural +groups was as suggestive as anything could well be of all the forms oL +life being bound together by the ties of genetic relationship, such was +not the inference which was drawn from it. Dominated by the theory of +special creation, naturalists either regarded the resemblance of type +subordinate to type as expressive of divine ideals manifested in such +creation, or else contented themselves with investigating the facts +without venturing to speculate upon their philosophical import. But even +those naturalists who abstained from committing themselves to any theory +of archetypal plans, did not doubt that facts so innumerable and so +universal must have been due to some one co-ordinating principle--that, +even though they were not able to suggest what it was, there must have +been some hidden bond of connexion running through the whole of organic +nature. Now, as we have seen, it is manifest to evolutionists that this +hidden bond can be nothing else than heredity; and, therefore, that +these earlier naturalists, although they did not know what they were +doing, were really tracing the lines of genetic descent as revealed by +degrees of structural resemblance,--that the arborescent grouping of +organic forms which their labours led them to begin, and in large +measure to execute, was in fact a family tree of life. + +Here, then, is the substance of the argument from classification. The +mere fact that all organic nature thus incontestably lends itself to a +natural arrangement of group subordinate to group, when due regard is +paid to degrees of anatomical resemblance--this mere fact of itself +tells so weightily in favour of descent with progressive modification in +different lines, that even if it stood alone it would be entitled to +rank as one of our strongest pieces of evidence. But, as we have seen, +it does not stand alone. When we look beyond this large and general fact +of all the innumerable forms of life being thus united in a tree-like +system by an unquestionable relationship of some kind, to those smaller +details in the science of classification which have been found most +useful as guides for this kind of research, then we find that all these +details, or empirically discovered rules, are exactly what we should +have expected them to be, supposing the real meaning of classification +to have been that of tracing lines of pedigree. + +In particular, we have seen that the most archaic types are both simpler +in their organization and more generalized in their characters than are +the more recent types--a fact of which no explanation can be given on +the theory of special creation. But, upon the theory of natural +evolution, we can without difficulty understand why the earlier forms +should have been the simpler forms, and also why they should have been +the most generalized. For it is out of the older forms that the newer +must have grown; and, as they multiplied, they must have become more and +more differentiated. + +Again, we have seen that there is no correlation between the importance +of any structure from a classificatory point of view, and the importance +of that structure to the organism which presents it. On the contrary, +it is a general rule that "the less any part of the organization is +concerned with special habits, the more important it becomes for +classification." Now, from the point of view of special creation it is +unintelligible why unity of ideal should be most manifested by least +important structures, whereas from the point of view of evolution it is +to be expected that these life-serving structures should have been most +liable to divergent modification in divergent lines of descent, or in +adaptation to different conditions of life, while the trivial or less +important characters should have been allowed to remain unmodified. Thus +we can now understand why all primitive classifications were wrong in +principle when they went upon the assumption that divine ideals were +best exhibited by resemblances between life-serving (and therefore +adaptive) structures, with the result that whales were classed with +fishes, birds with bats, and so on. Nevertheless, these primitive +naturalists were quite logical; for, from the premises furnished by the +theory of special creation, it is much more reasonable to expect that +unity of ideal should be shown in plainly adaptive characters than in +trivial and more or less hidden anatomical characters. Moreover, long +after biological science had ceased consciously to follow any +theological theory, the apparent axiom continued to be entertained, that +structures of most importance to organisms must also be structures of +most importance to systematists. And when at last, in the present +century, this was found not to be the case, no reason could be suggested +why it was not the case. But now we are able fully to explain this +apparent anomaly. + +Once more, we have seen that aggregates of characters presenting +resemblances to one another have always been found to be of special +importance as guides to classification. This, of course, is what we +should have expected, if the real meaning of classification be that of +tracing lines of pedigree; but on the theory of special creation no +reason can be assigned why single characters are not such sure tokens of +a natural arrangement as are aggregates of characters, however trivial +the latter may be. For it is obvious that unity of ideal might have been +even better displayed by everywhere maintaining the pattern of some one +important structure, than by doing so in the case of several unimportant +structures. Take an analogous instance from human contrivances. Unity of +ideal in the case of gun-making would be shown by the same principles of +mechanism running through all the different sizes and shapes of +gun-locks, rather than by the ornamental patterns engraved upon the +outside. Yet it must be supposed that in the mechanisms assumed to have +been constructed by special creation, it was the trivial details rather +than the fundamental principles of these mechanisms which were chosen by +the Divinity to display his ideals. + +And this leads us to the next consideration--namely, that when in two +different lines of descent animals happen to adopt similar habits of +life, the modifications which they undergo in order to fit them for +these habits often induces striking resemblances of structure between +the two animals, as in the case of whales and fish. But in all such +instances it is invariably found that the resemblance is only +superficial and apparent: not anatomical or real. In other words, the +resemblance does not extend further than it is necessary that it +should, if both sets of organs are to be adapted to perform the same +functions. Now this, again, is just what one would expect to find as the +universal rule on the theory of descent, with modification of ancestral +characters. But, on the opposite theory of special creation, I know not +how it is to be explained that among so many instances of close +superficial resemblance between creatures belonging to different +branches of the tree of life, there are no instances of any real or +anatomical resemblance. So far as their structures are adapted to +perform a common function, there is in all such cases what may be termed +a deceptive appearance of some unity of ideal; but, when carefully +examined, it is always found that two apparently identical structures +occurring on different branches of the classificatory tree are in fact +fundamentally different in respect of their structural plan. + +Lastly, we have seen that one of the guiding principles of +classification has been empirically found to consist in setting a high +value on "chains of affinities." That is to say, naturalists not +unfrequently meet with a long series of progressive modifications of +type, which, although it cannot be said that the continuity is anywhere +broken, at last leads to so much divergence of character that, but for +the intermediate links, the members at each end of the chain could not +be suspected of being in any way related. Well, such cases of chains of +affinity obviously tell most strongly in favour of descent with +continuous modification; while it is impossible to suggest why, if all +the links were separately forged by as many acts of special creation, +there should have been this gradual transmutation of characters carried +to the point where the original creative ideal has been so completely +transformed that, but for the accident of the chain being still +complete, no one of nature's interpreters could possibly have discovered +the connexion. For, as we have seen, this is not a case in which any +appeal can be logically made to the argument from ignorance of divine +method, unless some independent evidence could be adduced in favour of +special creation. And that no such independent evidence exists, it will +be the object of future chapters to show. + + + + +CHAPTER III. + +MORPHOLOGY. + + +The theory of evolution supposes that hereditary characters admit of +being slowly modified wherever their modification will render an +organism better suited to a change in its conditions of life. Let us, +then, observe the evidence which we have of such adaptive modifications +of structure, in cases where the need of such modification is apparent. +We may begin by again taking the case of the whales and porpoises. The +theory of evolution infers, from the whole structure of these animals, +that their progenitors must have been terrestrial quadrupeds of some +kind, which gradually became more and more aquatic in their habits. Now +the change in the conditions of their life thus brought about would have +rendered desirable great modifications of structure. These changes would +have begun by affecting the least typical--that is, the least strongly +inherited--structures, such as the skin, claws, and teeth. But, as time +went on, the adaptation would have extended to more typical structures, +until the shape of the body would have become affected by the bones and +muscles required for terrestrial locomotion becoming better adapted for +aquatic locomotion, and the whole outline of the animal more fish-like +in shape. This is the stage which we actually observe in the seals, +where the hind legs, although retaining all their typical bones, have +become shortened up almost to rudiments, and directed backwards, so as +to be of no use for walking, while serving to complete the fish-like +taper of the body. (Fig. 2.) But in the whales the modification has gone +further than this so that the hind legs have ceased to be apparent +externally, and are only represented internally--and even this only in +some species--by remnants so rudimentary that it is difficult to make +out with certainty the homologies of the bones; moreover, the head and +the whole body have become completely fish-like in shape. (Fig. 3.) But +profound as are these alterations, they affect only those parts of the +organism which it was for the benefit of the organism to have altered, +so that it might be adapted to an aquatic mode of existence. Thus the +arm, which is used as a fin, still retains the bones of the shoulder, +fore-arm, wrist, and fingers, although they are all enclosed in a +fin-shaped sack, so as to render them useless for any purpose other than +swimming (Fig. 4.) Similarly, the head, although it so closely resembles +the head of a fish in shape, still retains the bones of the mammalian +skull in their proper anatomical relations to one another; but modified +in form so as to offer the least possible resistance to the water. In +short, it may be said that all the modifications have been effected with +the least possible divergence from the typical mammalian type, which is +compatible with securing so perfect an adaptation to a purely aquatic +mode of life. + + [Illustration: FIG. 2.--Skeleton of Seal, 1/8 nat. size. Drawn from + nature (_R. Coll. Surg. Mus._).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 3.--Skeleton of Greenland Whale, 1/100 nat. + size. The rudimentary bones of the pelvis are shown on a larger + scale in the upper drawing. (From Prof. Flower.)] + + [Illustration: FIG. 4.--Paddle of Whale compared with Hand of Man. + Drawn from nature (_R. Coll. Surg. Mus._).] + +Now I have chosen the case of the whale and porpoise group, because they +offer so extreme an example of profound modification of structure in +adaptation to changed conditions of life. But the same thing may be seen +in hundreds and hundreds of other cases. For instance, to confine our +attention to the arm, not only is the limb modified in the whale for +swimming, but in another mammal--the bat--it is modified for flying, by +having the fingers enormously elongated and overspread with a membranous +web. + +In birds, again, the arm is modified for flight in a wholly different +way--the fingers here being very short and all run together, while the +chief expanse of the wing is composed of the shoulder and fore-arm. In +frogs and lizards, again, we find hands more like our own; but in an +extinct species of flying reptile the modification was extreme, the wing +having been formed by a prodigious elongation of the fifth finger, and a +membrane spread over it and the rest of the hand. (Fig. 5.) Lastly, in +serpents the hand and arm have disappeared altogether. + + [Illustration: FIG. 5.--Wing of Reptile, Mammal, and Bird. Drawn + from nature (_Brit. Mus._).] + +Thus, even if we confine our attention to a single organ, how wonderful +are the modifications which it is seen to undergo, although never losing +its typical character. Everywhere we find the distinction between +homology and analogy which was explained in the last chapter--the +distinction, that is, between correspondence of structure and +correspondence of function. On the one hand, we meet with structures +which are perfectly homologous and yet in no way analogous: the +structural elements remain, but are profoundly modified so as to perform +wholly different functions. On the other hand, we meet with structures +which are perfectly analogous, and yet in no way homologous: totally +different structures are modified to perform the same functions. How, +then, are we to explain these things? By design manifested in special +creation, or by descent with adaptive modification? If it is said by +design manifested in special creation, we must suppose that the Deity +formed an archetypal plan of certain structures, and that he determined +to adhere to this plan through all the modifications which those +structures exhibit. But, if so, why is it that some structures are +selected as typical and not others? Why should the vertebral skeleton, +for instance, be tortured into every conceivable variety of modification +in order to subserve as great a variety of functions; while another +structure, such as the eye, is made in different sub-kingdoms on +fundamentally different plans, notwithstanding that it has throughout to +perform the same function? Will any one have the hardihood to assert +that in the case of the skeleton the Deity has endeavoured to show his +_ingenuity_, by the manifold functions to which he has made the same +structure subservient; while in the case of the eye he has endeavoured +to show his _resources_, by the manifold structures which he has adapted +to serve the same function? If so, it becomes a most unfortunate +circumstance that, throughout both the vegetable and animal kingdoms, +all cases which can be pointed to as showing ingenious adaptation of the +same typical structure to the performance of widely different +functions--or cases of homology without analogy,--are cases which come +within the limits of the same natural group of plants and animals, and +therefore admit of being equally well explained by descent from a common +ancestry; while all cases of widely different structures performing the +same function--or cases of analogy without homology,--are to be found in +different groups of plants or animals, and are therefore suggestive of +independent variations arising in the different lines of hereditary +descent. + +To take a specific illustration. The octopus, or devil-fish, belongs to +a widely different class of animals from a true fish; and yet its eye, +in general appearance, looks wonderfully like the eye of a true fish. +Now, Mr. Mivart pointed to this fact as a great difficulty in the way of +the theory of evolution by natural selection, because it must clearly be +a most improbable thing that so complicated a structure as the eye of a +fish should happen to be arrived at through each of two totally +different lines of descent. And this difficulty would, indeed, be a +formidable one to the theory of evolution, if the similarity were not +only analogical but homological. Unfortunately for the objection, +however, Darwin clearly showed in his reply that in no one anatomical or +homologous feature do the two structures resemble one another; so that, +in point of fact, the two organs do not resemble one another in any +particular further than it is necessary that they should, if both are to +be analogous, or to serve the same function as organs of sight. But now, +suppose that this had not been the case, and that the two structures, +besides presenting the necessary superficial or analogical resemblance, +had also presented an anatomical or homologous resemblance, with what +force might it have then been urged,--Your hypothesis of hereditary +descent with progressive modification being here excluded by the fact +that the animals compared belong to two widely different branches of the +tree of life, how are we to explain the identity of type manifested by +these two complicated organs of vision? The only hypothesis open to us +is intelligent adherence to an ideal plan or mechanism. But as this +cannot now be urged in any comparable case throughout the whole organic +world, we may on the other hand present it as a most significant fact, +that while within the limits of the same large branch of the tree of +life we constantly find the same typical structures modified so as to +perform very different functions, we never find any of these particular +types of structure in other large branches of the tree. That is to say, +we never find typical structures appearing except in cases where their +presence may be explained by the hypothesis of hereditary descent; while +in thousands of such cases we find these structures undergoing every +conceivable variety of adaptive modification. + +Consequently, special creationists must fall back upon another position +and say,--Well, but it may have pleased the Deity to form a certain +number of ideal types, and never to have allowed the structures +occurring in one type to appear in any of the others. We +answer,--Undoubtedly such may have been the case; but, if so, it is a +most unfortunate thing for your theory, because the fact implies that +the Deity has planned his types in such a way as to suggest the +counter-theory of descent. For instance, it would seem most capricious +on the part of the Deity to have made the eyes of an innumerable number +of fish on exactly the same ideal type, and then to have made the eye of +the octopus so exactly like these other eyes in superficial appearance +as to deceive so accomplished a naturalist as Mr. Mivart, and yet to +have taken scrupulous care that in no one ideal particular should the +one type resemble the other. However, adopting for the sake of argument +this great assumption, let us suppose that God did lay down these +arbitrary rules for his own guidance in creation, and then let us see to +what the assumption leads. If the Deity formed a certain number of ideal +types, and determined that on no account should he allow any part of one +type to appear in any part of another, surely we should expect that +within the limits of the same type the same typical structures should +always be present. Thus, remember what efforts, so to speak, have been +made to maintain the uniformity of type in the case of the fore-limb as +previously explained, and should we not expect that in other and similar +cases a similar method should have been followed? Yet we repeatedly find +that this is not the case. Even in the whale, as we have seen, the +hind-limbs are either altogether absent or dwindled almost to nothing; +and it is impossible to see in what respect the hind-limbs are of any +less ideal value than the fore-limbs--which are carefully preserved in +all vertebrated animals except the snakes, and the extinct _Dinornis_, +where again we meet in this particular with a sudden and sublime +indifference to the maintenance of a typical structure. (Fig. 6.)[4] Now +I say that if the theory of ideal types is true, we have in these facts +evidence of a most unreasonable inconsistency. But the theory of descent +with continued adaptive modification fully explains all the known cases; +for in every case the degree of divergence from the typical structure +which an organism presents corresponds, in a general way, with the +length of time during which the divergence has been going on. Thus we +scarcely ever meet with any great departure from the typical form with +respect to one of the organs, without some of the other organs being so +far modified as of themselves to indicate, on the supposition of +descent with modification, that the animal or plant must have been +subject to the modifying influences for an enormously long series of +generations. And this combined testimony of a number of organs in the +same organism is what the theory of descent would lead us to expect, +while the rival theory of design can offer no explanation of the fact, +that when one organ shows a conspicuous departure from the supposed +ideal type, some of the other organs in the same organism should tend to +keep it company by doing likewise. + + [4] It is, however, probable that all species of the genus retained + a tiny rudiment of wings in greatly dwindled scapulo-coracoid bones. + And Mr. H. O. Forbes has detected, in a recently exhumed specimen of + the latter, an indication of the glenoid cavity, for the + articulation of an extremely aborted humerus. (See _Nature_, Jan. + 14th, 1892.) + + [Illustration: FIG. 6.--Skeleton of _Dinornis gravis_, 1/16 nat. + size. Drawn from nature (_Brit. Mus._). As separate cuts on a larger + scale are shown, 1st, the sternum, as this appears in mounted + skeletons, and, 2nd, the same in profile, with its (hypothetical) + scapulo-coracoid attached.] + +As an illustration both of this and of other points which have been +mentioned, I may draw attention to what seems to me a particularly +suggestive case. So-called soldier-or hermit-crabs, are crabs which have +adopted the habit of appropriating the empty shells of mollusks. In +association with this peculiar habit, the structure of these animals +differs very greatly from that of all other crabs. In particular, the +hinder part of the body, which occupies the mollusk-shell, and which +therefore has ceased to require any hard covering of its own, has been +suffered to lose its calcareous integument, and presents a soft fleshy +character, quite unlike that of the more exposed parts of the animal. +Moreover, this soft fleshy part of the creature is specially adapted to +the particular requirements of the creature by having its lateral +appendages--i. e. appendages which in other crustacea perform the +function of legs--modified so as to act as claspers to the inside of the +mollusk-shell; while the tail-end of the part in question is twisted +into the form of a spiral, which fits into the spiral of the +mollusk-shell. Now, in Keeling Island there is a large kind of crab +called _Birgus latro_, which lives upon land and there feeds upon +cocoa-nuts. The whole structure of this crab, it seems to me, +unmistakeably resembles the structure of a hermit-crab (see drawings on +the next page, Fig. 7). Yet this crab neither lives in the shell of a +mollusk, nor is the hinder part of its body in the soft and fleshy +condition just described: on the contrary, it is covered with a hard +integument like all the other parts of the animal. Consequently, I think +we may infer that the ancestors of _Birgus_ were hermit-crabs living in +mollusk-shells; but that their descendants gradually relinquished this +habit as they gradually became more and more terrestrial, while, +concurrently with these changes in habit, the originally soft posterior +parts acquired a hard protective covering to take the place of that +which was formerly supplied by the mollusk-shell. So that, if so, we now +have, within the limits of a single organism, evidence of a whole series +of morphological changes in the past history of its species. First, +there must have been the great change from an ordinary crab to a +hermit-crab in all the respects previously pointed out. Next, there must +have been the change back again from a hermit-crab to an ordinary crab, +so far as living without the necessity of a mollusk-shell is concerned. +From an evolutionary point of view, therefore, we appear to have in the +existing structure of _Birgus_ a morphological record of all these +changes, and one which gives us a reasonable explanation of why the +animal presents the extraordinary appearance which it does. But, on the +theory of special creation, it is inexplicable why this land-crab should +have been formed on the pattern of a hermit-crab, when it never has need +to enter the shell of a mollusk. In other words, its peculiar +structure is not specially in keeping with its present habits, although +so curiously allied to the similar structure of certain other crabs of +totally different habits, in relation to which the peculiarities are of +plain and obvious significance. + + [Illustration: FIG. 7.--Hermit-crabs compared with the cocoa-nut + crab. On the left of the illustration one hermit-crab is represented + as occupying a mollusk-shell, and another (larger specimen) as it + appears when withdrawn from such a shell. On the right of the + illustration the cocoa-nut crab is represented in its natural + habitat on land. When full-grown, however, it is much larger than + our hermit-crabs. The latter are drawn from life, natural size, the + former from a specimen in the British Museum, 1/6 natural size.] + + * * * * * + +I will devote the remainder of this chapter to considering another +branch of the argument from morphology, to which the case of _Birgus_ +serves as a suitable introduction: I mean the argument from rudimentary +structures. + +Throughout both the animal and vegetable kingdoms we constantly meet +with dwarfed and useless representatives of organs, which in other and +allied kinds of animals and plants are of large size and functional +utility. Thus, for instance, the unborn whale has rudimentary teeth, +which are never destined to cut the gums; and throughout its life this +animal retains, in a similarly rudimentary condition, a number of organs +which never could have been of use to any kind of creature save a +terrestrial quadruped. The whole anatomy of its internal ear, for +example, has reference to hearing in air--or, as Hunter long ago +remarked, "is constructed upon the same principle as in the quadruped"; +yet, as Owen says, "the outer opening and passage leading therefrom to +the tympanum can rarely be affected by sonorous vibrations of the +atmosphere, and indeed they are reduced, or have degenerated, to a +degree which makes it difficult to conceive how such vibrations can be +propagated to the ear-drum during the brief moments in which the opening +may be raised above the water." + + [Illustration: FIG. 8.--Rudimentary or vestigial hind-limbs of + Python, as exhibited in the skeleton and on the external surface of + the animal. Drawn from nature, 1/4 nat. size (_Zoological + Gardens_).] + +Now, rudimentary organs of this kind are of such frequent occurrence, +that almost every species presents one or more of them--usually, indeed, +a considerable number. How, then, are they to be accounted for? of +course the theory of descent with adaptive modification has a simple +answer to supply--namely, that when, from changed conditions of life, an +organ which was previously useful becomes useless, it will be suffered +to dwindle away in successive generations, under the influence of +certain natural causes which we shall have to consider in future +chapters. On the other hand, the theory of special creation can only +maintain that these rudiments are formed for the sake of adhering to an +ideal type. Now, here again the former theory appears to be triumphant +over the latter; for, without waiting to dispute the wisdom of making +dwarfed and useless structures merely for the whimsical motive assigned, +surely if such a method were adopted in so many cases, we should expect +that in consistency it would be adopted in all cases. This reasonable +expectation, however, is far from being realized. We have already seen +that in numberless cases, such as that of the fore-limbs of serpents, no +vestige of a rudiment is present. But the vacillating policy in the +matter of rudiments does not end here; for it is shown in a still more +aggravated form where within the limits of the same natural group of +organisms a rudiment is sometimes present and sometimes absent. For +instance, although in nearly all the numerous species of snakes there +are no vestiges of limbs, in the python we find very tiny rudiments of +the hind-limbs. (Fig. 8.) Now, is it a worthy conception of deity that, +while neglecting to maintain his unity of ideal in the case of nearly +all the numerous species of snakes, he should have added a tiny rudiment +in the case of the python--and even in that case should have maintained +his ideal very inefficiently, inasmuch as only two limbs, instead of +four, are represented? how much more reasonable is the naturalistic +interpretation; for here the very irregularity of their appearance in +different species, which constitutes rudimentary structures one of the +crowning difficulties to the theory of special design, furnishes the +best possible evidence in favour of hereditary descent; seeing that this +irregularity then becomes what may be termed the anticipated expression +of progressive dwindling due to inutility. Thus, for example, to return +to the case of wings, we have already seen that in an extinct genus of +bird, _dinornis_, these organs were reduced to such an extent as to +leave it still doubtful whether so much as the tiny rudiment +hypothetically supplied to fig. 6 (p. 61) was present in all the +species. And here is another well-known case of another genus of still +existing bird, which, as was the case with _dinornis_, occurs only in +new zealand. (Fig. 9.) Upon this island there are no four-footed +enemies--either existing or extinct--to escape from which the wings of +birds would be of any service. Consequently we can understand why on +this island we should meet with such a remarkable dwindling away of +wings. + + [Illustration: FIG. 9.--_Apteryx Australis._ Drawn from life in the + Zoological Gardens, 1/8 nat. size. The external wing is drawn to a + scale in the upper part of the cut. The surroundings are supplied + from the most recent descriptions.] + +Similarly, the logger-headed duck of South America can only flap along +the surface of the water, having its wings considerably reduced though +less so than the _Apteryx_ of New Zealand. But here the interesting fact +is that the young birds are able to fly perfectly well. Now, in +accordance with a general law to be considered in a future chapter, the +life-history of an individual organism is a kind of condensed +recapitulation of the life-history of its species. Consequently, we can +understand why the little chickens of the logger-headed duck are able to +fly like all other ducks, while their parents are only able to flap +along the surface of the water. + +Facts analogous to this reduction of wings in birds which have no +further use for them, are to be met with also in insects under similar +circumstances. Thus, there are on the island of Madeira somewhere +between 500 and 600 species of beetles, which are in large part +peculiar to that island, though related to other--and therefore +presumably parent--species on the neighbouring continent. Now, no less +than 200 species--or nearly half the whole number--are so far deficient +in wings that they cannot fly. And, if we disregard the species which +are not peculiar to the island--that is to say, all the species which +likewise occur on the neighbouring continent, and therefore, as +evolutionists conclude, have but _recently_ migrated to the island,--we +find this very remarkable proportion. There are altogether 29 peculiar +genera, and out of these no less than 23 have _all_ their species in +this condition. + +Similar facts have been recently observed by the Rev. A. E. Eaton with +respect to insects inhabiting Kerguelen Island. All the species which he +found on the island--viz. a moth, several flies, and numerous +beetles--he found to be incapable of flight; and therefore, as Wallace +observes, "as these insects could hardly have reached the islands in a +wingless state, even if there were any other known land inhabited by +them, which there is not, we must assume that, like the Madeiran +insects, they were originally winged, and lost their power of flight +because its possession was injurious to them"--Kerguelen Island being +"one of the stormiest places on the globe," and therefore a place where +insects could rarely afford to fly without incurring the danger of being +blown out to sea. + +Here is another and perhaps an even more suggestive class of facts. + +It is now many years ago since the editors of _Silliman's Journal_ +requested the late Professor Agassiz to give them his opinion on the +following question. In a certain dark subterranean cave, called the +Mammoth cave, there are found some peculiar species of blind fishes. Now +the editors of _Silliman's Journal_ wished to know whether Prof. Agassiz +would hold that these fish had been specially created in these caves, +and purposely devoided of eyes which could never be of any use to them; +or whether he would allow that these fish had probably descended from +other species, but, having got into the dark cave, gradually lost their +eyes through disuse. Prof. Agassiz, who was a believer in special +creation, allowed that this ought to constitute a crucial test as +between the two theories of special design and hereditary descent. "If +physical circumstances," he said, "ever modified organized beings, it +should be easily ascertained here." And eventually he gave it as his +opinion, that these fish "were created under the circumstances in which +they now live, within the limits over which they now range, and with the +structural peculiarities which now characterise them." + +Since then a great deal of attention has been paid to the fauna of this +Mammoth cave, and also to the faunas of other dark caverns, not only in +the New, but also in the Old World. In the result, the following general +facts have been fully established. + +(1) Not only fish, but many representatives of other classes, have been +found in dark caves. + +(2) Wherever the caves are totally dark, all the animals are blind. + +(3) If the animals live near enough to the entrance to receive some +degree of light, they may have large and lustrous eyes. + +(4) In all cases the species of blind animals are closely allied to +species inhabiting the district where the caves occur; so that the blind +species inhabiting American caves are closely allied to American +species, while those inhabiting European caves are closely allied to +European species. + +(5) In nearly all cases structural remnants of eyes admit of being +detected, in various degrees of obsolescence. In the case of some of the +crustaceans of the Mammoth cave the foot-stalks of the eyes are present, +although the eyes themselves are entirely absent. + +Now, it is evident that all these general facts are in full agreement +with the theory of evolution, while they offer serious difficulties to +the theory of special creation. As Darwin remarks, it is hard to imagine +conditions of life more similar than those furnished by deep limestone +caverns under nearly the same climate in the two continents of America +and Europe; so that, in accordance with the theory of special creation, +very close similarity in the organizations of the two sets of faunas +might have been expected. But, instead of this, the affinities of these +two sets of faunas are with those of their respective continents--as of +course they ought to be on the theory of evolution. Again, what would +have been the sense of creating useless foot-stalks for the imaginary +support of absent eyes, not to mention all the other various grades of +degeneration in other cases? So that, upon the whole, if we agree with +the late Prof. Agassiz in regarding these cave animals as furnishing a +crucial test between the rival theories of creation and evolution, we +must further conclude that the whole body of evidence which they now +furnish is weighing on the side of evolution. + +So much, then, for a few special instances of what Darwin called +rudimentary structures, but what may be more descriptively +designated--in accordance with the theory of descent--obsolescent or +vestigial structures. It is, however, of great importance to add that +these structures are of such general occurrence throughout both the +vegetable and animal kingdoms, that, as Darwin has observed, it is +almost impossible to point to a single species which does not present +one or more of them. In other words, it is almost impossible to find a +single species which does not in this way bear some record of its own +descent from other species; and the more closely the structure of any +species is examined anatomically, the more numerous are such records +found to be. Thus, for example, of all organisms that of man has been +most minutely investigated by anatomists; and therefore I think it will +be instructive to conclude this chapter by giving a list of the more +noteworthy vestigial structures which are known to occur in the human +body. I will take only those which are found in adult man, reserving for +the next chapter those which occur in a transitory manner during earlier +periods of his life. But, even as thus restricted, the number of +obsolescent structures which we all present in our own persons is so +remarkable, that their combined testimony to our descent from a +quadrumanous ancestry appears to me in itself conclusive. I mean, that +even if these structures stood alone, or apart from any more general +evidences of our family relationships, they would be sufficient to prove +our parentage. Nevertheless, it is desirable to remark that of course +these special evidences which I am about to detail do not stand alone. +Not only is there the general analogy furnished by the general proof of +evolution elsewhere, but there is likewise the more special +correspondence between the whole of our anatomy and that of our nearest +zoological allies. Now the force of this latter consideration is so +enormous, that no one who has not studied human anatomy can be in a +position to appreciate it. For without special study it is impossible to +form any adequate idea of the intricacy of structure which is presented +by the human form. Yet it is found that this enormously intricate +organization is repeated in all its details in the bodies of the higher +apes. There is no bone, muscle, nerve, or vessel of any importance in +the one which is not answered to by the other. Hence there are hundreds +of thousands of instances of the most detailed correspondence, without +there being any instances to the contrary, if we pay due regard to +vestigial characters. The entire corporeal structure of man is an exact +anatomical copy of that which we find in the ape. + +My object, then, here is to limit attention to those features of our +corporeal structure which, having become useless on account of our +change in attitude and habits, are in process of becoming obsolete, and +therefore occur as mere vestigial records of a former state of things. +For example, throughout the vertebrated series, from fish to mammals, +there occurs in the inner corner of the eye a semi-transparent eye-lid, +which is called the nictitating membrane. The object of this structure +is to sweep rapidly, every now and then, over the external surface of +the eye, apparently in order to keep the surface clean. But although the +membrane occurs in all classes of the sub-kingdom, it is more prevalent +in some than in others--e.g. in birds than in mammals. Even, however, +where it does not occur of a size and mobility to be of any use, it is +usually represented, in animals above fishes, by a functionless +rudiment, as here depicted in the case of man. (Fig. 10.) + + [Illustration: FIG. 10.--Illustrations of the nictitating membrane + in the various animals named drawn from nature. The letter N + indicates the membrane in each case. In man it is called the _plica + semilunaris_, and is represented in the two lower drawings under + this name. In the case of the shark (_Galeus_) the muscular + mechanism is shown as dissected.] + +Now the organization of man presents so many vestigial structures thus +referring to various stages of his long ancestral history, that it would +be tedious so much as to enumerate them. Therefore I will yet further +limit the list of vestigial structures to be given as examples, by not +only restricting these to cases which occur in our own organization; but +of them I shall mention only such as refer us to the very last stage of +our ancestral history--viz. structures which have become obsolescent +since the time when our distinctively human branch of the family tree +diverged from that of our immediate forefathers, the Quadrumana. + +(1) _Muscles of the external ear._--These, which are of large size and +functional use in quadrupeds, we retain in a dwindled and useless +condition (Fig. 11). This is likewise the case in anthropoid apes; but +in not a few other Quadrumana (e.g. baboons, macacus, magots, &c.) +degeneration has not proceeded so far, and the ears are voluntarily +moveable. + + [Illustration: FIG. 11.--Rudimentary, or vestigial and useless, + muscles of the human ear. (From _Gray's Anatomy_.)] + +(2) _Panniculus carnosis._--A large number of the mammalia are able to +move their skin by means of sub-cutaneous muscle--as we see, for +instance, in a horse, when thus protecting himself against the sucking +of flies. We, in common with the Quadrumana, possess an active remnant +of such a muscle in the skin of the forehead, whereby we draw up the +eyebrows; but we are no longer able to use other considerable remnants +of it, in the scalp and elsewhere,--or, more correctly, it is rarely +that we meet with persons who can. But most of the Quadrumana (including +the anthropoids) are still able to do so. There are also many other +vestigial muscles, which occur only in a small percentage of human +beings, but which, when they do occur, present unmistakeable homologies +with normal muscles in some of the Quadrumana and still lower +animals[5]. + + [5] See especially Mr. John Wood's papers, _Proc. R. S._, xiii to + xvi, and xviii; also _Journ. Anat._, i and iii. In this connexion + Darwin refers to M. Richard, _Annls. d. Sc. Nat. Zoolg._, tom. + xviii, p. 13, 1852. + +(3) _Feet._--It is observable that in the infant the feet have a strong +deflection inwards, so that the soles in considerable measure face one +another. This peculiarity, which is even more marked in the embryo than +in the infant (see p. 153), and which becomes gradually less and less +conspicuous even before the child begins to walk, appears to me a highly +suggestive peculiarity. For it plainly refers to the condition of +things in the Quadrumana, seeing that in all these animals the feet are +similarly curved inwards, to facilitate the grasping of branches. And +even when walking on the ground apes and monkeys employ to a great +extent the outside edges of their feet, as does also a child when +learning to walk. The feet of a young child are also extraordinarily +mobile in all directions, as are those of apes. In order to show these +points, I here introduce comparative drawings of a young ape and the +portrait of a young male child. These drawings, moreover, serve at the +same time to illustrate two other vestigial characters, which have +often been previously noticed with regard to the infant's foot. I allude +to the incurved form of the legs, and the lateral extension of the great +toe, whereby it approaches the thumb-like character of this organ in the +Quadrumana. As in the case of the incurved position of the legs and +feet, so in this case of the lateral extensibility of the great toe, the +peculiarity is even more marked in embryonic than in infant life. For, +as Prof. Wyman has remarked with regard to the foetus when about an inch +in length, "The great toe is shorter than the others; and, instead of +being parallel to them, is projected at an angle from the side of the +foot, thus corresponding with the permanent condition of this part in +the Quadrumana[6]." So that this organ, which, according to Owen, "is +perhaps the most characteristic peculiarity in the human structure," +when traced back to the early stages of its development, is found to +present a notably less degree of peculiarity. + + [6] _Proc. Nat. Hist. Soc._, Boston, 1863. + + [Illustration: FIG. 12.--Portrait of a young male gorilla (after + Hartmann).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 13.--Portrait of a young male child. + Photographed from life, when the mobile feet were for a short time + at rest in a position of extreme inflection.] + +(4) _Hands._--Dr. Louis Robinson has recently observed that the grasping +power of the whole human hand is so surprisingly great at birth, and +during the first few weeks of infancy, as to be far in excess of present +requirements on the part of a young child. Hence he concludes that it +refers us to our quadrumanous ancestry--the young of anthropoid apes +being endowed with similar powers of grasping, in order to hold on to +the hair of the mother when she is using her arms for the purposes of +locomotion. This inference appears to me justifiable, inasmuch as no +other explanation can be given of the comparatively inordinate muscular +force of an infant's grip. For experiments showed that very young babies +are able to support their own weight, by holding on to a horizontal bar, +for a period varying from one half to more than two minutes[7]. With his +kind permission I here reproduce one of Dr. Robinson's instantaneous, +and hitherto unpublished, photographs of a very young infant. This +photograph was taken after the above paragraph (3) was written, and I +introduce it here because it serves to show incidentally--and perhaps +even better than the preceding figure--the points there mentioned with +regard to the feet and great toes. Again, as Dr. Robinson observes, the +attitude, and the disproportionately large development of the arms as +compared with the legs, give all the photographs a striking resemblance +to a picture of the chimpanzee "Sally" at the Zoological Gardens. For +"invariably the thighs are bent nearly at right angles to the body, and +in no case did the lower limbs hang down and take the attitude of the +erect position." He adds, "In many cases no sign of distress is evinced, +and no cry uttered, until the grasp begins to give way." + + [7] _Nineteenth Century_, November, 1891. + + [Illustration: FIG. 14.--An infant, three weeks old, supporting its + own weight for over two minutes. The attitude of the lower limbs, + feet, and toes, is strikingly simian. Reproduced from an + instantaneous photograph, kindly given for the purpose by Dr. L. + Robinson.] + +(5) _Tail._--The absence of a tail in man is popularly supposed to +constitute a difficulty against the doctrine of his quadrumanous +descent. As a matter of fact, however, the absence of an external tail +in man is precisely what this doctrine would expect, seeing that the +nearest allies of man in the quadrumanous series are likewise destitute +of an external tail. Far, then, from this deficiency in man constituting +any difficulty to be accounted for, if the case were not so--i. e. if +man _did_ possess an external tail,--the difficulty would be to +understand how he had managed to retain an organ which had been +renounced by his most recent ancestors. Nevertheless, as the anthropoid +apes continue to present the rudimentary vestiges of a tail in a few +caudal vertebrae below the integuments, we might well expect to find a +similar state of matters in the case of man. And this is just what we do +find, as a glance at these two comparative illustrations will show. +(Fig. 15.) Moreover, during embryonic life, both of the anthropoid apes +and of man, the tail much more closely resembles that of the lower kinds +of quadrumanous animals from which these higher representatives of the +group have descended. For at a certain stage of embryonic life the tail, +both of apes and of human beings, is actually longer than the legs (see +Fig. 16). And at this stage of development, also, the tail admits of +being moved by muscles which later on dwindle away. Occasionally, +however, these muscles persist, and are then described by anatomists as +abnormalities. The following illustrations serve to show the muscles in +question, when thus found in adult man. + + [Illustration: FIG. 15.--Sacrum of Gorilla compared with that of + Man, showing the rudimentary tail-bones of each. Drawn from nature + (_R. Coll. Surg. Mus._).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 16.--Diagrammatic outline of the human embryo + when about seven weeks old, showing the relations of the limbs and + tail to the trunk (after Allen Thomson), _r_, the radial, and _u_, + the ulnar, border of the hand and fore-arm; _t_, the tibial, and + _f_, the fibular, border of the foot and lower leg; _au_, ear; _s_, + spinal cord; _v_, umbilical cord; _b_, branchial gill-slits; _c_, + tail.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 17.--Front and back view of adult human sacrum, + showing abnormal persistence of vestigial tail-muscles. (The first + drawing is copied from Prof. Watson's paper in _Journl. Anat. and + Physiol._, vol. 79: the second is compiled from different + specimens.)] + +(6) _Vermiform Appendix of the Caecum._--This is of large size and +functional use in the process of digestion among many herbivorous +animals; while in man it is not only too small to serve any such +purpose, but is even a source of danger to life--many persons dying +every year from inflammation set up by the lodgement in this blind tube +of fruit-stones, &c. + +In the orang it is longer than in man (Fig. 18), as it is also in the +human foetus proportionally compared with the adult. (Fig. 19.) In +some of the lower herbivorous animals it is longer than the entire body. + +Like vestigial structures in general, however, this one is highly +variable. Thus the above cut (Fig. 19) serves to show that it may +sometimes be almost as short in the orang as it normally is in man--both +the human subjects of this illustration having been normal. + + [Illustration: FIG. 18.--_Appendix vermiformis_ in Orang and in Man. + Drawn from dried inflated specimens in the Cambridge Museum by Mr. + J. J. Lister. _Il_, ilium; _Co_, colon; _C_, caecum; W, a window cut + in the wall of the caecum; X X X, the appendix.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 19.--The same, showing variation in the Orang. + Drawn from a specimen in the Museum of the Royal College of + Surgeons.] + +(7) _Ear._--Mr. Darwin writes:-- + + The celebrated sculptor, Mr. Woolner, informs me of one little + peculiarity in the external ear, which he has often observed both + in men and women.... The peculiarity consists in a little blunt + point, projecting from the inwardly folded margin, or helix. When + present, it is developed at birth, and, according to Prof. Ludwig + Meyer, more frequently in man than in woman. Mr. Woolner made an + exact model of one such case, and sent me the accompanying + drawing.... The helix obviously consists of the extreme margin of + the ear folded inwards; and the folding appears to be in some + manner connected with the whole external ear being permanently + pressed backwards. In many monkeys, which do not stand high in the + order, as baboons and some species of macacus, the upper portion of + the ear is slightly pointed, and the margin is not at all folded + inwards; but if the margin were to be thus folded, a slight point + would necessarily project towards the centre.... The following + wood-cut is an accurate copy of a photograph of the foetus of an + orang (kindly sent me by Dr. Nitsche), in which it may be seen how + different the pointed outline of the ear is at this period from its + adult condition, when it bears a close general resemblance to that + of man [including even the occasional appearance of the projecting + point shown in the preceding woodcut]. It is evident that the + folding over of the tip of such an ear, unless it changed greatly + during its further development, would give rise to a point + projecting inwards[8]. + + [8] _Descent of Man_, 2nd ed., pp. 15-16. + + [Illustration: FIG. 20.--Human ear, modelled and drawn by Mr. + Woolner. _a_, the projecting point.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 21.--Foetus of an Orang. Exact copy of a + photograph, showing the form of the ear at this early stage.] + +The following woodcut serves still further to show vestigial +resemblances between the human ear and that of apes. The last two +figures illustrate the general resemblance between the normal ear of +foetal man and the ear of an adult orang-outang. The other two figures +on the lower line are intended to exhibit occasional modifications of +the adult human ear, which approximate simian characters somewhat more +closely than does the normal type. It will be observed that in their +comparatively small lobes these ears resemble those of all the apes; and +that while the outer margin of one is not unlike that of the Barbary +ape, the outer margin of the other follows those of the chimpanzee and +orang. Of course it would be easy to select individual human ears which +present either of these characters in a more pronounced degree; but +these ears have been chosen as models because they present both +characters in conjunction. The upper row of figures likewise shows the +close similarity of hair-tracts, and the direction of growth on the part +of the hair itself, in cases where the human ear happens to be of an +abnormally hirsute character. But this particular instance (which I do +not think has been previously noticed) introduces us to the subject of +hair, and hair-growth, in general. + + [Illustration: FIG. 22.--Vestigial characters of human ears. Drawn + from nature.] + +(8) _Hair._--Adult man presents rudimentary hair over most parts of the +body. Wallace has sought to draw a refined distinction between this +vestigial coating and the useful coating of quadrumanous animals, in the +absence of the former from the human back. But even this refined +distinction does not hold. On the one hand, the comparatively hairless +chimpanzee which died last year in the Zoological Gardens (_T. calvus_) +was remarkably denuded over the back; and, on the other hand, men who +present a considerable development of hair over the rest of their bodies +present it also on their backs and shoulders. Again, in all men the +rudimentary hair on the upper and lower arm is directed towards the +elbow--a peculiarity which occurs nowhere else in the animal kingdom, +with the exception of the anthropoid apes and a few American monkeys, +where it presumably has to do with arboreal habits. For, when sitting in +trees, the orang, as observed by Mr. Wallace, places its hands above its +head with its elbows pointing downwards: the disposition of hair on +the arms and fore-arms then has the effect of thatch in turning the +rain. Again, I find that in all species of apes, monkeys, and baboons +which I have examined (and they have been numerous), the hair on the +backs of the hands and feet is continued as far as the first row of +phalanges; but becomes scanty, or disappears altogether, on the second +row; while it is invariably absent on the terminal row. I also find that +the same peculiarity occurs in man. We all have rudimentary hair on the +first row of phalanges, both of hands and feet: when present at all, it +is more scanty on the second row; and in no case have I been able to +find any on the terminal row. In all cases these peculiarities are +congenital, and the total absence or partial presence of hair on the +second phalanges is constant in different species of Quadrumana. For +instance, it is entirely absent in all the chimpanzees, which I have +examined, while scantily present in all the orangs. As in man, it occurs +in a patch midway between the joints. + + [Illustration: FIG. 23.--Hair-tracts on the arms and hands of Man, + as compared with those on the arms and hands of Chimpanzee. Drawn + from life.] + +Besides showing these two features with regard to the disposition of +hair on the human arm and hand, the above woodcut illustrates a third. +By looking closely at the arm of the very hairy man from whom the +drawing was taken, it could be seen that there was a strong tendency +towards a whorled arrangement of the hairs on the backs of the wrists. +This is likewise, as a general rule, a marked feature in the arrangement +of hair on the same places in the gorilla, orang, and chimpanzee. In the +specimen of the latter, however, from which the drawing was taken, this +characteristic was not well marked. The downward direction of the hair +on the backs of the hands is exactly the same in man as it is in all +the anthropoid apes. Again, with regard to hair, Darwin notices that +occasionally there appears in man a few hairs in the eyebrows much +longer than the others; and that they seem to be representative of +similarly long and scattered hairs which occur in the chimpanzee, +macacus, and baboons. + +Lastly, it may be here more conveniently observed than in the next +chapter on Embryology, that at about the sixth month the human foetus +is often thickly coated with somewhat long dark hair over the entire +body, except the soles of the feet and palms of the hands, which are +likewise bare in all quadrumanous animals. This covering, which is +called the lanugo, and sometimes extends even to the whole forehead, +ears, and face, is shed before birth. So that it appears to be useless +for any purpose other than that of emphatically declaring man a child of +the monkey. + +(9) _Teeth._--Darwin writes:-- + + It appears as if the posterior molar or wisdom-teeth were tending + to become rudimentary in the more civilized races of man. These + teeth are rather smaller than the other molars, as is likewise the + case with the corresponding teeth in the chimpanzee and orang; and + they have only two separate fangs.... They are also much more + liable to vary, both in structure and in the period of their + development, than the other teeth. In the Melanian races, on the + other hand, the wisdom-teeth are usually furnished with three + separate fangs, and are usually sound [i. e. not specially liable + to decay]; they also differ from the other molars in size, less + than in the Caucasian races. + +Now, in addition to these there are other respects in which the +dwindling condition of wisdom-teeth is manifested--particularly with +regard to the pattern of their crowns. Indeed, in this respect it would +seem that even in the anthropoid apes there is the beginning of a +tendency to degeneration of the molar teeth from behind forwards. For if +we compare the three molars in the lower jaw of the gorilla, orang, and +chimpanzee, we find that the gorilla has five well-marked cusps on all +three of them; but that in the orang the cusps are not so pronounced, +while in the chimpanzee there are only four of them on the third molar. +Now in man it is only the first of these three teeth which normally +presents five cusps, both the others presenting only four. So that, +comparing all these genera together, it appears that the number of +cusps is being reduced from behind forwards; the chimpanzee having lost +one of them from the third molar, while man has not only lost this, but +also one from the second molar,--and, it may be added, likewise +partially (or even totally) from the first molar, as a frequent +variation among civilized races. But, on the other hand, variations are +often met with in the opposite direction, where the second or the third +molar of man presents five cusps--in the one case following the +chimpanzee, in the other the gorilla. These latter variations, +therefore, may fairly be regarded as reversionary. For these facts I am +indebted to the kindness of Mr. C. S. Tomes. + + [Illustration: FIG. 24.--Molar teeth of lower jaw in Gorilla, Orang, + and Man. Drawn from nature, nat. size (_R. Mus. Coll. Surg._).] + +(10) _Perforations of the humerus._--The peculiarities which we have to +notice under this heading are two in number. First, the supra condyloid +foramen is a normal feature in some of the lower Quadrumana (Fig. 25), +where it gives passage to the great nerve of the fore-arm, and often +also to the great artery. In man, however, it is not a normal feature. +Yet it occurs in a small percentage of cases--viz., according to Sir W. +Turner, in about one per cent., and therefore is regarded by Darwin as a +vestigial character. Secondly, there is inter-condyloid foramen, which +is also situated near the lower end of the humerus, but more in the +middle of the bone. This occurs, but not constantly, in apes, and also +in the human species. From the fact that it does so much more frequently +in the bones of ancient--and also of some savage--races of mankind (viz. +in 20 to 30 per cent. of cases), Darwin is disposed to regard it also as +a vestigial feature. On the other hand, Prof. Flower tells me that in +his opinion it is but an expression of impoverished nutrition during +the growth of the bone. + + [Illustration: FIG. 25.--Perforation of the humerus (supra-condyloid + foramen) in three species of Quadrumana where it normally occurs, + and in Man, where it does not normally occur. Drawn from nature (_R. + Coll. Surg. Mus._).] + +(11) _Flattening of tibia._--In some very ancient human skeletons, there +has also been found a lateral flattening of the tibia, which rarely +occurs in any existing human beings, but which appears to have been +usual among the earliest races of mankind hitherto discovered. According +to Broca, the measurements of these fossil human tibiae resemble those of +apes. Moreover, the bone is bent and strongly convex forwards, while its +angles are so rounded as to present the nearly oval section seen in +apes. It is in association with these ape-like human tibiae that +perforated humeri of man are found in greatest abundance. + +On the other hand, however, there is reason to doubt whether this form +of tibia in man is really a survival from his quadrumanous ancestry. +For, as Boyd-Dawkins and Hartmann have pointed out, the degree of +flattening presented by some of these ancient human bones is _greater_ +than that which occurs in any existing species of anthropoid ape. Of +course the possibility remains that the unknown species of ape from +which man descended may have had its tibia more flattened than is now +observable in any of the existing species. Nevertheless, as some doubt +attaches to this particular case, I do not press it--and, indeed, only +mention it at all in order that the doubt may be expressed. + +Similarly, I will conclude by remarking that several other instances of +the survival of vestigial structures in man have been alleged, which are +of a still more doubtful character. Of such, for example, are the +supposed absence of the genial tubercle in the case of a very ancient +jaw-bone of man, and the disposition of valves in human veins. From the +former it was argued that the possessor of this very ancient jaw-bone +was probably speechless, inasmuch as the tubercle in existing man gives +attachment to muscles of the tongue. From the latter it has been argued +that all the valves in the veins of the human body have reference, in +their disposition, to the incidence of blood-pressure when the attitude +of the body is horizontal, or quadrupedal. Now, the former case has +already broken down, and I find that the latter does not hold. But we +can well afford to lose such doubtful and spurious cases, in view of all +the foregoing unquestionable and genuine cases of vestigial structures +which are to be met with even within the limits of our own +organization--and even when these limits are still further limited by +selecting only those instances which refer to the very latest chapter of +our long ancestral history. + + + + +CHAPTER IV. + +EMBRYOLOGY. + + +We will next consider what of late years has become the most important +of the lines of evidence, not only in favour of the general fact of +evolution, but also of its history: I mean the evidence which has been +yielded by the newest of the sciences, the science of Embryology. But +here, as in the analogous case of adult morphology, in order to do +justice to the mass of evidence which has now been accumulated, a whole +volume would be necessary. As in that previous case, therefore, I must +restrict myself to giving an outline sketch of the main facts. + +First I will display what in the language of Paley we may call "the +state of the argument." + +It is an observable fact that there is often a close correspondence +between developmental changes as revealed by any chronological series of +fossils which may happen to have been preserved, and developmental +changes which may be observed during the life-history of now existing +individuals belonging to the same group of animals. For instance, the +successive development of prongs in the horns of deer-like animals, +which is so clearly shown in the geological history of this tribe, is +closely reproduced in the life-history of existing deer. Or, in other +words, the antlers of an existing deer furnish in their development a +kind of _resume_, or recapitulation, of the successive phases whereby +the primitive horn was gradually superseded by horns presenting a +greater and greater number of prongs in successive species of extinct +deer (Fig. 26). Now it must be obvious that such a recapitulation in the +life-history of an existing animal of developmental changes successively +distinctive of sundry allied, though now extinct species, speaks +strongly in favour of evolution. For as it is of the essence of this +theory that new forms arise from older forms by way of _hereditary_ +descent, we should antecedently expect, if the theory is true, that the +phases of development presented by the individual organism would follow, +in their main outlines, those phases of development through which their +long line of ancestors had passed. The only alternative view is that as +species of deer, for instance, were separately created, additional +prongs were successively added to their antlers; and yet that, in order +to be so added to successive species every individual deer belonging to +later species was required to repeat in his own lifetime the process of +successive additions which had previously taken place in a remote series +of extinct species. Now I do not deny that this view is a possible view; +but I do deny that it is a probable one. According to the evolutionary +interpretation of such facts, we can see a very good _reason_ why the +life-history of the individual is thus a condensed _resume_ of the +life-history of its ancestral species. But according to the opposite +view no reason can be assigned why such should be the case. In a +previous chapter--the chapter on Classification--we have seen that if +each species were created separately, no reason can be assigned why they +should all have been turned out upon structural patterns so strongly +suggestive of hereditary descent with gradual modifications, or slow +divergence--the result being group subordinated to group, with the most +generalized (or least developed) forms at the bottom, and the highest +products of organization at the top. And now we see--or shall +immediately see--that this consideration admits of being greatly +fortified by a study of the developmental history of every individual +organism. If it would be an unaccountable fact that every separately +created species should have been created with close structural +resemblances to a certain limited number of other species, less close +resemblances to certain further species, and so backwards; assuredly it +would be a still more unaccountable fact that every individual of every +species should exhibit in its own person a history of developmental +change, every term of which corresponds with the structural +peculiarities of its now extinct predecessors--and this in the exact +historical order of their succession in geological time. The more that +we think about this antithesis between the naturalistic and the +non-naturalistic interpretations, the greater must we feel the contrast +in respect of rationality to become; and, therefore, I need not spend +time by saying anything further upon the antecedent standing of the two +theories in this respect. The evidence, then, which I am about to adduce +from the study of development in the life-histories of individual +organisms, will be regarded by me as so much unquestionable evidence in +favour of similar processes of development in the life-histories of +their respective species--in so far, I mean, as the two sets of changes +admit of being proved parallel. + + [Illustration: FIG. 26.--Antlers of Stag, showing successive + addition of branches in successive years. Drawn from nature (_Brit. + Mus._).] + +In the only illustration hitherto adduced--viz. that of deers' +horns--the series of changes from a one-pronged horn to a fully +developed arborescent antler, is a series which takes place during the +adult life of the animal; for it is only when the breeding age has been +attained that horns are required to appear. But seeing that every animal +passes through most of the phases of its development, not only before +the breeding age has been attained, but even before the time of its own +birth, clearly the largest field for the study of individual development +is furnished by embryology. For instance, there is a salamander which +differs from most other salamanders in being exclusively terrestrial in +its habits. Now, the young of this salamander before their birth are +found to be furnished with gills, which, however, they are never +destined to use. Yet these gills are so perfectly formed, that if the +young salamanders be removed from the body of their mother shortly +before birth, and be then immediately placed in water, the little +animals show themselves quite capable of aquatic respiration, and will +merrily swim about in a medium which would quickly drown their own +parent. Here, then, we have both morphological and physiological +evidence pointing to the possession of gills by the ancestors of the +land salamander. + +It would be easy to devote the whole of the present chapter to an +enumeration of special instances of the kinds thus chosen for purposes +of illustration; but as it is desirable to take a deeper, and therefore +a more general view of the whole subject, I will begin at the +foundation, and gradually work up from the earliest stages of +development to the latest. Before starting, however, I ask the reader to +bear in mind one consideration, which must reasonably prevent our +anticipating that in _every case_ the life-history of an individual +organism should present a _full_ recapitulation of the life-history of +its ancestral line of species. Supposing the theory of evolution to be +true, it must follow that in many cases it would have been more or less +disadvantageous to a developing type that it should have been obliged to +reproduce in its individual representatives all the phases of +development previously undergone by its ancestry--even within the limits +of the same family. We can easily understand, for example, that the +waste of material required for building up the useless gills of the +embryonic salamanders is a waste which, sooner or later, is likely to be +done away with; so that the fact of its occurring at all is in itself +enough to show that the change from aquatic to terrestrial habits on the +part of this species must have been one of comparatively recent +occurrence. Now, in as far as it is detrimental to a developing type +that it should pass through any particular ancestral phases of +development, we may be sure that natural selection--or whatever other +adjustive causes we may suppose to have been at work in the adaptation +of organisms to their surroundings--will constantly seek to get rid of +this necessity, with the result, when successful, of dropping out the +detrimental phases. Thus the foreshortening of developmental history +which takes place in the individual lifetime may be expected often to +take place, not only in the way of condensation, but also in the way of +excision. Many pages of ancestral history may be recapitulated in the +paragraphs of embryonic development, while others may not be so much as +mentioned. And that this is the true explanation of what embryologists +term "direct" development--or of a more or less sudden leap from one +phase to another, without any appearance of intermediate phases--is +proved by the fact that in some cases both direct and indirect +development occur within the same group of organisms, some genera or +families having dropped out the intermediate phases which other genera +or families retain. + + * * * * * + +The argument from embryology must be taken to begin with the first +beginning of individual life in the ovum. And, in order to understand +the bearings of the argument in this its first stage, we must consider +the phenomena of reproduction in the simplest form which these phenomena +are known to present. + +The whole of the animal kingdom is divided into two great groups, which +are called the Protozoa and the Metazoa. Similarly, the whole of the +vegetable kingdom is divided into the Protophyta and the Metaphyta. The +characteristic feature of all the Protozoa and Protophyta is that the +organism consists of a single physiological cell, while the +characteristic of all the Metazoa and Metaphyta is that the organism +consists of a plurality of physiological cells, variously modified to +subserve different functions in the economy of the animal or plant, as +the case may be. For the sake of brevity, I shall hereafter deal only +with the case of animals (Protozoa and Metazoa); but it may throughout +be understood that everything which is said applies also to the case of +plants (Protophyta and Metaphyta). + +A Protozooen (like a Protophyton) is a solitary cell, or a "unicellular +organism," while a Metazooen (like a Metaphyton) is a society of cells, +or a "multicellular organism." Now, it is only in the multicellular +organisms that there is any observable distinction of sex. In all the +unicellular organisms the phenomena of reproduction appear to be more or +less identical with those of growth. Nevertheless, as these phenomena +are here in some cases suggestively peculiar, I will consider them more +in detail. + +A Protozooen is a single corpuscle of protoplasm which in different +species of Protozoa varies in size from more than one inch to less than +1/1000 of an inch in diameter. In some species there is an enveloping +cortical substance; in other species no such substance can be detected. +Again, in most species there is a nucleus, while in other species no +such differentiation of structure has hitherto been observed. +Nevertheless, from the fact that the nucleus occurs in the majority of +Protozoa, coupled with the fact that the demonstration of this body is +often a matter of extreme difficulty, not only in some of the Protozoa +where it has been but recently detected, but also in the case of certain +physiological cells elsewhere,--from these facts it is not unreasonable +to suppose that all the Protozoa possess a nucleus, whether or not it +admits of being rendered visible by histological methods thus far at our +disposal. If this is the case, we should be justified in saying, as I +have said, that a Protozooen is an isolated physiological cell, and, like +cells in general, multiplies by means of what Spencer and Haeckel have +aptly called a process of discontinuous growth. That is to say, when a +cell reaches maturity, further growth takes place in the direction of a +severance of its substance--the separated portion thus starting anew as +a distinct physiological unit. But, notwithstanding the complex changes +which have been more recently observed to take place in the nucleus of +some Protozoa prior to their division, the process of multiplication by +division may still be regarded as a process of growth, which differs +from the previous growth of the individual cell in being attended by a +severance of continuity. If we take a suspended drop of gum, and +gradually add to its size by allowing more and more gum to flow into it, +a point will eventually be reached at which the force of gravity will +overcome that of cohesion, and a portion of the drop will fall away from +the remainder. Here we have a rough physical simile, although of course +no true analogy. In virtue of a continuous assimilation of nutriment, +the protoplasm of a cell increases in mass, until it reaches the size at +which the forces of disruption overcome those of cohesion--or, in other +words, the point at which increase of size is no longer compatible with +continuity of substance. Nevertheless, it must not be supposed that the +process is thus merely a physical one. The phenomena which occur even in +the simplest--or so-called "direct"--cell-division, are of themselves +enough to prove that the process is vital, or physiological; and this in +a high degree of specialization. But so, likewise, are all processes of +growth in organic structures; and therefore the simile of the drop of +gum is not to be regarded as a true analogy: it serves only to indicate +the fact that when cell-growth proceeds beyond a certain point +cell-division ensues. The size to which cells may grow before they thus +divide is very variable in different kinds of cells; for while some may +normally attain a length of ten or twelve inches, others divide before +they measure 1/1000 of an inch. This, however, is a matter of detail, +and does not affect the general physiological principles on which we are +at present engaged. + +Now, as we have seen, a Protozooen is a single cell; for even although in +some of the higher forms of protozoal life a colony of cells may be +bound together in organic connexion, each of these cells is in itself an +"individual," capable of self-nourishment, reproduction, and, generally, +of independent existence. Consequently, when the growth of a Protozooen +ends in a division of its substance, the two parts wander away from each +other as separate organisms. (Fig. 27.) + + [Illustration: FIG. 27.--Fission of a Protozooen. In the left-hand + drawing the process is represented as having advanced sufficiently + far to have caused a division and segregation both of the nucleus + and the vesicle. In the right-hand drawing the process is + represented as complete. _n_, N, severed nucleus; _vc_, severed + vesicle; _ps_, pseudopodia; _f_, ingested food.] + +The next point we have to observe is, that in all cases where a cell or +a Protozooen multiplies by way of fissiparous division, the process +begins in the nucleus. If the nucleus divides into two parts, the whole +cell will eventually divide into two parts, each of which retains a +portion of the original nucleus, as represented in the above figure. If +the nucleus divides into three, four, or even, as happens in the +development of some embryonic tissues, into as many as six parts, the +cell will subdivide into a corresponding number, each retaining a +portion of the nucleus. Therefore, in all cases of fissiparous division, +the seat or origin of the process is the nucleus. + +Thus far, then, the phenomena of multiplication are identical in all the +lowest or unicellular organisms, and in the constituent cells of all the +higher or multicellular. And this is the first point which I desire to +make apparent. For where the object is to prove a continuity between the +phenomena of growth and reproduction, it is of primary importance to +show--1st, that there is such a continuity in the case of all the +unicellular organisms, and, 2nd, that there are all the above points of +resemblance between the multiplication of cells in the unicellular and +in the multicellular organisms. + +It remains to consider the points of difference, and, if possible, to +show that these do not go to disprove the doctrine of continuity which +the points of resemblance so forcibly indicate. + +The first point of difference obviously is, that in the case of all the +multicellular organisms the two or more "daughter-cells," which are +produced by division of the "mother-cell," do not wander away from one +another; but, as a rule, they continue to be held in more or less close +apposition by means of other cells and binding membranes,--with the +result of giving rise to those various "tissues," which in turn go to +constitute the material of "organs." I cannot suppose, however, that any +advocate of discontinuity will care to take his stand at this point. +But, if any one were so foolish as to do so, it would be easy to +dislodge him by describing the state of matters in some of the Protozoa +where a number of unicellular "individuals" are organically united so as +to form a "colony." These cases serve to bridge this distinction between +Protozoa and Metazoa, of which therefore we may now take leave. + +In the second place, there is the no less obvious distinction that the +result of cell-division in the Metazoa is not merely to multiply cells +all of the same kind: on the contrary, the process here gives rise to as +many different kinds of cells as there are different kinds of tissue +composing the adult organism. But no one, I should think, is likely to +oppose the doctrine of continuity on the ground of this distinction. For +the distinction is clearly one which must necessarily arise, if the +doctrine of continuity between unicellular and multicellular organisms +be true. In other words, it is a distinction which the theory of +evolution itself must necessarily pre-suppose, and therefore it is no +objection to the theory that its pre-supposition is realized. Moreover, +as we shall see better presently, there is no difficulty in +understanding why this distinction should have arisen, so soon as it +became necessary (or desirable) that individual cells, when composing a +"colony," should conform to the economic principle of the division of +labour--a principle, indeed, which is already foreshadowed in the +constituent parts of a single cell, since the nucleus has one set of +functions and its surrounding protoplasm another. + +But now, in the third place, we arrive at a more important distinction, +and one which lies at the root of the others still remaining to be +considered. I refer to sexual propagation. For it is a peculiarity of +the multicellular organisms that, although many of them may likewise +propagate themselves by other means (Fig. 28), they all propagate +themselves by means of sexual congress. Now, in its essence, sexual +congress consists in the fusion of two specialized cells (or, as now +seems almost certain, of the nuclei thereof), so that it is out of such +a combination that the new individual arises by means of successive +cell-divisions, which, beginning in the fertilized ovum, eventually +build up all the tissues and organs of the body. + + [Illustration: FIG. 28.--_Hydra viridis_, partly in section. M, + mouth; O, ovary, or bud containing female reproductive cells; T, + testis, or bud containing male reproductive cells. In addition to + these buds containing germinal elements alone, there is another + which illustrates the process of "gemmation"--i. e. the direct + out-growth of a fully formed offspring.] + +This process clearly indicates very high specialization on the part of +germ-cells. For we see by it that although these cells when young +resemble all other cells in being capable of self-multiplication by +binary division (thus reproducing cells exactly like themselves), when +older they lose this power; but, at the same time, they acquire an +entirely new and very remarkable power of giving rise to a vast +succession of many different kinds of cells, all of which are mutually +correlated as to their several functions, so as to constitute a +hierarchy of cells--or, to speak literally, a multicellular +_co-organization_. Here it is that we touch the really important +distinction between the Protozoa and the Metazoa; for although I have +said that some of the higher Protozoa foreshadow this state of matters +in forming cell-colonies, it must now be noted that the cells composing +such colonies are all of the same kind; and, therefore, that the +principle of producing different kinds of cells which, by mutual +co-adaptation of functions, shall be capable of constructing a +multicellular Metazooen,--this great principle of _co-organization_ is +but dimly nascent in the cell-colonies of Protozoa. And its marvellous +development in the Metazoa appears ultimately to depend upon the highly +specialized character of germ-cells. Even in cases where multicellular +organisms are capable of reproducing their kind without the need of any +preceding process of fertilization (parthenogenesis), and even in the +still more numerous cases where complete organisms are budded forth from +any part of their parent organism (gemmation, Fig. 28), there is now +very good reason to conclude that these powers of a-sexual reproduction +on the part of multicellular organisms are all ultimately due to the +specialized character of their germ-cells. For in all these cases the +tissues of the parent, from which the budding takes place, were +ultimately derived from germ-cells--no matter how many generations of +budded organisms may have intervened. And that propagation by budding, +&c, in multicellular organisms is thus ultimately due to their +propagation by sexual methods, seems to be further shown by certain +facts which will have to be discussed at some length in my next volume. +Here, therefore, I will mention only one of them--and this because it +furnishes what appears to be another important distinction between the +Protozoa and the Metazoa. + +In nearly all cases where a Protozooen multiplies itself by fission, the +process begins by a simple division of the nucleus. But when a Metazooen +is developed from a germ-cell, although the process likewise begins by a +division of the nucleus, this division is not a simple or direct one; on +the contrary, it is inaugurated by a series of processes going on within +the nucleus, which are so enormously complex, and withal so beautifully +ordered, that to my mind they constitute the most wonderful--if not also +the most suggestive--which have ever been revealed by microscopical +research. It is needless to say that I refer to the phenomena of +karyokinesis. A few pages further on they will be described more fully. +For our present purposes it is sufficient to give merely a pictorial +illustration of their successive phases; for a glance at such a +representation serves to reveal the only point to which attention has +now to be drawn--namely, the immense complexity of the processes in +question, and therefore the contrast which they furnish to the simple +(or "direct") division of the nucleus preparatory to cell-division in +the unicellular organisms. Here, then (Fig. 29), we see the complex +processes of karyokinesis in the first two stages of egg-cell division. +But similar processes continue to repeat themselves in subsequent +stages; and this, there is now good reason to believe, throughout _all_ +the stages of cell-division, whereby the original egg-cell eventually +constructs an entire organism. In other words, all the cells composing +all the tissues of a multicellular organism, at all stages of its +development, are probably originated by these complex processes, which +differ so much from the simple process of direct division in the +unicellular organisms[9]. In this important respect, therefore, it does +at first sight appear that we have a distinction between the Protozoa +and the Metazoa of so pronounced a character, as fairly to raise the +question whether cell-division is fundamentally identical in unicellular +and in multicellular organisms. + + [9] I say "probably," because analogy points in this direction. As a + matter of fact, in many cases of tissue-formation karyokinesis has + not hitherto been detected. But even if in such cases it does not + occur--i. e. if failure to detect its occurrence be not due merely + to still remaining imperfections of our histological methods,--the + large number of cases in which it has been seen to occur in the + formation of sundry tissues are of themselves sufficient to indicate + some important difference between cells derived from ova (metazoal), + and cells which have not been so derived (protozoal). Which is the + point now under discussion. + + [Illustration: FIG. 29.--Successive stages in the division of the + ovum, or egg-cell, of a worm. (After Strasburger.) _a_ to _d_ show + the changes taking place in the nucleus and surrounding + cell-contents, which result in the first segmentation of the ovum at + _e_; _f_ and _g_ show a repetition of these changes in each of the + two resulting cells, leading to the second segmentation stage at + _h_.] + +Lastly, the only other distinction of a physiologically significant kind +between a single cell when it occurs as a Protozooen and when it does so +as the unfertilized ovum of a Metazooen is, that in the latter case the +nucleus discharges from its own substance two minute protoplasmic masses +("polar bodies"), which are then eliminated from the cell altogether. +This process, which will be more fully described later on, appears to be +of invariable occurrence in the case of all egg-cells, while nothing +resembling it has ever been observed in any of the Protozoa. + +We must now consider these several points of difference _seriatim_. + +First, with regard to sexual propagation, we have already seen that this +is by no means the only method of propagation among the multicellular +organisms; and it now remains to add that, on the other hand, there is, +to say the least, a suggestive foreshadowing of sexual propagation among +the unicellular organisms. For although simple binary fission is here +the more usual mode of multiplication, very frequently two (rarely three +or more) Protozoa of the same species come together, fuse into a single +mass, and thus become very literally "one flesh." This process of +"conjugation" is usually (though by no means invariably) followed by a +period of quiescent "encystation"; after which the contents of the cyst +escape in the form of a number of minute particles, or "spores," and +these severally develope into the parent type. Obviously this process of +conjugation, when it is thus a preliminary to multiplication, appears to +be in its essence the same as fertilization. And if it be objected that +encystation and spore-formation in the Protozoa are not always preceded +by conjugation, the answer would be that neither is oviparous +propagation in the Metazoa invariably preceded by fertilization. + +Nevertheless, that there are great distinctions between true sexual +propagation and this foreshadowing of it in conjugation I do not deny. +The question, however, is whether they be so great as to justify any +argument against an historical continuity between them. What, then, are +these remaining distinctions? Briefly, as we have seen, they are the +extrusion from egg-cells of polar bodies, and the occurrence, both in +egg-cells and their products (tissue-cells), of the process of +karyokinesis. But, as regards the polar bodies, it is surely not +difficult to suppose that, whatever their significance may be, it is +probably in some way or another connected with the high specialization +of the functions which an egg-cell has to discharge. Nor is there any +difficulty in further supposing that, whatever purpose is served by +getting rid of polar bodies, the process whereby they are got rid of was +originally one of utilitarian development--i. e. a process which at its +commencement did not betoken any difference of kind, or breach of +continuity, between egg-cells and cells of simpler constitution. + +Lastly, with respect to karyokinesis, although it is true that the +microscope has in comparatively recent years displayed this apparently +important distinction between unicellular and multicellular organisms, +two considerations have here to be supplied. The first is, that in some +of the Protozoa processes very much resembling those of karyokinesis +have already been observed taking place in the nucleus preparatory to +its division. And although such processes do not present quite the same +appearances as are to be met with in egg-cells, neither do the +karyokinetic processes in tissue-cells, which in their sundry kinds +exhibit great variations in this respect. Moreover, even if such were +not the case, the bare fact that nuclear division is not invariably of +the simple or direct character in the case of all Protozoa, is +sufficient to show that the distinction now before us--like the one last +dealt with--is by no means absolute. As in the case of sexual +propagation, so in that of karyokinesis, processes which are common to +all the Metazoa are not wholly without their foreshadowings in the +Protozoa. And seeing how greatly exalted is the office of egg-cells--and +even of tissue-cells--as compared with that of their supposed ancestry +in protozoal cells, it seems to me scarcely to be wondered at if their +specializations of function should be associated with corresponding +peculiarities of structure--a general fact which would in no way +militate against the doctrine of evolution. Could we know the whole +truth, we should probably find that in order to endow the most primitive +of egg-cells with its powers of marshalling its products into a living +army of cell-battalions, such an egg-cell must have been passed through +a course of developmental specialization of so elaborate a kind, that +even the complex processes of karyokinesis are but a very inadequate +expression thereof. + +Probably I have now said enough to show that, remarkable and altogether +exceptional as the properties of germ-cells of the multicellular +organisms unquestionably show themselves to be, yet when these +properties are traced back to their simplest beginnings in the +unicellular organisms, they may fairly be regarded as fundamentally +identical with the properties of living cells in general. Thus viewed, +no line of real demarcation can be drawn between growth and +reproduction, even of the sexual kind. The one process is, so to speak, +physiologically continuous with the other; and hence, so far as the +pre-embryonic stage of life-history is concerned, the facts cannot +fairly be regarded as out of keeping with the theory of evolution. + +I will now pass on to consider the embryogeny of the Metazoa, beginning +at its earliest stage in the fertilization of the ovum. And here it is +that the constructive argument in favour of evolution which is derived +from embryology may be said properly to commence. For it is surely in +itself a most suggestive fact that all the Metazoa begin their life in +the same way, or under the same form and conditions. _Omne vivum ex +ovo._ This is a formula which has now been found to apply throughout the +whole range of the multicellular organisms. And seeing, as we have just +seen, that the ovum is everywhere a single cell, the formula amounts to +saying that, physiologically speaking, every Metazooen begins its life as +a Protozooen, and every Metaphyton as a Protophyton[10]. + + [10] Even when propagated by budding, a multicellular organism has + been ultimately derived from a germ-cell. + +Now, if the theory of evolution is true, what should we expect to happen +when these germ-cells are fertilized, and so enter upon their severally +distinct processes of development? Assuredly we should expect to find +that the higher organisms pass through the same phases of development as +the lower organisms, up to the time when their higher characters begin +to become apparent. If in the life-history of species these higher +characters were gained by gradual improvement upon lower characters, and +if the development of the higher individual is now a general +recapitulation of that of its ancestral species, in studying this +recapitulation we should expect to find the higher organism successively +unfolding its higher characters from the lower ones through which its +ancestral species had previously passed. And this is just what we do +find. Take, for example, the case of the highest organism, Man. Like +that of all other organisms, unicellular or multicellular, his +development starts from the nucleus of a single cell. Again, like that +of all the Metazoa and Metaphyta, his development starts from the +specially elaborated nucleus of an egg-cell, or a nucleus which has been +formed by the fusion of a male with a female element[11]. When his +animality becomes established, he exhibits the fundamental anatomical +qualities which characterize such lowly animals as polyps and +jelly-fish. And even when he is marked off as a Vertebrate, it cannot be +said whether he is to be a fish, a reptile, a bird, or a beast. Later on +it becomes evident that he is to be a Mammal; but not till later still +can it be said to which order of mammals he belongs. + + [11] It has already been stated that both parthenogenesis and + gemmation are ultimately derived from sexual reproduction. It may + now be added, on the other hand, that the earlier stages of + parthenogenesis have been observed to occur sporadically in all + sub-kingdoms of the Metaxoa, including the Vertebrata, and even the + highest class, Mammalia. These earlier stages consist in + _spontaneous_ segmentations of the ovum; so that even if a virgin + has ever conceived and borne a son, and even if such a fact in the + human species has been unique, still it would not betoken any breach + of physiological continuity. Indeed, according to Weismann's not + improbable hypothesis touching the physiological meaning of polar + bodies, such a fact need betoken nothing more than a slight + disturbance of the complex machinery of ovulation, on account of + which the ovum failed to eliminate from its substance an almost + inconceivably minute portion of its nucleus. + +Here, however, we must guard against an error which is frequently met +with in popular expositions of this subject. It is not true that the +embryonic phases in the development of a higher form always resemble so +many adult stages of lower forms. This may or may not be the case; but +what always is the case is, that the embryonic phases of the higher +form resemble the corresponding phases of the lower forms. Thus, for +example, it would be wrong to suppose that at any stage of his +development a man resembles a jelly-fish. What he does resemble at an +early stage of his development is the essential or groundplan of the +jelly-fish, which that animal presents in _its_ embryonic condition, or +before it begins to assume its more specialized characters fitting it +for its own particular sphere of life. The similarities, therefore, +which it is the function of comparative embryology to reveal are the +similarities of type or morphological plan: not similarities of specific +detail. Specific details may have been added to this, that, and the +other species for their own special requirements, after they had +severally branched off from the common ancestral stem; and so could not +be expected to recur in the life-history of an independent specific +branch. The comparison therefore must be a comparison of embryo with +embryo; not of embryos with adult forms. + + * * * * * + +In order to give a general idea of the results thus far yielded by a +study of comparative embryology in the present connexion, I will devote +the rest of this chapter to giving an outline sketch of the most +important and best established of these results. + +Histologically the ovum, or egg-cell, is nearly identical in all +animals, whether vertebrate or invertebrate. Considered as a cell it is +of large size, but actually it is not more than 1/100, and may be less +than 1/200 of an inch in diameter. In man, as in most mammals, it is +about 1/120. It is a more or less spherical body, presenting a thin +transparent envelope, called the _zona pellucida_, which +contains--first, the protoplasmic cell-substance or "yolk," within which +lies, second, the nucleus or germinal vesicle, within which again lies, +third, the nucleolus or germinal spot. This description is true of the +egg-cells of all animals, if we add that in the case of the lowest +animals--such as sponges, &c.--there is no enveloping membrane: the +egg-cell is here a naked cell, and its constituent protoplasm, being +thus unconfined, is free to perform protoplasmic movements, which it +does after the manner, and with all the activity, of an amoeba. But +even with respect to this matter of an enveloping membrane, there is no +essential difference between an ovum of the lowest and an ovum of the +highest animals. For in their early stages of development within the +ovary the ova of the highest animals are likewise in the condition of +naked cells, exhibiting amoebiform movements; the enveloping membrane +of an ovum being the product of a later development. Moreover this +membrane, when present, is usually provided with one or more minute +apertures, through which the spermatozooen passes when fertilizing the +ovum. It is remarkable that the spermatozoa know, so to speak, of the +existence of these gate-ways,--their snake-like movements being directed +towards them, presumably by a stimulus due to some emanation +therefrom[12]. In the mammalian ovum, however, these apertures are +exceedingly minute, and distributed all round the circumference of the +pellucid envelope, as represented in this illustration (Fig. 32). + + [12] The spermatozooids of certain plants can be strongly attracted + towards a pipette which is filled with malic acid--crowding around + and into it with avidity. + + [Illustration: FIG. 30.--Ovarian ovum of a Mammal, (_a_) magnified + and viewed under pressure, (_b_) burst by increased pressure, with + yolk and nucleus escaping: (_c_) the nucleus more freed from + yolk-substance. (From _Quain's Anatomy_, after Allen Thomson.)] + + [Illustration: FIG. 31.--Amoeboid movements of young egg-cells, _a_, + Amoeboid ovum of _Hydra_ (from Balfour, after Kleitnenberg); _b_, + early ovum of _Toxopneustes variegatus_, with pseudopodia-like + processes (from Balfour, after Selenka); _c_, ovum of _Toxopneustes + lividus_, more nearly ripe (from Balfour, Hertwig). A1 to A4, the + primitive egg-cell of a Chalk-Sponge (_Leuculmis echinus_), in four + successive conditions of motion. B1 to B8, ditto of a Hermit-Crab + (_Chondracanthus cornutus_), in eight successive stages (after E. + von Beneden). C1 to C5, ditto of a Cat, in five successive stages + (after Pflueger). D, ditto of Trout; E, of a Hen; F, of Man. The + first series is taken from the _Encycl. Brit._; the second from + Haeckel's _Evolution of Man_.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 32.--Human ovum, mature and greatly magnified. + (After Haeckel.)] + +In thus saying that the ova of all animals are, so far as microscopes +can reveal, _substantially_ similar, I am of course speaking of the +egg-cell proper, and not of what is popularly known as the egg. The egg +of a bird, for example, is the egg-cell, _plus_ an enormous aggregation +of nutritive material, an egg-shell, and sundry other structures suited +to the subsequent development of the egg-cell when separated from the +parent's body. But all these accessories are, from our present point of +view, accidental or adventitious. What we have now to understand by the +ovum, the egg, or the egg-cell, is the microscopical germ which I have +just described. So far then as this germ is concerned, we find that all +multicellular organisms begin their existence in the same kind of +structure, and that this structure is anatomically indistinguishable +from that of the permanent form presented by the lowest, or unicellular +organisms. But although anatomically indistinguishable, physiologically +they present the sundry peculiarities already mentioned. + +Now I have endeavoured to show that none of these peculiarities are such +as to exclude--or even so much as to invalidate--the supposition of +developmental continuity between the lowest egg-cells and the highest +protozoal cells. It remains to show in this place, and on the other +hand, that there is no breach of continuity between the lowest and the +highest egg-cells; but, on the contrary, that the remarkable uniformity +of the complex processes whereby their peculiar characters are exhibited +to the histologist, is such as of itself to sustain the doctrine of +continuity in a singularly forcible manner. On this account, therefore, +and also because the facts will again have to be considered in another +connexion when we come to deal with Weismann's theory of heredity, I +will here briefly describe the processes in question. + +We have already seen that the young egg-cell multiplies itself by simple +binary division, after the manner of unicellular organisms in +general--thereby indicating, as also by its amoebiform movements, its +fundamental identity with such organisms in kind. But, as we have +likewise seen, when the ovum ceases to resemble these organisms, by +taking on its higher degree of functional capacity, it is no longer able +to multiply itself in this manner. On the contrary, its cell-divisions +are now of an endogenous character, and result in the formation of many +different kinds of cells, in the order required for constructing the +multicellular organism to which the whole series of processes eventually +give rise. We have now to consider these processes _seriatim_. + + [Illustration: FIG. 33.--Stages in the formation of the polar bodies + in the ovum of a star-fish. (After Hertwig.) _g.v._, germinal + vesicle transformed into a spindle-shaped system of fibres; _p.'_, + the first polar body becoming extruded; _p._, _p._, both polar + bodies fully extruded; _f. pn._, female pronucleus, or residue of + the germinal vesicle.] + +First of all the nucleus discharges its polar bodies, as previously +mentioned, and in the manner here depicted on the previous page. (Fig. +33.) It will be observed that the nucleus of the ovum, or the germinal +vesicle as it is called, gets rid first of one and afterwards of the +other polar body by an "indirect," or karyokinetic, process of division. +(Fig. 33.) Extrusion of these bodies from the ovum (or it may be only +from the nucleus) having been accomplished, what remains of the nucleus +retires from the circumference of the ovum, and is called the female +pronucleus. (Fig. 33. _f. pn._) The ovum is now ready for fertilization. +A similar emission of nuclear substance is said by some good observers +to take place also from the male germ-cell, or spermatozooen, at or about +the close of _its_ development. The theories to which these facts have +given rise will be considered in future chapters on Heredity. + +Turning now to the mechanism of fertilization, the diagrams (Figs. 34, +35) represent what happens in the case of star-fish. + + [Illustration: FIG. 34.--Fertilization of the ovum of an echinoderm. + (From _Quain's Anatomy_, after Selenka.) S, spermatozooen; _m. pr._, + male pronucleus; _f. pr._, female pronucleus. 1 to 4 correspond to D + to G in the next figure.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 35.--Fertilization of the ovum of a star-fish. + (From the _Encycl. Brit._ after Fol.) A, spermatozoa in the + mucilaginous coat of the ovum; a prominence is rising from the + surface of the ovum towards a spermatozooen; B, they have almost met; + C, they have met; D, the spermatozooen enters the ovum through a + distinct opening; H, the entire ovum, showing extruded polar bodies + on its upper surface, and the moving together of the male and female + pronuclei; E, F, G, meeting and coalescence of the pronuclei.] + +The sperm-cell, or spermatozooen, is seen in the act of penetrating the +ovum. In the first figure it has already pierced the mucilaginous coat +of the ovum, the limit of which is represented by a line through which +the tail of the spermatozooen is passing: the head of the spermatozooen is +just entering the ovum proper. It may be noted that, in the case of many +animals, the general protoplasm of the ovum becomes aware, so to speak, +of the approach of a spermatozooen, and sends up a process to meet it. +(Fig. 35, A, B, C.) Several--or even many--spermatozoa may thus enter +the coat of the ovum; but normally only one proceeds further, or right +into the substance of the ovum, for the purpose of effecting +fertilization. This spermatozooen, as soon as it enters the periphery of +the yolk, or cell-substance proper, sets up a series of remarkable +phenomena. First, its own head rapidly increases in size, and takes on +the appearance of a cell-nucleus: this is called the male pronucleus. At +the same time its tail begins to disappear, and the enlarged head +proceeds to make its way directly towards the nucleus of the ovum which, +as before stated, is now called the female pronucleus. The latter in its +turn moves towards the former, and when the two meet they fuse into one +mass, forming a new nucleus. Before the two actually meet, the +spermatozooen has lost its tail altogether; and it is noteworthy that +during its passage through the protoplasmic cell-contents of the ovum, +it appears to exercise upon this protoplasm an attractive influence; for +the granules of the latter in its vicinity dispose themselves around it +in radiating lines. All these various phenomena are depicted in the +above wood-cuts. (Figs. 34, 35.) + +Fertilization having been thus effected by fusion of the male and female +pronuclei into a single (or new) nucleus, this latter body proceeds to +exhibit complicated processes of karyokinesis, which, as before shown, +are preliminary to nuclear division in the case of egg-cells. Indeed the +karyokinetic process may begin in both the pronuclei before their +junction is effected; and, even when their junction is effected, it does +not appear that complete fusion of the so-called chromatin elements of +the two pronuclei takes place. For the purpose of explaining what this +means, and still more for the purpose of giving a general idea of the +karyokinetic processes as a whole, I will quote the following +description of them, because, for terseness combined with lucidity, it +is unsurpassable. + + [Illustration: FIG. 36.--Karyokinesis of a typical tissue-cell + (epithelium of Salamander). (After Flemming and Klein.) The series + from A to I represents the successive stages in the movement of the + chromatin fibres during division, excepting G, which represents the + "nucleus-spindle" of an egg-cell. A, resting nucleus; D, + wreath-form; E, single star, the loops of the wreath being broken; + F, separation of the star into two groups of U-shaped fibres; H, + diaster or double star; I, completion of the cell-division and + formation of two resting nuclei. In G the chromatin fibres are + marked _a_, and correspond to the "equatorial plate"; _b_, + achromatin fibres forming the nucleus-spindle; _c_, granules of the + cell-protoplasm forming a "polar star." Such a polar star is seen at + each end of the nucleus-spindle, and is not to be confused with the + diaster H, the two ends of which are composed of _chromatin_.] + + Researches, chiefly due to Flemming, have shown that the nucleus in + very many tissues of higher plants and animals consists of a + capsule containing a plasma of "achromatin," not deeply stained by + re-agents, ramifying in which is a reticulum of "chromatin" + consisting of fibres which readily take a deep stain. (Fig. 36, A). + Further it is demonstrated that, when the cell is about to divide + into two, definite and very remarkable movements take place in the + nucleus, resulting in the disappearance of the capsule and in the + arrangement of its fibres first in the form of a wreath (D), and + subsequently (by the breaking of the loops formed by the fibres) in + the form of a star (E). A further movement within the nucleus leads + to an arrangement of the broken loops in two groups (F), the + position of the open ends of the broken loops being reversed as + compared with what previously obtained. Now the two groups diverge, + and in many cases a striated appearance of the achromatin substance + between the two groups of chromatin loops is observable (H). In + some cases (especially egg-cells) this striated arrangement of the + achromatin is then termed a "nucleus-spindle," and the group of + chromatin loops (G, _a_) is known as "the equatorial plate." At + each end of the nucleus-spindle in these cases there is often seen + a star consisting of granules belonging to the general protoplasm + of the cell (G, _c_). These are known as "polar stars." After the + separation of the two sets of loops (H) the protoplasm of the + general substance of the cell becomes constricted, and division + occurs, so as to include a group of chromatin loops in each of the + two fission products. Each of these then rearranges itself together + with the associated chromatin into a nucleus such as was present in + the mother cell to commence with (I)[13]. + + [13] Ray Lankester, _Encyclop. Brit._, 9th ed., Vol. XIX, pp. 832-3. + +Since the above was published, however, further progress has been made. +In particular it has been found that the chromatin fibres pass from +phase D to phase F by a process of longitudinal splitting (Fig. 37 _g_, +_h_; Fig. 38, VI, VII)--which is a point of great importance for +Weismann's theory of heredity,--and that the protoplasm outside the +nucleus seems to take as important a part in the karyokinetic process as +does the nuclear substance. For the so-called "attraction-spheres" (Fig. +38 II _a_, III, III _a_, VIII to XII), which were at first supposed to +be of subordinate importance in the process as a whole, are now known to +take an exceedingly active part in it (see especially IX to XI). Lastly, +it may be added that there is a growing consensus of authoritative +opinion, that the chromatin fibres are the seats of the material of +heredity, or, in other words, that they contain those essential elements +of the cell which endow the daughter-cells with their distinctive +characters. Therefore, where the parent-cell is an ovum, it follows from +this view that all hereditary qualities of the future organism are +potentially present in the ultra-microscopical structure of the +chromatin fibres. + + [Illustration: FIG. 37.--Study of successive changes taking place in + the nucleus of an epithelium cell, preparatory to division of the + cell. (From _Quain's Anatomy_, after Flemming.) _a_, resting cell, + showing the nuclear network; _b_, first stage of division, the + chromatoplasm transformed into a skein of closely contorted + filaments; _c_ to _f_, further stages in the growth and looping + arrangement of the filaments; _g_, stellate phase, or aster; _h_, + completion of the splitting of the filaments, already begun in _f_ + and _g_; _i_, _j_, _k_, successive stages in separation of the + filaments into two groups; _l_, the final result of this (diaster); + _m_ to _q_, stages in the division of the whole cell into two, + showing increasing contortion of the filaments, until they reach the + resting stage at _q_]. + + [Illustration: FIG. 38.--Formation and conjugation of the pronuclei + in _Ascaris megalocephala_. (From _Quain's Anatomy_, after E. von + Beneden.) _f_, female pronucleus; _m_, male pronucleus; _p_, one of + the polar bodies. + + I. The second polar body has just been extruded; both male and + female pronuclei contain two chromatin particles; those of the male + pronucleus are becoming transformed into a skein. II. The chromatin + in both pronuclei now forms into a skein. + + II _a_. The skeins are more distinct. Two attraction (or + protoplasmic) spheres, each with a central particle united with a + small spindle of achromatic fibres, have made their appearance in + the general substance of the egg close to the mutually approaching + pronuclei. The male pronucleus has the remains of the body of the + spermatozooen adhering to it. + + III. Only the female pronucleus is shown in this figure. The skein + is contracted and thickened. The attraction-spheres are near one + side of the ovum, and are connected with its periphery by a cone of + fibres forming a polar circle, _p.c._; _e.c._, equatorial circle. + + III _a_. The pronuclei have come into contact, and the + spindle-system is now arranged across their common axis. + + IV. Contraction of the skein, and formation of two U-or V-shaped + chromatin fibres in each pronucleus. + + V. The V-shaped chromatin filaments are now quite distinct: the male + and female pronuclei are in close contact.] + + [Illustration: (38 continued) + + VI., VII. The V-shaped filaments are splitting longitudinally; their + structure of fine granules of chromatin is apparent in VII., which + is more highly magnified. The conjugation of the pronuclei is + apparently complete in VII. The attraction-spheres and achromatic + spindle, although present, are not depicted in IV., V., VI., and + VII. + + VIII. Equatorial arrangement of the four chromatin loops in the + middle of the now segmenting ovum: the achromatic substance forming + a spindle-shaped system of granules with fibres radiating from the + poles of the spindle (attraction-spheres); the chromatin forms an + equatorial plate. (Compare Fig. 36 G.) + + IX. Shows diagrammatically the commencing separation of the + chromatin fibres of the conjugated nuclei, and the system of fibres + radiating from the attraction-spheres. (Compare again Fig. 36 G.) + _p.c._, polar circle; _e.c._, equatorial circle; _c.c._, central + particle. + + X. Further separation of the chromatin filaments. Each of the + central particles of the attraction-spheres has divided into two. + + XI. The chromatin fibres are becoming developed into the skeins of + the two daughter-nuclei. These are still united by fibres of + achromatin. The general protoplasm of the ovum is becoming divided. + + XII. The two daughter-nuclei exhibit a chromatin network. Each of + the attraction-spheres has divided into two, which are joined by + fibres of achromatin, and connected with the periphery of the cell + in the same way as in the original or parent sphere, III.] + +As I shall have more to say about these processes in the next volume, +when we shall see the important part which they bear in Weismann's +theory of heredity, it is with a double purpose that I here introduce +these yet further illustrations of them upon a somewhat larger scale. +The present purpose is merely that of showing, more clearly than +hitherto, the great complexity of these processes on the one hand, and, +on the other, the general similarity which they display in egg-cells and +in tissue-cells. But as in relation to this purpose the illustrations +speak for themselves, I may now pass on at once to the history of +embryonic development, which follows fertilization of the ovum. + + * * * * * + +We have seen that when the new nucleus of the fertilized ovum (which is +formed by a coalescence of the male pronucleus with the female) has +completed its karyokinetic processes, it is divided into two equal +parts; that these are disposed at opposite poles of the ovum; and that +the whole contents of the ovum are thereupon likewise divided into two +equal parts, with the result that there are now two nucleated cells +within the spherical wall of the ovum where before there had only been +one. Moreover, we have also seen that a precisely similar series of +events repeat themselves in each of these two cells, thus giving rise to +four cells (see Fig. 29). It must now be added that such duplication is +continued time after time, as shown in the accompanying illustrations +(Figs. 39, 40). + + [Illustration: FIG. 39.--Segmentation of ovum. (After Haeckel.) + Successive stages are marked by the letters A, B, C. D represents + several stages in advance of C.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 40.--The contents of an ovum in an advanced + stage of segmentation, drawn in perspective. (After Haeckel.)] + +All this, it will be noticed, is a case of cell-multiplication, which +differs from that which takes place in the unicellular organisms only in +its being _invariably_ preceded (as far as we know) by karyokinesis, and +in the resulting cells being all confined within a common envelope, and +so in not being free to separate. Nevertheless, from what has already +been said, it will also be noticed that this feature makes all the +difference between a Metazooen and a Protozooen; so that already the ovum +presents the distinguishing character of a Metazooen. + +I have dealt thus at considerable length upon the processes whereby the +originally unicellular ovum and spermatozooen become converted into the +multicellular germ, because I do not know of any other exposition of the +argument from Embryology where this, the first stage of the argument, +has been adequately treated. Yet it is evident that the fact of all the +processes above described being so similar in the case of sexual (or +metazoal) reproduction among the innumerable organisms where it occurs, +constitutes in itself a strong argument in favour of evolution. For the +mechanism of fertilization, and all the processes which even thus far we +have seen to follow therefrom, are hereby shown to be not only highly +complex, but likewise highly specialized. Therefore, the remarkable +similarity which they present throughout the whole animal kingdom--not +to speak of the vegetable--is expressive of organic continuity, rather +than of absolute discontinuity in every case, as the theory of special +creation must necessarily suppose. And it is evident that this argument +is strong in proportion to the uniformity, the specialization, and the +complexity of the processes in question. + +Having occupied so much space with supplying what appear to me the +deficiencies in previous expositions of the argument from Embryology, I +can now afford to take only a very general view of the more important +features of this argument as they are successively furnished by all the +later stages of individual development. But this is of little +consequence, seeing that from the point at which we have now arrived +previous expositions of the argument are both good and numerous. The +following then is to be regarded as a mere sketch of the evidences of +phyletic (or ancestral) evolution, which are so abundantly furnished by +all the subsequent phases of ontogenetic (or individual) evolution. + +The multicellular body which is formed by the series of segmentations +above described is at first a sphere of cells (Fig. 40). Soon, however, +a watery fluid gathers in the centre, and progressively pushes the cells +towards the circumference, until they there constitute a single layer. +The ovum, therefore, is now in the form of a hollow sphere containing +fluid, confined within a continuous wall of cells (Fig. 41 A). The next +thing that happens is a pitting in of one portion of the sphere (B). The +pit becomes deeper and deeper, until there is a complete invagination of +this part of the sphere--the cells which constitute it being +progressively pushed inwards until they come into contact with those at +the opposite pole of the ovum. Consequently, instead of a hollow sphere +of cells, the ovum now becomes an open sac, the walls of which are +composed of a double layer of cells (C). The ovum is now what has been +called a gastrula; and it is of importance to observe that probably all +the Metazoa pass through this stage. At any rate it has been found to +occur in all the main divisions of the animal kingdom, as a glance at +the accompanying figures will serve to show (Fig. 42)[14]. Moreover many +of the lower kinds of Metazoa never pass beyond it; but are all their +lives nothing else than gastrulae, wherein the orifice becomes the mouth +of the animal, the internal or invaginated layer of cells the stomach, +and the outer layer the skin. So that if we take a child's india-rubber +ball, of the hollow kind with a hole in it, and push in one side with +our fingers till internal contact is established all round, by then +holding the indented side downwards we should get a very fair anatomical +model of a gastraea form, such as is presented by the adult condition of +many of the most primitive Metazoa--especially the lower +_Coelenterata_. The preceding figures represent two other such forms +in nature, the first locomotive and transitory, the second fixed and +permanent (Figs. 43, 44). + + [14] In most vertebrated animals this process of gastrulation has + been more or less superseded by another, which is called + delamination; but it scarcely seems necessary for our present + purposes to describe the latter. For not only does it eventually + lead to the same result as gastrulation--i. e. the converting of the + ovum into a double-walled sac,--but there is good evidence among the + lower Vertebrata of its being preceded by gastrulation; so that, + even as to the higher Vertebrata, embryologists are pretty well + agreed that delamination has been but a later development of, or + possibly improvement upon, gastrulation. + + [Illustration: FIG. 41.--Formation of the gastrula of _Amphioxus_. + (After Kowalevsky.) A, wall of the ovum, composed of a single layer + of cells; B, a stage in the process of gastrulation; C, completion + of the process; S, original or segmentation cavity of ovum; _al_, + alimentary cavity of gastrula; _ect_, outer layer of cells; _ent_, + inner layer of cells; _b_, orifice, constituting the mouth in + permanent forms.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 42.--Gastrulation. A, Gastrula of a Zoophyte + (_Gastrophysema_). (After Haeckel.) B, Gastrula of a Worm + (_Sagitta_). (After Kowalevsky.) C, Gastrula of an Echinoderm + (_Uraster_). (After A. Agassiz.) D, Gastrula of an Arthropod + (_Nauplius_). (After Haeckel.) E, Gastrula of a Mollusk (_Limnaeus_). + (After Rabl.) F, Gastrula of a Vertebrate (_Amphioxus_). (After + Kowalevsky.) In all, _d_, indicates the intestinal cavity; _o_, the + primitive mouth; _s_, the cleavage-cavity; _i_, the endoderm, or + intestinal layer; _e_, the ectoderm or skin-layer.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 43.--Gastrula of a Chalk Sponge. (After Haeckel.) + A, External view. B, Longitudinal section. _g_, digestive cavities; + _o_, mouth; _i_, endoderm; _e_, ectoderm.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 44.--_Prophysema primordiale_, an extant + gastraea-form. (After Haeckel.) (A). External view of the whole + animal, attached by its foot to seaweed. (B). Longitudinal section + of the same. The digestive cavity (_d_) opens at its upper end in + the mouth (_m_). Among the cells of the endoderm (_g_) lie amoeboid + egg-cells of large size (_e_). The ectoderm (_h_) is encrusted with + grains of sand, above the sponge spicules.] + +Here, then, we leave the lower forms of Metazoa in their condition of +permanent gastrulae. They differ from the transitory stage of other +Metazoa only in being enormously larger (owing to greatly further +_growth_, without any further _development_ as to matters of fundamental +importance), and in having sundry tentacles and other organs added later +on to meet their special requirements. The point to remember is, that in +all cases a gastrula is an open sac composed of two layers of cells--the +outer layer being called the ectoderm, and the inner the endoderm. They +have also been called the animal layer and the vegetative layer, because +it is the outer layer (ectoderm) that gives rise to all the organs of +sensation and movement--viz. the skin, the nervous system, and the +muscular system; while it is the inner layer (endoderm) that gives rise +to all the organs of nutrition and reproduction. It is desirable only +further to explain that gastrulation does not take place in all the +Metazoa after exactly the same plan. In different lines of descent +various and often considerable modifications of the original and most +simple plan have been introduced; but I will not burden the present +exposition by describing these modifications[15]. It is enough for us +that they always end in the formation of the two primary layers of +ectoderm and endoderm. + + [15] The most extreme of them is that which is mentioned in the last + foot-note. + +The next stage of differentiation is common to all the Metazoa, except +those lowest forms which, as we have just seen, remain permanently as +large gastrulae, with sundry specialized additions in the way of +tentacles, &c. This stage of differentiation consists in the formation +of either a pouch or an additional layer between the ectoderm and the +endoderm, which is called the mesoderm. It is probably in most cases +derived from the endoderm, but the exact mode of its derivation is still +somewhat obscure. Sometimes it has the appearance of itself constituting +two layers; but it is needless to go into these details; for in any case +the ultimate result is the same--viz. that of converting the Metazooen +into the form of a tube, the walls of which are composed of concentric +layers of cells. The outermost layer afterwards gives rise to the +epidermis with its various appendages, and also to the central nervous +system with its organs of special sense. The median layer gives rise to +the voluntary muscles, bones, cartilages, &c., the nutritive systems of +the blood, the chyle, the lymph, and the muscular tube of the intestine. +Lastly, the innermost layer developes into the epithelium lining of the +intestine, with its various appendages of liver, lungs, intestinal +glands, &c. + +I have just said that this three or four layered stage is shared by all +the Metazoa, except those very lowest forms--such as sponges and +jelly-fish--which do not pass on to it. But from this point the +developmental histories of all the main branches of the Metazoa +diverge--the Vermes, the Echinodermata, the Mollusca, the Articulata, +and the Vertebrata, each taking a different road in their subsequent +evolution. I will therefore confine attention to only one of these +several roads or methods, namely, that which is followed by the +Vertebrata--observing merely that, if space permitted, the same +principles of progressive though diverging histories of evolution would +equally well admit of being traced in all the other sub-kingdoms which +have just been named. + +In order to trace these principles in the case of the Vertebrata, it is +desirable first of all to obtain an idea of the anatomical features +which most essentially distinguish the sub-kingdom as a whole. The +following, then, is what may be termed the ideal plan of vertebrate +organization, as given by Prof. Haeckel. First, occupying the major axis +of body we perceive the primitive vertebral column. The parts lying +above this axis are those which have been developed from the ectoderm +and mesoderm--viz. voluntary muscles, central nervous system, and organs +of special sense. The parts lying below this axis are for the most part +those which have been developed from the endoderm--namely, the +digestive tract with its glandular appendages, the circulating system +and the respiratory system. In transverse section, therefore, the ideal +vertebrate consists of a solid axis, with a small tube occupied by the +nervous system above, and a large tube, or body-cavity, below. This +body-cavity contains the viscera, breathing organs, and heart, with its +prolongations into the main blood-vessels of the organism. Lastly, on +either side of the central axis are to be found large masses of +muscle--two on the dorsal and two on the ventral. As yet, however, there +are no limbs, nor even any bony skeleton, for the primitive vertebral +column is hitherto unossified cartilage. This ideal animal, therefore, +is to all appearance as much like a worm as a fish, and swims by means +of a lateral undulation of its whole body, assisted, perhaps, by a +dorsal fin formed out of skin. + + [Illustration: FIG. 45.--Ideal primitive vertebrate, seen from the + left side. (After Haeckel.) _na_, nose; _au_, eye; _g_, ear; _md_, + mouth; _ks_, gill-openings; _x_, notochord; _mr_, spinal tube; _kg_, + gill-vessels; _k_, gill-intestine; _hz_, heart; _ms_, muscles; _ma_, + stomach; _v_, intestinal vein; _c_, body-cavity; _a_, aorta; _l_, + liver; _d_, small intestine; _e_, ovary; _h_, testes; _n_, kidney + canal; _af_, anus; _lh_, true or leather-skin; _oh_, outer-skin + (epidermis); _f_, skin-fold, acting as a fin.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 46.--The same in transverse section through the + ovaries; lettering as in the preceding Fig.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 47.--_Amphioxus lanceolatus_. (After Haeckel.) + _a_, anus; _au_, eye; _b_, ventral muscles; _c_, body-cavity; _ch_, + notochord; _d_, intestine; _do_ and _du_, dorsal and ventral walls + of intestine; _f_, fin-seam; _h_, skin; _k_, gills; _ka_, + gill-artery; _lb_, liver; _lv_, liver-vein; _m 1_, brain-bladder; _m + 2_, spinal marrow; _mg_, stomach; _o_, mouth; _p_, ventral pore; + _r_, dorsal muscle; _s_, tail-fin; _t_, aorta; _v_, intestinal vein; + _x_, boundary between gill-intestine and stomach-intestine; _y_, + hypobranchial groove.] + +Now I should not have presented this ideal representation of a primitive +vertebrate--for I have very little faith in the "scientific use of the +imagination" where it aspires to discharge the functions of a Creator in +the manufacture of archetypal forms--I say I should not have presented +this ideal representative of a primitive vertebrate, were it not that +the ideal is actually realized in a still existing animal. For there +still survives what must be an immensely archaic form of vertebrate, +whose anatomy is almost identical with that of the imaginary type which +has just been described. I allude, of course, to _Amphioxus_, which is +by far the most primitive or generalized type of vertebrated animal +hitherto discovered. Indeed, we may say that this remarkable creature is +almost as nearly allied to a worm as it is to a fish. For it has no +specialized head, and therefore no skull, brain, or jaws: it is +destitute alike of limbs, of a centralized heart, of developed liver, +kidneys, and, in short, of most of the organs which belong to the other +Vertebrata. It presents, however, a rudimentary backbone, in the form of +what is called a notochord. Now a primitive dorsal axis of this kind +occurs at a very early period of embryonic life in all vertebrated +animals; but, with the exception of _Amphioxus_, in all other existing +Vertebrata this structure is not itself destined to become the permanent +or bony vertebral column. On the contrary, it gives way to, or is +replaced by, this permanent bony structure at a later stage of +development. Consequently, it is very suggestive that so distinctively +embryonic a structure as this temporary cartilaginous axis of all the +other known Vertebrata should be found actually persisting to the +present day as the permanent axis of _Amphioxus_. In many other +respects, likewise, the early embryonic history of other Vertebrata +refers us to the permanent condition of _Amphioxus_. In particular, we +must notice that the wall of the neck is always perforated by what in +_Amphioxus_ are the gill-openings, and that the blood-vessels as they +proceed from the heart are always distributed in the form of what are +called gill-arches, adapted to convey the blood round or through the +gills for the purpose of aeration. In all existing fish and other +gill-breathing Vertebrata, this arrangement is permanent. It is +likewise met with in a peculiar kind of worm, called _Balanoglossus_--a +creature so peculiar, indeed, that it has been constituted by Gegenbaur +a class all by itself. We can see by the wood-cuts that it presents a +series of gill-slits, like the homologous parts of the fishes with which +it is compared--i. e. fishes of a comparatively low type of +organization, which dates from a time before the development of external +gills. (Figs. 48, 49, 50.) Now, as I have already said, these +gill-_slits_ are supported internally by the gill-_arches_, or the +blood-vessels which convey the blood to be oxygenized in the branchial +apparatus (see below, Figs. 51, 52, 53); and the whole arrangement is +developed from the anterior part of the intestine--as is likewise the +respiratory mechanism of all the gill-breathing Vertebrata. That so +close a parallel to this peculiar mechanism should be met with in a +worm, is a strong additional piece of evidence pointing to the +derivation of the Vertebrata from the Vermes. + + [Illustration: FIG. 48.--_Balanoglossus_. (After A. Agassiz.) _r_, + proboscis; _h_, collar; _k_, gill-slits; _d_, digestive posterior + intestine; _v_, intestinal vessel; _a_, anus.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 49.--A large Sea-lamprey (_Petromyzon marinus_), + much reduced in size. (After Cuvier and Haeckel.) A series of seven + gill-slits are visible.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 50--Adult Shark (_Carcharias melanopterus_). + (After Cuvier and Haeckel.)] + + [Illustration: FIG. 51.--Diagram of heart and gill-arches of a fish. + (After Owen.)] + + [Illustration: FIG. 52.--One gill-arch, with branchial fringe + attached. (After Owen.) H, Heart.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 53.--Diagram of heart and gill-arches in a + lizard. (After Owen.) The gill-arches, _a a' a''_, and _b b' b''_, + are called aortic arches in air-breathing vertebrata.] + +Well, I have just said that in all the gill-breathing Vertebrata, this +mechanism of gill-slits and vascular gill-arches in the front part of +the intestinal tract is permanent. But in the air-breathing Vertebrata +such an arrangement would obviously be of no use. Consequently, the +gill-slits in the sides of the neck (see Figs. 16 and 57, 58), and the +gill-arches of the large blood-vessels (Figs. 54, 55, 56), are here +exhibited only as transitory phases of development. But as such they +occur in all air-breathing Vertebrata. And, as if to make the homologies +as striking as possible, at the time when the gill-slits and the +gill-arches are developed in the embryonic young of air-breathing +Vertebrata, the heart is constructed upon the fish-like type. That is to +say, it is placed far forwards, and, from having been a simple tube as +in Worms, is now divided into two chambers, as in Fish. Later on it +becomes progressively pushed further back between the developing lungs, +while it progressively acquires the three cavities distinctive of +Amphibia, and finally the four cavities belonging only to the complete +double circulation of Birds and Mammals. Moreover, it has now been +satisfactorily shown that the lungs of air-breathing Vertebrata, which +are thus destined to supersede the function of gills, are themselves the +modified swim-bladder or float, which belongs to Fish. Consequently, all +these progressive modifications in the important organs of circulation +and respiration in the air-breathing Vertebrata, together make up as +complete a history of their aquatic pedigree as it would be possible for +the most exacting critic to require. + + [Illustration: FIG. 54.--Ideal diagram, of primitive gill-or + aortic-arches. (After Rathke.) H, outline of heart. The arrows show + the course of the blood.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 55.--The same, modified for a bird. (After Le + Conte.) The dark lines show the aortic arches which persist. A, + aorta; _p_, pulmonary arches; SC, S'C', sub-clavian; C, C', + carotids.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 56.--The same, modified for a mammal. (After Le + Conte.)] + + [Illustration: FIG. 57.--A series of embryos at three comparable and + progressive stages of development (marked I, II, III), representing + each of the classes of vertebrated animals below the Mammalia (After + Haeckel.)] + + [Illustration: FIG. 58.--Another series of embryos, also at three + comparable and progressive stages of development (marked I, II, + III), representing four different divisions of the class Mammalia. + (After Haeckel.)] + +If space permitted, it would be easy to present abundance of additional +evidence to the same effect from the development of the skeleton, the +skull, the brain, the sense-organs, and, in short, of every constituent +part of the vertebrate organization. Even without any anatomical +dissection, the similarity of all vertebrated embryos at comparable +stages of development admits of being strikingly shown, if we merely +place the embryos one beside the other. Here, for instance, are the +embryos of a fish, a salamander, a tortoise, a bird, and four different +mammals. In each case three comparable stages of development are +represented. Now, if we read the series horizontally, we can see that +there is very little difference between the eight animals at the +earliest of the three stages represented--all having fish-like tails, +gill-slits, and so on. In the next stage further differentiation has +taken place, but it will be observed that the limbs are still so +rudimentary that even in the case of Man they are considerably shorter +than the tail. But in the third stage the distinctive characters are +well marked. + + * * * * * + +So much then for an outline sketch of the main features in the embryonic +history of the Vertebrata. But it must be remembered that the science of +comparative embryology extends to each of the other three great branches +of the tree of life, where these take their origin, through the worms, +from the still lower, or gastraea, forms. And in each of these three +great branches--namely, the Echinodermata, the Mollusca, and the +Arthropoda--we have a repetition of just the same kind of evidence in +favour of continuous descent, with adaptive modification in sundry +lines, as that which I have thus briefly sketched in the case of the +Vertebrata. The roads are different, but the method of travelling is the +same. Moreover, when the embryology of the Worms is closely studied, the +origin of these different roads admits of being clearly traced. So that +when all this mass of evidence is taken together, we cannot wonder that +evolutionists should now regard the science of comparative embryology as +the principal witness to their theory. + + + + +CHAPTER V. + +PALAEONTOLOGY. + + +The present Chapter will be devoted to a consideration of the evidence +of organic evolution which has been furnished by the researches of +geologists. On account of its direct or historical nature, this branch +of evidence is popularly regarded as the most important--so much so, +indeed, that in the opinion of most educated persons the whole doctrine +of organic evolution must stand or fall according to the so-called +"testimony of the rocks." Now, without at all denying the peculiar +importance of this line of evidence, I must begin by remarking that it +does not present the denominating importance which popular judgment +assigns to it. For although popular judgment is right in regarding the +testimony of the rocks as of the nature of a history, this judgment, as +a rule, is very inadequately acquainted with the great imperfections of +that history. Knowing in a general way what magnificent advances the +science of geology has made during the present century, the public mind +is more or less imbued with the notion, that because we now possess a +tolerably complete record of the chronological succession of geological +formations, we must therefore possess a correspondingly complete record +of the chronological succession of the forms of life which from time to +time have peopled the globe. Now in one sense this notion is partly +true, but in another sense it is profoundly false. It is partly true if +we have regard only to those larger divisions of the vegetable or animal +kingdoms which naturalists designate by the terms classes and orders. +But the notion becomes progressively more untrue when it is applied to +families and genera, while it is most of all untrue when applied to +species. That this must be so may be rendered apparent by two +considerations. + +In the first place, it does not follow that because we have a tolerably +complete record of the succession of geological formations, we have +therefore any correspondingly complete record of their fossiliferous +contents. The work of determining the relative ages of the rocks does +not require that every cubic mile of the earth's surface should be +separately examined, in order to find all the different fossils which it +may contain. Were this the case, we should hitherto have made but very +small progress in our reading of the testimony of the rocks. The +relative ages of the rocks are determined by broad comparative surveys +over extensive areas; and although the identification of widely +separated deposits is often greatly assisted by a study of their +fossiliferous contents, the mere pricking of a continent here and there +is all that is required for this purpose. Hence, the accuracy of our +information touching the relative ages of geological strata does not +depend upon--and, therefore, does not betoken--any equivalent accuracy +of knowledge touching the fossiliferous material which these strata may +at the present time actually contain. And, as we well know, the +opportunities which the geologist has of discovering fossils are +extremely limited, if we consider these opportunities in relation to the +area of geological formations. The larger portion of the earth's surface +is buried beneath the sea; and much the larger portion of the +fossiliferous deposits on shore are no less hopelessly buried beneath +the land. Therefore it is only upon the fractional portion of the +earth's surface which at the present time happens to be actually exposed +to his view that the geologist is able to prosecute his search for +fossils. But even here how miserably inadequate this search has hitherto +been! With the exception of a scratch or two in the continents of Asia +and America, together with a somewhat larger number of similar scratches +over the continent of Europe, even that comparatively small portion of +the earth's surface which is available for the purpose has been hitherto +quite unexplored by the palaeontologist. How enormously rich a store of +material remains to be unearthed by the future scratchings of this +surface, we may dimly surmise from the astonishing world of bygone life +which is now being revealed in the newly discovered fossiliferous +deposits on the continent of America. + +But, besides all this, we must remember, in the second place, that all +the fossiliferous deposits in the world, even if they could be +thoroughly explored, would still prove highly imperfect, considered as a +history of extinct forms of life. In order that many of these forms +should have been preserved as fossils, it is necessary that they should +have died upon a surface neither too hard nor too soft to admit of their +leaving an impression; that this surface should afterwards have +hardened sufficiently to retain the impression; that it should then have +been protected from the erosion of water, as well as from the +disintegrating influence of the air; and yet that it should not have +sunk far enough beneath the surface to have come within the no less +disintegrating influence of subterranean heat. Remembering thus, as a +general rule, how many conditions require to have met before a fossil +can have been both formed and preserved, we must conclude that the +geological record is probably as imperfect in itself as are our +opportunities of reading even the little that has been recorded. If we +speak of it as a history of the succession of life upon the planet, we +must allow, on the one hand, that it is a history which merits the name +of a "chapter of accidents"; and, on the other hand, that during the +whole course of its compilation pages were being destroyed as fast as +others were being formed, while even of those that remain it is only a +word, a line, or at most a short paragraph here and there, that we are +permitted to see. With so fragmentary a record as this to study, I do +not think it is too much to say that no conclusions can be fairly based +upon it, merely from the absence of testimony. Only if the testimony +were positively opposed to the theory of descent, could any argument be +fairly raised against that theory on the grounds of this testimony. In +other words, if any of the fossils hitherto discovered prove the order +of succession to have been incompatible with the theory of genetic +descent, then the record may fairly be adduced in argument, because we +should then be in possession of definite information of a positive +kind, instead of a mere absence of information of any kind. But if the +adverse argument reaches only to the extent of maintaining that the +geological record does not furnish us with so complete a series of +"connecting links" as we might have expected, then, I think, the +argument is futile. Even in the case of human histories, written with +the intentional purpose of conveying information, it is an unsafe thing +to infer the non-occurrence of an event from a mere silence of the +historian--and this especially in matters of comparatively small detail, +such as would correspond (in the present analogy) to the occurrence of +_species_ and _genera_ as connecting links. And, of course, if the +history had only come down to us in fragments, no one would attach any +importance at all to what might have been only the _apparent_ silence of +the historian. + +In view, then, of the unfortunate imperfection of the geological record +_per se_, as well as of the no less unfortunate limitation of our means +of reading even so much of the record as has come down to us, I conclude +that this record can only be fairly used in two ways. It may fairly be +examined for positive testimony against the theory of descent, or for +proof of the presence of organic remains of a high order of development +in a low level of strata. And it may be fairly examined for negative +testimony, or for the absence of connecting links, if the search be +confined to the larger taxonomic divisions of the fauna and flora of the +world. The more minute these divisions, the more restricted must have +been the areas of their origin, and hence the less likelihood of their +having been preserved in the fossil state, or of our finding them even +if they have been. Therefore, if the theory of evolution is true, we +ought not to expect from the geological record a full history of +_specific_ changes in any but at most a comparatively small number of +instances, where local circumstances happen to have been favourable for +the writing and preservation of such a history. But we might reasonably +expect to find a general concurrence of geological testimony to the +larger fact--namely, of there having been throughout all geological time +a uniform progression as regards the larger taxonomic divisions. And, as +I will next proceed to show, this is, in a general way, what we do find, +although not altogether without some important exceptions, with which I +shall deal in an Appendix. + +There is no _positive_ proof _against_ the theory of descent to be drawn +from a study of palaeontology, or proof of the presence of any kind of +fossils in strata where the fact of their presence is incompatible with +the theory of evolution. On the other hand, there is an enormous body of +uniform evidence to prove two general facts of the highest importance in +the present connexion. The first of these general facts is, that an +increase in the diversity of types both of plants and animals has been +constant and progressive from the earliest to the latest times, as we +should anticipate that it must have been on the theory of descent in +ever-ramifying lines of pedigree. And the second general fact is, that +through all these branching lines of ever-multiplying types, from the +first appearance of each of them to their latest known conditions, there +is overwhelming evidence of one great law of organic nature--the law of +gradual advance from the general to the special, from the low to the +high, from the simple to the complex. + +Now, the importance of these large and general facts in the present +connexion must be at once apparent; but it may perhaps be rendered more +so if we try to imagine how the case would have stood supposing +geological investigation to have yielded in this matter an opposite +result, or even so much as an equivocal result. If it had yielded an +opposite result, if the lower geological formations were found to +contain as many, as diverse, and as highly organized types as the later +geological formations, clearly there would have been no room at all for +any theory of progressive evolution. And, by parity of reasoning, in +whatever degree such a state of matters were found to prevail, in that +degree would the theory in question have been discredited. But seeing +that these opposite principles do not prevail in any (relatively +speaking) considerable degree[16], we have so far positive testimony of +the largest and most massive character in favour of this theory. For +while all these large and general facts are very much what they ought to +be according to this theory, they cannot be held to lend any support at +all to the rival theory. In other words, it is clearly no essential part +of the theory of special creation that species should everywhere exhibit +this gradual multiplication as to number, coupled with a gradual +diversification and general elevation of types, in all the growing +branches of the tree of life. No one could adopt seriously the jocular +lines of Burns, to the effect that the Creator required to practise his +prentice hand on lower types before advancing to the formation of +higher. Yet, without some such assumption, it would be impossible to +explain, on the theory of independent creations, why there should have +been this gradual advance from the few to the many, from the general to +the special, from the low to the high. + + [16] For objections which may be brought against this and similar + statements, see the Appendix. + + +---+--------------------------+--------------------------------------- + | |_Epochs and Formations._ |_Faunal Characters._ + |C | | + |a |--------------------------+--------------------------------------- + |i |POST-PLIOCENE. |Man. Mammalia principally of living + |n | Glacial Period. | species. Mollusca exclusively recent. + |o | +--------------------------------------- + |z |PLIOCENE, 3,000 feet. |Mammalia principally of recent genera + |o | | --living species rare. Mollusca very + |i | | modern. + |c | +--------------------------------------- + | |MIOCENE, 4,000 ft. |Mammalia principally of living + |o | | families; extinct genera numerous; + |r | | species all extinct. Mollusca largely + | |OLIGOCENE, 8,000 ft. | of recent species. + |T | +--------------------------------------- + |e |EOCENE, 10,000 ft. |Mammalia with numerous extinct families + |r | | and orders; all the species and + |i | | most of the genera extinct. Modern + |a | | type Shell-Fish. + |r | | + |y | | + +---|--------------------------+--------------------------------------- + | |LARAMIE, 4,000 ft. |Passage beds. + | |--------------------------+--------------------------------------- + |M |CRETACEOUS, 12,000 ft. |Dinosaurian (bird-like) Reptiles; + |e | Chalk. | Pterodactyls (flying Reptiles); + |s | | toothed Birds; earliest Snake; bony + |o | | Fishes; Crocodiles; Turtles; + |z | | Ammonites. + |o | +--------------------------------------- + |i |JURASSIC, 6,000 ft. |Earliest Birds; giant Reptiles + |c | Oolite. | (Ichthyosaurs, Dinosaurs, + | | Lias. | Pterodactyls); Ammonites; Clam- and + |o | | Snail-Shells very abundant; decline + |r | | of Brachiopods; Butterfly. + | | +--------------------------------------- + |S |TRIAS, 5,000 ft. |First Mammalian (Marsupial); 2-gilled + |e | New Red Sandstone. | Cephalopods (Cuttle-Fishes, + |c | | Belemnites); reptilian Foot-Prints. + |o | | + |n | | + |d | | + |a | | + |r | | + |y | | + |---|--------------------------+--------------------------------------- + |P |PERMIAN, 5,000 ft. |Earliest true Reptiles. + |a | +--------------------------------------- + |l |CARBONIFEROUS, 26,000 ft. |Earliest Amphibian (Labyrinthodont); + |e | | extinction of Trilobites; first + |o | Coal. | Cray-fish; Beetles; Cockroaches; + |z | | Centipedes; Spiders. + |o | +--------------------------------------- + |i |DEVONIAN, 18,000 ft. |Cartilaginous and Ganoid Fishes; + |c | Old Red Sandstone. | earliest and (snail) and freshwater + | | | Shells; Shell-Fish abundant; decline + |o | | of Trilobites; May-flies; Crab. + |r | +--------------------------------------- + | |SILURIAN, 33,000 ft. |Earliest Fish; the first Air-Breathers + |P | | (Insect, Scorpion); Brachiopods and + |r | | 4-gilled Cephalopods very abundant; + |i | | Trilobites; Corals; Graptolites. + |m | +--------------------------------------- + |a |CAMBRIAN, 24,000 ft. |Trilobites; Brachiopod Mollusks. + |r | | + |y | | + |---|--------------------------+--------------------------------------- + |A |ARCHAEEAN, 30,000 ft. | + |z | Huronian. |Eozooen, (probably not a fossil). + |o | Laurentian. | + |i |--------------------------+--------------------------------------- + |c |PRIMEVAL. |Non-sedimentary. + +------------------------------+--------------------------------------+ + +I submit, then, that so far as the largest and most general principles +in the matter of palaeontology are concerned, we have about as strong and +massive a body of evidence as we could reasonably expect this branch of +science to yield; for it is at once enormous in amount and positive in +character. Therefore, if I do not further enlarge upon the evidence +which we here have, as it were _en masse_, it is only because I do not +feel that any words could add to its obvious significance. It may best +be allowed to speak for itself in the millions of facts which are +condensed in this tabular statement of the order of succession of all +the known forms of animal life, as presented by the eminent +palaeontologist, Professor Cope[17]. + + [17] For difficulties and objections, see Appendix. + +Or, taking a still more general survey, this tabular statement may be +still further condensed, and presented in a diagrammatic form, as it has +been by another eminent American palaeontologist, Prof. Le Conte, in his +excellent little treatise on _Evolution and its Relations to Religious +Thought_. The following is his diagrammatic representation, with his +remarks thereon. + + When each ruling class declined in importance, it did not perish, + but continued in a subordinate position. Thus, the whole organic + kingdom became not only higher and higher in its highest forms, but + also more and more complex in its structure and in the interaction + of its correlated parts. The whole process and its result is + roughly represented in the accompanying diagram, in which A B + represents the course of geological time, and the curve, the rise, + culmination, and decline of successive dominate classes. + + [Illustration: FIG. 59.--Diagram of Geological Succession of the + Classes of the Animal Kingdom. (After Le Conte.)] + +I will here leave the evidence which is thus yielded by the most general +principles that have been established by the science of palaeontology; +and I will devote the rest of this chapter to a detailed consideration +of a few highly special lines of evidence. By thus suddenly passing from +one extreme to the other, I hope to convey the best idea that can be +conveyed within a brief compass of the minuteness, as well as the +extent, of the testimony which is furnished by the rocks. + + * * * * * + +When Darwin first published his _Origin of Species_, adverse critics +fastened upon the "missing-link" argument as the strongest that they +could bring against the theory of descent. Although Darwin had himself +strongly insisted on the imperfection of the geological record, and the +consequent precariousness of any negative conclusions raised upon it, +these critics maintained that he was making too great a demand upon the +argument from ignorance--that, even allowing for the imperfection of the +record, they would certainly have expected at least a few cases of +testimony to _specific_ transmutation. For, they urged in effect, +looking to the enormous profusion of the extinct species on the one +hand, and to the immense number of known fossils on the other, it was +incredible that no satisfactory instances of specific transmutation +should ever have been brought to light, if such transmutation had ever +occurred in the universal manner which the theory was bound to suppose. +But since Darwin first published his great work palaeontologists have +been very active in discovering and exploring fossiliferous beds in +sundry parts of the world; and the result of their labours has been to +supply so many of the previously missing links that the voice of +competent criticism in this matter has now been well-nigh silenced. +Indeed, the material thus furnished to an advocate of evolution at the +present time is so abundant that his principal difficulty is to select +his samples. I think, however, that the most satisfactory result will be +gained if I restrict my exposition to a minute account of some few +series of connecting links, rather than if I were to take a more general +survey of a larger number. I will, therefore, confine the survey to the +animal kingdom, and there mention only some of the cases which have +yielded well-detailed proof of continuous differentiation. + +It is obvious that the parts of animals most likely to have been +preserved in such a continuous series of fossils as the present line of +evidence requires, would have been the hard parts. These are horns, +bones, teeth, and shells. Therefore I will consider each of these four +classes of structures separately. + + * * * * * + +Horns wherever they occur, are found to be of high importance for +purposes of classification. They are restricted to the Ruminants, and +appear under three different forms or types--namely solid, as in +antelopes; hollow, as in sheep; and deciduous, as in deer. Now, in each +of these divisions we have a tolerably complete palaeontological history +of the evolution of horns. The early ruminants were altogether hornless +(Fig. 60). Then, in the middle Miocene, the first antelopes appeared +with tiny horns, which progressively increased in size among the +ever-multiplying species of antelopes until the present day. But it is +in the deer tribe that we meet with even better evidence touching the +progressive evolution of horns; because here not only size, but shape, +is concerned. For deer's horns, or antlers, are arborescent; and hence +in their case we have an opportunity of reading the history, not only of +a progressive growth in size, but also of an increasing development of +form. Among the older members of the tribe, in the lower Miocene, there +are no horns at all. In the mid-Miocene we meet with two-pronged horns +(_Cervus dicrocerus_, Figs. 61, 62, 1/5 nat. size). Next, in the upper +Miocene (_C. matheronis_, Fig. 63, 1/8 nat. size), and extending into +the Pliocene (_C. pardinensis_, Fig. 64, 1/18 nat. size), we meet with +three-pronged horns. Then, in the Pliocene we find also four-pronged +horns (_C. issiodorensis_, Fig. 65, 1/16 nat. size), leading us to +five-pronged (_C. tetraceros_). Lastly, in the Forest-bed of Norfolk we +meet with arborescent horns (_C. Sedgwickii_, Fig. 66, 1/35 nat. size). +The life-history of existing stags furnishes a parallel development +(Fig. 67), beginning with a single horn (which has not yet been found +palaeontologically), going on to two prongs, three prongs, four prongs, +and afterwards branching. + + [Illustration: FIG. 60.--Skull of _Oreodon Culbertsoni_. (After + Leidy.)] + + [Illustration: FIGS. 61-66. The series is reduced from Gaudry's + illustrations, after Farge, Croizet, Jobert and Boyd Dawkins.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 67.--Successive stages in the development of an + existing Deer's Antlers. (After Gaudry, but a better illustration + has already been given on p. 100.)] + + * * * * * + +Coming now to bones, we have a singularly complete record of transition +from one type or pattern of structure to another in the phylogenetic +history of tails. This has been so clearly and so tersely conveyed by +Prof. Le Conte, that I cannot do better than quote his statement. + + It has long been noticed that there are among fishes two styles of + tail-fins. These are the even-lobed, or homocercal (Fig. 68), and + the uneven-lobed, or heterocercal (Fig. 69). The one is + characteristic of ordinary fishes (teleosts), the other of sharks + and some other orders. In structure the difference is even more + fundamental than in form. In the former style the backbone stops + abruptly in a series of short, enlarged joints, and thence sends + off rays to form the tail-fin (Fig. 68); in the latter the + backbone runs through the fin to its very point, growing slenderer + by degrees, and giving off rays above and below from each joint, + but the rays on the lower side are much longer (Fig. 69). This type + of fin is, therefore, _vertebrated_, the other _non-vertebrated_. + Figs. 68 and 69 show these two types in form and structure. But + there is still another type found only in the lowest and most + generalized forms of fishes. In these the tail-fin is vertebrated + and yet symmetrical. This type is shown in Fig. 70. + + [Illustration: FIG. 68.--Homocercal Tail, showing (A) external form + and (B) internal structure.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 69.--Heterocercal Tail, showing (A) external + form and (B) internal structure.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 70.--Vertebrated but symmetrical fin + (diphycercal), showing (A) external form and (B) internal + structure.] + + Now, in the development of a teleost fish (Fig. 68), as has been + shown by Alexander Agassiz, the tail-fin is first like Fig. 70; + then becomes heterocercal, like Fig. 69; and, finally, becomes + homocercal like Fig. 68. Why so? Not because there is any special + advantage in this succession of forms; for the changes take place + either in the egg or else in very early embryonic states. The + answer is found in the fact that _this is the order of change in + the phylogenetic series_. The earliest fish-tails were either like + Fig. 69 or Fig. 70; never like Fig. 68. The earliest of all were + almost certainly like Fig. 70; then they became like Fig. 69; and, + finally, only much later in geological history (Jurassic or + Cretaceous), they became like Fig. 68. This order of change is + still retained in the embryonic development of the last introduced + and most specialized order of existing fishes. The family history + is repeated in the individual history. + + Similar changes have taken place in the form and structure of + birds' tails. The earliest bird known--the Jurassic + _Archaeopteryx_--had a long reptilian tail of twenty-one joints, + each joint bearing a feather on each side, right and left (Fig. + 71): [see also Fig. 73]. In the typical modern bird, on the + contrary, the tail-joints are diminished in number, shortened up, + and enlarged, and give out long feathers, fan-like, to form the + so-called tail (Fig. 72). The _Archaeopteryx'_ tail is + _vertebrated_, the typical bird's _non-vertebrated_. This + shortening up of the tail did not take place at once, but + gradually. The Cretaceous birds, intermediate in time, had tails + intermediate in structure. The _Hesperornis_ of Marsh had twelve + joints. At first--in Jurassic strata--the tail is fully a half of + the whole vertebral column. It then gradually shortens up until it + becomes the aborted organ of typical modern birds. Now, in + embryonic development, the tail of the modern typical bird _passes + through all these stages_. At first the tail is nearly one half the + whole vertebral column; then, as development goes on, while the + rest of the body grows, the growth of the tail stops, and thus + finally becomes the aborted organ we now find. The ontogeny still + passes through the stages of the phylogeny. The same is true of all + tailless animals. + + [Illustration: FIG. 71.--Tail of _Archaeopteryx_. A indicates origin + of simply-jointed tail.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 72.--Tail of modern Bird. The numerals indicate + the foreshortened, enlarged, and consolidated joints; _f_, terminal + segment of the vertebral column; D, shafts of feathers.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 73.--_Archaeopteryx macura_, restored, 1/2 nat. + size. (After Flower.) The section of the tail is copied from Owen, + nat. size.] + +The extinct _Archaeopteryx_ above alluded to presents throughout its +whole organization a most interesting assemblage of "generalized +characters." For example, its teeth, and its still unreduced digits of +the wings (which, like those of the feet, are covered with scales), +refer us, with almost as much force as does the vertebrated tail, to the +Sauropsidian type--or the trunk from which birds and reptiles have +diverged. + +We will next consider the palaeontological evidence which we now +possess of the evolution of mammalian limbs, with special reference to +the hoofed animals, where this line of evidence happens to be most +complete. + +I may best begin by describing the bones as these occur in the sundry +branches of the mammalian type now living. As we shall presently see, +the modifications which the limbs have undergone in these sundry +branches chiefly consist in the suppression of some parts and the +exaggerated development of others. But, by comparing all mammalian limbs +together, it is easy to obtain a generalized type of mammalian limb, +which in actual life is perhaps most nearly conformed to in the case of +bears. I will therefore choose the bear for the purpose of briefly +expounding the bones of mammalian limbs in general--merely asking it to +be understood, that although in the case of many other mammalia some of +these bones may be dwindled or altogether absent, while others may be +greatly exaggerated as to relative size, in no case do any _additional_ +bones appear. + +On looking, then, at the skeleton of a bear (Fig. 74), the first thing +to observe is that there is a perfect serial homology between the bones +of the hind legs and of the fore legs. The thigh-bone, or femur, +corresponds to the shoulder-bone, or humerus; the two shank bones (tibia +and fibula) correspond to the two arm-bones (radius and ulna); the many +little ankle-bones (tarsals) correspond to the many little wrist-bones +(carpals); the foot-bones (meta-tarsals) correspond to the hand-bones +(meta-carpals); and, lastly, the bones of each of the toes correspond to +those of each of the fingers. + + [Illustration: FIG. 74.--Skeleton of Polar Bear, drawn from nature + (_Brit. Mus._).] + +The next thing to observe is, that the disposition of bones in the case +of the bear is such that the animal walks in the way that has been +called plantigrade. That is to say, all the bones of the fingers, as +well as those of the toes, feet, and ankles, rest upon the ground, or +help to constitute the "soles." Our own feet are constructed on a +closely similar pattern. But in the majority of living mammalian forms +this is not the case. For the majority of mammals are what has been +called digitigrade. That is to say, the bones of the limb are so +disposed that both the foot and hand bones, and therefore also the ankle +and wrist, are removed from the ground altogether, so that the animal +walks exclusively upon its toes and fingers--as in the case of this +skeleton (Fig. 75), which is the skeleton of a lion. The next figures +display a series of limbs, showing the progressive passage of a +completely plantigrade into a highly digitigrade type--the curved lines +of connexion serving to indicate the homologous bones (Figs. 76, 77). + + [Illustration: _Fig_. 75.--Skeleton of Lion. (After Huxley.)] + + [Illustration: FIG. 76.--Anterior limb of Man, Dog, Hog, Sheep, and + Horse. (After Le Conte.) _Sc_, shoulder-blade; _c_, coracoid; _a_, + _b_, bones of fore-arm; 5, bones of the wrist; 6, bones of the hand; + 7, bones of the fingers.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 77.--Posterior limb of Man, Monkey, Dog, Sheep + and Horse. (After Le Conte.) 1, Hip-joint; 2, thigh-bone; 3, + knee-joint; 4, bones of leg; 5, ankle-joint; 6, bones of foot; 7, + bones of toes.] + +I will now proceed to detail the history of mammalian limbs, as this has +been recorded for us in fossil remains. + +The most generalized or primitive types of limb hitherto discovered in +any vertebrated animal above the class of fishes, are those which are +met with in some of the extinct aquatic reptiles. Here, for instance, is +a diagram of the left hind limb of _Baptanodon discus_ (Fig. 78). It has +six rows of little symmetrical bones springing from a leg-like origin. +But the whole structure resembles the fin of a fish about as nearly as +it does the leg of a mammal. For not only are there six rows of bones, +instead of five, suggestive of the numerous rays which characterise the +fin of a fish; but the structure as a whole, having been covered over +with blubber and skin, was throughout flexible and unjointed--thus in +function, even more than in structure, resembling a fin. In this +respect, also, it must have resembled the paddle of a whale (see Fig. +79); but of course the great difference will be noted, that the paddle +of a whale reveals the dwindled though still clearly typical bones of a +true mammalian limb; so that although in outward form and function these +two paddles are alike, their inward structure clearly shows that while +the one testifies to the absence of evolution, the other testifies to +the presence of degeneration. If the paddle of _Baptanodon_ had occurred +in a whale, or the paddle of a whale had occurred in _Baptanodon_, +either fact would in itself have been well-nigh destructive of the whole +theory of evolution. + + [Illustration: FIG. 78.--A, posterior limb of _Baptanodon discus_. + (After Marsh.) F, thigh-bone; I to VI, undifferentiated bones of the + leg and foot. B, anterior limb of _Chelydra serpentina_. (After + Gegenbaur.) U and R, bones of the fore-arm; I to V, fully + differentiated bones of the hand, following those of the wrist.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 79.--Paddle of a Whale.] + +Such, then, is the most generalized as it is the most ancient type of +vertebrate limb above the class of fishes. Obviously it is a type +suited only to aquatic life. Consequently, when aquatic Vertebrata began +to become terrestrial, the type would have needed modification in order +to serve for terrestrial locomotion. In particular, it would have needed +to gain in consolidation and in firmness, which means that it would have +needed also to become jointed. Accordingly, we find that this archaic +type gave place in land-reptiles to the exigencies of these +requirements. Here for example is a diagram, copied from Gegenbaur, of +the right fore-foot of _Chelydra serpentina_ (Fig. 78). As compared with +the homologous limb of its purely aquatic predecessor, there is to be +noticed the disappearance of one of the six rows of small bones, a +confluence of some of the remainder in the other five rows, a +duplication of the arm-bone into a radius and ulna, in order to admit of +jointed rotation of the hand, and a general disposition of the small +bones below these arm-bones, which clearly foreshadows the joint of the +wrist. Indeed, in this fore-foot of _Chelydra_, a child could trace all +the principal homologies of the mammalian counterpart, growing, like the +next stage in a dissolving view, out of the primitive paddle of +_Baptanodon_--namely, first the radius and ulna, next the carpals, then +the meta-carpals, and, lastly, the three phalanges in each of the five +digits. + +Such a type of foot no doubt admirably meets the requirements of slow +reptilian locomotion over swampy ground. But for anything like rapid +locomotion over hard and uneven ground, greater modifications would be +needed. Such modifications, however, need not be other in kind: it is +enough that they should continue in the same line of advance, so as to +reach a higher degree of firmness, combined with better joints. +Accordingly we find that this took place, not indeed among reptiles, +whose habits of cold-blooded life have not changed, but among their +warm-blooded descendants, the mammals. Moreover, when we examine the +whole mammalian series, we find that the required modifications must +have taken place in slightly different ways in three lines of descent +simultaneously. We have first the plantigrade and digitigrade +modifications already mentioned (pp. 178, 179) Of these the plantigrade +walking entailed least change, because most resembling the ancestral or +lizard-like mode of progression. All that was here needed was a general +improvement as to relative lengths of bones, with greater consolidation +and greater flexibility of joints. Therefore I need not say anything +more about the plantigrade division. But the digitigrade modification +necessitated a change of structural plan, to the extent of raising the +wrist and ankle joints off the ground, so as to make the quadruped walk +on its fingers and toes. We meet with an interesting case of this +transition in the existing hare, which while at rest supports itself on +the whole hind foot after the manner of a plantigrade animal, but when +running does so upon the ends of its toes, after the manner of a +digitigrade animal. + +It is of importance for us to note that this transition from the +original plantigrade to the more recent digitigrade type, has been +carried out on two slightly different plans in two different lines of +mammalian descent. The hoofed mammals--which are all digitigrade--are +sub-classified as artiodactyls and perissodactyls, i. e. even-toed and +odd-toed. Now, whether an animal has an even or an odd number of toes +may seem a curiously artificial distinction on which to found so +important a classification of the mammalian group. But if we look at the +matter from a less empirical and more intelligent point of view, we +shall see that the alternative of having an even or an odd number of +toes carries with it alternative consequences of a practically important +kind to any animal of the digitigrade type. For suppose an aboriginal +five-toed animal, walking on the ends of its five toes, to be called +upon to resign some of his toes. If he is left with an even number, it +must be two or four; and in either case the animal would gain the +firmest support by so disposing his toes as to admit of the axis of his +foot passing between an equal number of them--whether it be one or two +toes on each side. On the other hand, if our early mammal were called +upon to retain an odd number of toes, he would gain best support by +adjusting matters so that the axis of his foot should be coincident with +his middle toe, whether this were his only toe, or whether he had one on +either side of it. This consideration shows that the classification into +even-toed and odd-toed is not so artificial as it no doubt at first +sight appears. Let us, then, consider the stages in the evolution of +both these types of feet. + +Going back to the reptile _Chelydra_, it will be observed that the axis +of the foot passes down the middle toe, which is therefore supported by +two toes on either side (Fig. 78). It may also be noticed that the wrist +or ankle bones do not interlock, either with one another or with the +bones of the hand or foot below them. This, of course, would give a +weak foot, suited to slow progression over marshy ground--which, as we +have seen, was no doubt the origin of the mammalian plantigrade foot. +Here, for instance, to all intents and purposes, is a similar type of +foot, which belonged to a very early mammal, antecedent to the elephant +series, the horse series, the rhinoceros, the hog, and, in short, all +the known hoofed mammalia (Fig. 80). It was presumably an inhabitant of +swampy ground, slow in its movements, and low in its intelligence. + + [Illustration: FIG. 80.--Fossil skeleton of _Phenacodus primavus_. + (After Cope.)] + +But now, as we have seen, for more rapid progression on hard uneven +ground, a stronger and better jointed foot would be needed. Therefore we +find the bones of the wrist and ankle beginning to interlock, both among +themselves and also with those of the foot and hand immediately below +them. Such a stage of evolution is still apparent in the now existing +elephant. (See Fig. 81.) + + [Illustration: FIG. 81.--Bones of the foot of four different forms + of the perissodactyl type, showing gradual reduction in the number + of digits, coupled with a greater consolidation of the bones above + the digits. The series reads from right to left. Drawn from nature + (_Brit. Mus._).] + +Next, however, a still stronger foot was made by the still further +interlocking of the wrist and ankle bones, so that both the first and +second rows of them were thus fitted into each other, as well as into +the bones of the hand and foot beneath. This further modification is +clearly traceable in some of the earlier perissodactyls, and occurs in +the majority at the present time. Compare, for example, the greater +interlocking and consolidation of these small bones in the Rhinoceros as +contrasted with the Elephant (Fig. 81). Moreover, simultaneously with +these consolidating improvements in the mechanism of the wrist and ankle +joints, or possibly at a somewhat later period, a reduction in the +number of digits began to take place. This was a continuation of the +policy of consolidating the foot, analogous to the dropping out of the +sixth row of small bones in the paddle of _Baptanodon_. (Fig. 78.) In +the pentadactyl plantigrade foot of the early mammals, the first digit, +being the shortest, was the first to leave the ground, to dwindle, +and finally to disappear. More work being thus thrown on the remaining +four, they were strengthened by interlocking with the wrist (or ankle) +bones above them, as just mentioned; and also by being brought closer +together. + + [Illustration: FIG. 82.--Bones of the foot of four different forms + of the artiodactyl type, showing gradual reduction of the number of + digits, coupled with a greater consolidation of the bones above the + digits. The series reads from right to left. Drawn from nature + (_Brit. Mus._).] + +The changes which followed I will render in the words of Professor +Marsh. + + Two kinds of reduction began. One leading to the existing + perissodactyl foot, and the other, apparently later, resulting in + the artiodactyl type. In the former the axis of the foot remained + in the middle of the third digit, as in the pentadactyl foot. [See + Fig. 81.] In the latter, it shifted to the outer side of this + digit, or between the third and fourth toe. [See Fig. 82.] + + In the further reduction of the perissodactyl foot, the fifth + digit, being shorter than the remaining three, next left the + ground, and gradually disappeared. [Fig. 81 B.] Of the three + remaining toes, the middle or axial one was the longest, and + retaining its supremacy as greater strength and speed were + required, finally assumed the chief support of the foot [Fig. 81 + C], while the outer digits left the ground, ceased to be of use, + and were lost, except as splint-bones [Fig. 81 D]. The feet of the + existing horse shows the best example of this reduction in the + Perissodactyls, as it is the most specialized known in the + Ungulates [Fig. 81 D]. + + In the artiodactyl foot, the reduction resulted in the gradual + diminution of the two outer of the four remaining toes, the third + and fourth doing all the work, and thus increasing in size and + power. The fifth digit, for the same reasons as in the + perissodactyl foot, first left the ground and became smaller. Next, + the second soon followed, and these two gradually ceased to be + functional, [and eventually disappeared altogether, as shown in the + accompanying drawing of the feet of still existing animals, Fig. 82 + B, C, D]. + + The limb of the modern race-horse is a nearly perfect piece of + machinery, especially adapted to great speed on dry, level ground. + The limb of an antelope, or deer, is likewise well fitted for + rapid motion on a plain, but the foot itself is adapted to rough + mountain work as well, and it is to this advantage, in part, that + the Artiodactyls owe their present supremacy. The plantigrade + pentadactyl foot of the primitive Ungulate--and even the + perissodactyl foot that succeeded it--both belong to the past humid + period of the world's history. As the surface of the earth slowly + dried up, in the gradual desiccation still in progress, new types + of feet became a necessity, and the horse, antelope, and camel were + gradually developed, to meet the altered conditions. + +The best instance of such progressive modifications in the case of +perissodactyl feet is furnished by the fossil pedigree of the existing +horse, because here, within the limits of the same continuous family +line, we have presented the entire series of modifications. + +There are now known over thirty species of horse-like creatures, +beginning from the size of a fox, then progressively increasing in bulk, +and all standing in linear series in structure as in time. Confining +attention to the teeth and feet, it will be seen from the wood-cut on +page 189 that the former grow progressively longer in their sockets, and +also more complex in the patterns of their crowns. On the other hand, +the latter exhibit a gradual diminution of their lateral toes, together +with a gradual strengthening of the middle one. (See Fig. 83.) So that +in the particular case of the horse-ancestry we have a practically +complete chain of what only a few years ago were "missing links." And +this now practically completed chain shows us the entire history of what +happens to be the most peculiar, or highly specialized, limb in the +whole mammalian class--namely, that of the existing horse. Of the other +two wood-cuts, the former (Fig. 84) shows the skeleton of a very early +and highly generalized ancestor, while the other is a partial +restoration of a much more recent and specialized one. (Fig. 85.) + + [Illustration: FIG. 83.--Feet and teeth in fossil pedigree of the + Horse. (After Marsh.) _a_, bones of the fore-foot; _b_, bones of the + hind-foot; _c_, radius and ulna; _d_, tibia and fibula; _e_, roots + of a tooth; _f_ and _g_, crowns of upper and lower molar teeth.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 84.--_Palaeotherium_. (Lower Tertiary of Paris + Basin.)] + + [Illustration: FIG. 85.--_Hipparion_. (New World Pliocene.)] + +On the other hand, progressive modifications of the artiodactyl feet may +be traced geologically up to the different stages presented by living +ruminants, in some of which it has proceeded further than in others. For +instance, if we compare the pig, the deer, and the camel (Fig. 82), we +immediately perceive that the dwindling of the two rudimentary digits +has proceeded much further in the case of the deer than in that of the +pig, and yet not so far as in that of the camel, seeing that here they +have wholly disappeared. Moreover, complementary differences are to be +observed in the degree of consolidation presented by the two useful +digits. For while in the pig the two foot-bones are still clearly +distinguishable throughout their entire length, in the deer, and still +more in the camel, their union is more complete, so that they go to +constitute a single bone, whose double or compound character is +indicated externally only by a slight bifurcation at the base. +Nevertheless, if we examine the state of matters in the unborn young of +these animals, we find that the two bones in question are still +separated throughout their length, and thus precisely resemble what used +to be their permanent condition in some of the now fossil species of +hoofed mammalia. + +Turning next from bones of the limb to other parts of the mammalian +skeleton, let us briefly consider the evidence of evolution that is here +likewise presented by the vertebral column, the skull, and the teeth. + +As regards the vertebral column, if we examine this structure in any of +the existing hoofed animals, we find that the bony processes called +zygapophyses, which belong to each of the constituent vertebrae, are so +arranged that the anterior pair belonging to each vertebra interlocks +with the posterior pair belonging to the next vertebra. In this way the +whole series of vertebrae are connected together in the form of a chain, +which, while admitting of considerable movement laterally, is everywhere +guarded against dislocation. But if we examine the skeletons of any +ungulates from the lower Eocene deposits, we find that in no case is +there any such arrangement to secure interlocking. In all the hoofed +mammals of this period the zygapophyses are flat. Now, from this flat +condition to the present condition of full interlocking we obtain a +complete series of connecting links. In the middle Miocene period we +find a group of hoofed animals in which the articulation begins by a +slight rounding of the previously flat surfaces: later on this rounding +progressively increases, until eventually we get the complete +interlocking of the present time. + +As regards teeth, and still confining attention to the hoofed mammals, +we find that low down in the geological series the teeth present on +their grinding surfaces only three simple tubercles. Later on a fourth +tubercle is added, and later still there is developed that complicated +system of ridges and furrows which is characteristic of these teeth at +the present time, and which was produced by manifold and various +involutions of the three or four simple tubercles of Eocene and lower +Miocene times. In other words, the principle of gradual improvement in +the construction of teeth, which has already been depicted as regards +the particular case of the Horse-family (Fig. 83), is no less apparent +in the pedigree of all the other mammalia, wherever the palaeontological +history is sufficiently intact to serve as a record at all. + +Lastly, as regards the skull, casts of the interior show that all the +earlier mammals had small brains with comparatively smooth or +unconvoluted surfaces; and that as time went on the mammalian brain +gradually advanced in size and complexity. Indeed so small were the +cerebral hemispheres of the primitive mammals that they did not overlap +the cerebellum, while their smoothness must have been such as in this +respect to have resembled the brain of a bird or reptile. This, of +course, is just as it ought to be, if the brain, which the skull has to +accommodate, has been gradually evolved into larger and larger +proportions in respect of its cerebral hemispheres, or the upper masses +of it which constitute the seat of intelligence. Thus, if we look at the +above series of wood-cuts, which represents the comparative structure of +the brain in the existing classes of the Vertebrata, we can immediately +understand why the fossil skulls of Mammalia should present a gradual +increase in size and furrowing, so as to accommodate the general +increase of the brain in both these respects between the level marked +"maml" and that marked "man," in the last of the diagrams. (Fig. 87.) + + [Illustration: FIG. 86.--Comparative series of Brains. (After Le + Conte.) The series reads from above downwards, and represents + diagrammatically the brain of a Fish, a Reptile, a Bird, a Mammal, + and a Man. In each case the letter A marks a side view, and the + letter B a top view. The small italics throughout signify the + following homologous parts: _m_, medulla; _cb_, cerebellum; _op_, + optic lobes; _cr_, cerebrum and thalamus; _ol_, olfactory lobes. The + series shows a progressive consolidation and enlargement of the + brain in general, and of the cerebrum and cerebellum in particular, + which likewise exhibit continually advancing structure in respect of + convolution. In the case of Man, these two parts of the brain have + grown to so great a size that they conceal all the other parts from + the superficial points of view represented in the diagram.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 87.--Ideal section through all the above stages. + (After Le Conte.]) + +The tabular statement on the following diagram, which I borrow from +Prof. Cope, will serve at a glance to reveal the combined significance +of so many lines of evidence, united within the limits of the same group +of animals. + +To give only one special illustration of the principle of evolution as +regards the skull, here is one of the most recent instances that has +occurred of the discovery of a missing link, or connecting form (see +Fig. 88). The fossil (B), which was found in New Jersey, stands in an +intermediate position between the stag and the elk. In the stag (A) the +skull is high, showing but little of that anterior attenuation which is +such a distinctive feature of the skull of the elk (C). The nasal bones +(N) of the former, again, are remarkably long when compared with the +similar bones of the latter, and the premaxillaries (PMX), instead of +being projected forward along the horizontal plane of the base of the +skull, are deflected sharply downward. In all these points, it will be +seen, the newly discovered form (_Cervalces_) holds an intermediate +position (B). "The skull exhibits a partial attenuation anteriorly, +the premaxillaries are directed about equally downward and forward, and +the nasal bones are measurably contracted in size. The horns likewise +furnish characters which further serve to establish this dual +relationship[18]." + + [18] Heilprin, _Geological Evidences of Evolution_, pp. 73-4 (1888). + + [Illustration: FIG. 88.--Skulls of--A, Canadian Stag; B, _Cervalces + Americanus_; and C, Elk. (After Heilprin.)] + + Formation. + |No. of toes + | |Feet + | | |Astragalus. + | | | |Carpus and tarsus. + | | | | |Ulno-radius. + | | | | | |Superior molars. + | | | | | | |Zygapophyses. + | | | | | | | |Brain. + | | | | | | | | + Pliocene. + |1-1, 2-2 + | |Digitigrade. (Plantigrade.) + | | |Grooved. (Flat.) + | | | |Interlocking. (Opposite.) + | | | | |Faceted. + | | | | | |4-tubercles, crested and cemented. + | | | | | | |Doubly involute. Singly involute. + | | | | | | | |Hemispheres larger, convoluted. + | | | | | | | | + Upper Miocene. (Loup Fork.) + |3-3, 4-4, (5-5) + | | + | | | + | | | | + | | | | | + | | | | | | + | | | | | | | + | | | | | | | | + | | | | | | | | + Middle. (John Day.) + |2-2, 3-3, 4-4 + | |Digitigrade. + | | |Grooved. + | | | |Interlocking. + | | | | |Faceted. Smooth + | | | | | |4-tubercles, and crested + | | | | | | |Singly involute. Double involute. + | | | | | | | |Hemispheres larger, convoluted. + | | | | | | | | + Lower (White River.) + |3-3, 4-3 + | |Digitigrade. Plantigrade. + | | |Grooved. + | | | |Interlocking. + | | | | |Smooth. Faceted. + | | | | | |4-tubercles, and crested + | | | | | | |? Singly involute. + | | | | | | | |Hemispheres small, and largeer. + | | | | | | | | + Eocene. Upper (Bridger.) + |3-3, 4-3, 4-5 + | |(Digitigrade.) Plantigrade. + | | |Grooved. (Flat.) + | | | |Opposite. Interlocking. + | | | | |Smooth. + | | | | | |4-tubercles. 3-tubercles, and crested. + | | | | | | |Singly involute. Plane + | | | | | | | |Hemispheres small. + | | | | | | | | + Middle. (Wasatch.) + |4-3, 4-5, 5-5 + | |Plantigrade. (Digitigrade.) + | | |Flat. (Grooved.) + | | | |Opposite. Interlocking. + | | | | |Smooth. + | | | | | |4-tubercles. 3-tubercles, a few crested. + | | | | | | |Plane. Singly involute. + | | | | | | | |Hemispheres small; + | | | | | | | |mesencephalon sometimes exposed + | | | | | | | | + Lower (Puerco.) + |5-5 + | |Plantigrade. + | | |Flat. + | | | |Opposite. + | | | | |Smooth. + | | | | | |3-tubercles. (4-tubercles), none crested. + | | | | | | |Plane. + | | | | | | | |Mesencephalon exposed; + | | | | | | | |hemisphere small and smoother. + | | | | | | | | + +The evidence, then, which is furnished by all parts of the vertebral +skeleton--whether we have regard to Fishes, Reptiles, Birds, or +Mammals--is cumulative and consistent. Nowhere do we meet with any +deviation or ambiguity, while everywhere we encounter similar proofs of +continuous transformation--proofs which vary only with the varying +amount of material which happens to be at our disposal, being most +numerous and detailed in those cases where the greatest number of fossil +forms has been preserved by the geological record. Here, therefore, we +may leave the vertebral skeleton; and, having presented a sample of the +evidence as yielded by horns and bones, I will conclude by glancing with +similar brevity at the case of shells--which, as before remarked, +constitute the only other sufficiently hard or permanent material to +yield unbroken evidence touching the fossil ancestry of animals. + +Of course it will be understood that I am everywhere giving merely +samples of the now superabundant evidence which is yielded by +palaeontology; and, as this chapter is already a long one, I must content +myself with citing only the case of mollusk-shells, although shells of +other classes might be made to yield highly important additions to the +testimony. Moreover, even as regards the one division of mollusk-shells, +I can afford to quote only a very few cases. These, however, are in my +opinion the strongest single pieces of evidence in favour of +transmutation which have thus far been brought to light. + +Near the village of Steinheim, in Wuertemberg, there is an ancient +lake-basin, dating from Tertiary times. The lake has long ago dried up; +but its aqueous deposits are extraordinarily rich in fossil shells, +especially of different species of the genus _Planorbis_. The following +is an authoritative _resume_ of the facts. + + As the deposits seem to have been continuous for ages, and the + fossil shells very abundant, this seemed to be an excellent + opportunity to test the theory of derivation. With this end in + view, they have been made the subject of exhaustive study by + Hilgendorf in 1866, and by Hyatt in 1880. In passing from the + lowest to the highest strata the species change greatly and many + times, the extreme forms being so different that, were it not for + the intermediate forms, they would be called not only different + species, but different genera. And yet the gradations are so + insensible that the whole series is nothing less than a + demonstration, in this case at least, of origin of species by + derivation with modifications. The accompanying plate of successive + forms (Fig. 89), which we take from Prof. Hyatt's admirable memoir, + will show this better than any mere verbal explanation. It will be + observed that, commencing with four slight varieties--probably + sexually isolated varieties--of one species, each series shows a + gradual transformation as we go upward in the strata--i. e. onward + in time. Series I branches into three sub-series, in two of which + the change of form is extreme. Series IV is remarkable for great + increase in size as well as change in form. In the plate we give + only selected stages, but in the fuller plates of the memoir, and + still more in the shells themselves, the subtilest gradations are + found[19]. + + [19] Le Conte, _loc. cit._, pp. 236-7. + + [Illustration: FIG. 89.--Transmutations of _Planorbis_. (After + Hyatt.)] + +Here is another and more recently observed case of transmutation in the +case of mollusks. + +The recent species, _Strombus accipitrinus_, still inhabits the coasts +of Florida. Its extinct prototype, _S. Leidy_, was discovered a few +years ago by Prof. Heilprin in the Pliocene formations of the interior +of Florida. The peculiar shape of the wing, and tuberculation of the +whorl, are thus proved to have grown but of a previously more conical +form of shell. + + [Illustration: FIG. 90.--Transformation of _Strombus_. (After + Heilprin.) 1, 1_a_, _Strombus Leidy_ (1, typical), Pliocene; 2, + 2_a_, _Strombus accipitrinus_ (2_a_ typical) Recent.] + +Lastly, attention may here again be directed to the very instructive +series of shells which has already been shown in a previous chapter, and +which serves to illustrate the successive geological forms of _Paludina_ +from the Tertiary beds of Slavonia, as depicted by Prof. Neumayr of +Vienna. (Fig. 1, p. 19.) + + + + +CHAPTER VI. + +GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION. + + +The argument from geology is the argument from the distribution of +species in time. I will next take the argument from the distribution of +species in space--that is, the present geographical distribution of +plants and animals. + +Seeing that the theory of descent with adaptive modification implies +slow and gradual change of one species into another, and progressively +still more slow and gradual changes of one genus, family, or order into +another genus, family, or order, we should expect on this theory that +the organic types living on any given geographical area would be found +to resemble or to differ from organic types living elsewhere, according +as the area is connected with or disconnected from other geographical +areas. For instance, the large continental islands of Australia and New +Zealand are widely disconnected from all other lands of the world, and +deep sea soundings show that they have probably been thus disconnected, +either since the time of their origin, or, at the least, through immense +geological epochs. The theory of evolution, therefore, would expect to +find two general facts with regard to the inhabitants of these islands. +First, that the inhabitants should form, as it were, little worlds of +their own, more or less unlike the inhabitants of any other parts of the +globe. And next, that some of these inhabitants should present us with +independent information touching archaic forms of life. For it is +manifestly most improbable that the course of evolutionary history +should have run exactly parallel in the case of these isolated oceanic +continents and in continents elsewhere. Australia and New Zealand, +therefore, ought to present a very large number, not only of peculiar +species and genera, but even of families, and possibly of orders. Now +this is just what Australia and New Zealand do present. The case of the +dog being doubtful, there is an absence of all mammalian life, except +that of one of the oldest and least highly developed orders, the +Marsupials. There even occurs a unique order, still lower in the scale +of organization--so low, in fact, that it deserves to be regarded as but +nascent mammalian: I mean, of course, the Monotremata. As regards Birds, +we have the peculiar wingless forms alluded to in a previous chapter +(viz. that on Morphology); and, without waiting to go into details, it +is notorious that the faunas of Australia and New Zealand are not only +highly peculiar, but also suggestively archaic. Therefore, in both the +respects above mentioned, the anticipations of our theory are fully +borne out. But as it would take too long to consider, even cursorily, +the faunas and floras of these immense islands, I here allude to them +only for the sake of illustration. In order to present the argument from +geographical distribution within reasonable limits, I think it is best +to restrict our examination to smaller areas; for these will better +admit of brief and yet adequate consideration. But of course it will be +understood that the less isolated the region, and the shorter the time +that it has been isolated, the smaller amount of peculiarity should we +expect to meet with on the part of its present inhabitants. Or, +conversely stated, the longer and the greater the isolation, the more +peculiarity of species would our theory expect to find. The object of +the present chapter will be to show that these, and other cognate +expectations, are fully realized by facts; but, before proceeding to do +this, I must say a few words on the antecedent standing of the argument. + +Where the question is, as at present, between the rival theories of +special creation and gradual transmutation, it may at first sight well +appear that no test can be at once so crucial and so easily applied as +this of comparing the species of one geographical area with those of +another, in order to see whether there is any constant correlation +between differences of type and degrees of separation. But a little +further thought is enough to show that the test is not quite so simple +or so absolute--that it is a test to be applied in a large and general +way over the surface of the whole earth, rather than one to be relied +upon as exclusively rigid in every special case. + +In the first place, there is the obvious consideration that lands or +seas which are discontinuous now may not always have been so, or not for +long enough to admit of the effects of separation having been exerted to +any considerable extent upon their inhabitants. Next, there is the +scarcely less important consideration, that although land areas may long +have been separated from one another by extensive tracts of ocean, +birds and insects may more or less easily have been able to fly from +one to the other; while even non-flying animals and plants may often +have been transported by floating ice or timber, wind or water currents, +and sundry other means of dispersal. Again, there is the important +influence of climate to be taken into account. We know from geological +evidence that in the course of geological time the self-same continents +have been submitted to enormous changes of temperature--varying in fact +from polar cold to almost tropical heat; and as it is manifestly +impossible that forms of life suited to one of these climates could have +survived during the other, we can here perceive a further and most +potent cause interfering with the test of geographical distribution as +indiscriminately applied in all cases. When the elephant and +hippopotamus were flourishing in England amid the luxuriant vegetation +which these large animals require, it is evident that scarcely any one +species of either the fauna or the flora of this country can have been +the same as it was when its African climate gave place to that of +Greenland. Therefore, as Mr. Wallace observes, "If glacial epochs in +temperate lands and mild climates near the poles have, as now believed +by men of eminence, occurred several times over in the past history of +the earth, the effects of such great and repeated changes both on +migration, modification, and extinction of species, must have been of +overwhelming importance--of more importance perhaps than even the +geological changes of sea and land." + +But although for these, and certain other less important reasons which I +need not wait to detail, we must conclude that the evidence from +geographical distribution is not to be regarded as a crucial test +between the rival theories of creation and evolution in all cases +indiscriminately, I must next remark that it is undoubtedly one of the +strongest lines of evidence which we possess. When we once remember +that, according to the general theory of evolution itself, the present +geographical distribution of plants and animals is "the visible outcome +or residual product of the whole past history of the earth," and, +therefore, that of the conditions determining the characters of life +inhabiting this and that particular area continuity or discontinuity +with other areas is but one,--when we remember this, we find that no +further reservation has to be made: all the facts of geographical +distribution speak with one consent in favour of the naturalistic +theory. + + * * * * * + +The first of these facts which I shall adduce is, that although the +geographical range of any given species is, as a rule, continuous, such +is far from being always the case. Very many species have more or less +discontinuous ranges--the mountain-hare, for instance, extending from +the Arctic regions over the greater portion of Europe to the Ural +Mountains and the Caucasus, and yet over all this enormous tract +appearing only in isolated or discontinuous patches, where there happen +to be either mountain ranges or climates cold enough to suit its nature. +Now, in all such cases of discontinuity in the range of a species the +theory of evolution has a simple explanation to offer--namely, either +that some representatives of the species have at some former period been +able to migrate from one region to the other, or else that at one time +the species occupied the whole of the range in question, but afterwards +became broken up as geographical, climatic, or other changes rendered +parts of the area unfit for the species to inhabit. Thus, for instance, +it is easy to understand that during the last cold epoch the +mountain-hare would have had a continuous range; but that as the Arctic +climate gradually receded to polar regions, the species would be able to +survive in southern latitudes only on mountain ranges, and thus would +become broken up into many discontinuous patches, corresponding with +these ranges. In the same way we can explain the occurrence of Arctic +vegetation on the Alps and Pyrenees--namely, as left behind by the +retreat of the Arctic climate at the close of the glacial period. + +But now, on the other hand, the theory of special creation cannot so +well afford to render this obvious explanation of discontinuity. In the +case of the Arctic flora of the Alps, for instance, although it is true +that much of this vegetation is of an Arctic type, it is not true that +the species are all identical with those which occur in the Arctic +regions. Therefore the theory of special creation would here have to +assume that, although the now common species were left behind on the +Alps by the retreat of glaciation northwards, the peculiar Alpine +species were afterwards created separately upon the Alps, and yet +created with such close affinities to the pre-existing species as to be +included with them under the same genera. Looking to the absurdity of +this supposition, as well as of others which I need not wait to mention, +certain advocates of special creation have sought to take refuge in +another hypothesis--namely, that species which present a markedly +discontinuous range may have had a corresponding number of different +centres of creation, the same specific type having been turned down, so +to speak, on widely separated areas. But to me it seems that this +explanation presents even greater difficulty than the other. If it is +difficult to say why the Divinity should have chosen to create new +species of plants on the Alps on so precisely the same pattern as the +old, much more would it be difficult to say why, in addition to these +new species, he should also have created again the old species which he +had already placed in the Arctic regions. + + * * * * * + +So much, then, for discontinuity of distribution. The next general fact +to be adduced is, that there is no constant correlation between habitats +and animals or plants suited to live upon them. Of course all the +animals and plants living upon any given area are well suited to live +upon that area; for otherwise they could not be there. But the point now +is, that besides the area on which they do live, there are usually many +other areas in different parts of the globe where they might have lived +equally well--as is proved by the fact that when transported by man they +thrive as well, or even better, than in their native country. Therefore, +upon the supposition that all species were separately created in the +countries where they are respectively found, we must conclude that they +were created in only some of the places where they might equally well +have lived. Probably there is at most but a small percentage either of +plants or animals which would not thrive in some place, or places, on +the earth's surface other than that in which they occur; and hence we +must say that one of the objects of special creation--if this be the +true theory--was that of depositing species in only some among the +several parts of the earth's surface equally well suited to support +them. + +Now, I do not contend that this fact in itself raises any difficulty +against the theory of special creation. But I do think that a very +serious difficulty is raised when to this fact we add another--namely, +that on every biological region we encounter species related to other +species in genera, and usually also genera related to other genera in +families. For if each of all the constituent species of a genus, and +even of a family, were separately created, we must hence conclude that +in depositing them there was an unaccountable design manifested to make +areas of distribution correspond to the natural affinities of their +inhabitants. For example, the humming-birds are geographically +restricted to America, and number 120 genera, comprising over 400 +species. Hence, if this betokens 400 separate acts of creation, it +cannot possibly have been due to chance that they were all performed on +the same continent: it must have been design which led to every species +of this large family of birds having been deposited in one geographical +area. Or, to take a case where only the species of a single genus are +concerned. The rats and mice proper constitute a genus which comprises +altogether more than 100 species, and they are all exclusively +restricted to the Old World. In the New World they are represented by +another genus comprising about 70 species, which resemble their Old +World cousins in form and habits; but differ from them in dentition and +other such minor points. Now, the question is,--Why should all the 100 +species have been separately created on one side of the Atlantic with +one pattern of dentition, and all the 70 species on the other side with +another pattern? What has the Atlantic Ocean got to do with any +"archetypal plan" of rats' teeth? + +Or again, to recur to Australia, why should all the mammalian forms of +life be restricted to the one group of Marsupials, when we know that not +only the Rodents, such as the rabbit, but all other orders of mammals, +would thrive there equally well. And similarly, of course, in countless +other instances. Everywhere we meet with this same correlation between +areas of distribution and affinities of classification. + +Now, it is at once manifest how completely this general fact harmonizes +with the theory of evolution. If the 400 species of humming-birds, for +instance, are all modified descendants of common ancestors, and if none +of their constituent individuals have ever been large enough to make +their way across the oceans which practically isolate their territory +from all other tropical and sub-tropical regions of the globe, then we +can understand why it is that all the 400 species occupy the same +continent. But on the special-creation theory we can see no reason why +the 400 species should all have been deposited in America. And, as +already observed, we must remember that this correlation between a +geographically restricted habitat and the zoological or botanical +affinities of its inhabitants, is repeated over and over and over again +in the faunas and floras of the world, so that merely to enumerate the +instances would require a separate chapter. + +Furthermore, the general argument thus presented in favour of descent +with continuous modification admits of being enormously strengthened by +three different classes of additional facts. + +The first is, that the correlation in question--namely, that between a +geographically restricted habitat and the zoological or botanical +affinities of its inhabitants--is not limited to the now existing +species, but extends also to the extinct. That is to say, the dead +species are allied to the living species, as we should expect that they +must be, if the latter are modified descendants of the former. On the +alternative theory, however, we have to suppose that the policy of +maintaining a correlation between geographical restriction and natural +affinity extends very much further back than even the existing species +of plants and animals; indeed we must suppose that a practically +infinite number of additional acts of separate creation were governed by +the same policy, in the case of long lines of species long since +extinct. + +Thus far, then, the only answer which an advocate of special creation +can adduce is, that for some reason unknown to us such a policy may have +been more wise than it appears: it may have served some inscrutable +purpose that allied products of distinct acts of creation should all be +kept together on the same areas. Well, in answer to this unjustifiable +appeal to the argument from ignorance, I will adduce the second of the +three considerations. This is, that in cases where the geographical +areas are not restricted the policy in question fails. In other words, +where the inhabitants of an area are free to migrate to other areas, the +policy of correlating affinity with distribution is most significantly +forgotten. In this case species wander away from their native homes, and +the course of their wanderings is marked by the origination of new +species springing up en route. Now, is it reasonable to suppose that the +mere circumstance of some members of a species being able to leave their +native home should furnish any occasion for creating new and allied +species upon the tracts over which they travel, or the territories to +which they go? When the 400 existing species of humming-birds have all +been created on the same continent for some reason supposed to be +unknown, why should this reason give way before the accident of any +means of migration being furnished to humming-birds, so that they should +be able to visit, say the continents of Africa and Asia, there gain a +footing beside the sun-birds, and henceforth determine a new centre for +the separate creation of additional species of humming-birds peculiar to +the Old World--as has happened in the case of the majority of species +which, unlike the humming-birds, have been at any time free to migrate +from their original homes? + +Lastly, my third consideration is, that the supposed policy in question +does not extend to affinities which are wider than those between species +and genera--more rarely to families, scarcely ever to orders, and never +to classes. In other words, nature shows a double correlation in her +geographical distribution of organic types:--first, that which we have +already considered between geographical restriction and natural +affinity among inhabitants of the same areas; second, another of a more +detailed character between _degrees_ of geographical restriction and +_degrees_ of natural affinity. The more distant the affinity, the more +general is the extension. This, of course, is what we should expect on +the theory of descent with modification, because the more distant the +affinity, and therefore, _ex hypothesi_, the larger and the older the +original group of organisms, the greater must be the chance of +dispersal. The 400 species of humming-birds may well be unable to +migrate from their native continent; but it would indeed have been an +unaccountable fact if no other species of all the class of birds had +ever been able to have crossed the Atlantic Ocean. Thus, on the theory +of evolution, we can well understand the second correlation now before +us--namely, between remoteness of affinity and generality of +dispersal,--so that there is no considerable portion of the habitable +globe without representatives of all the classes of animals, few +portions without representatives of all the orders, but many portions +without many of the families, innumerable portions without innumerable +genera, and, of course, all portions without the great majority of +species. Now, while this general correlation thus obviously supports the +theory of natural descent with progressive modification, it makes +directly against the opposite theory of special creation. For we have +recently seen that when we restrict our view to the case of species and +genera, the theory of special creation is obliged to suppose that for +some inscrutable reason the Deity had regard to systematic affinity +while determining on what large areas to create his species[20]. But +now we see that he must be held to have neglected this inscrutable +reason (whatever it was) when he passed beyond the range of genera--and +this always in proportion to the remoteness of systematic affinity on +the part of the species concerned. + + [20] I say "_large_ areas" for the sake of argument; but the same + correlation between distribution and affinity extends likewise to + _small_ areas where only _small_ differences of affinity are + concerned. Thus, for instance, speaking of smaller areas, Moritz + Wagner says:--"The broader and more rapid the river, the higher and + more regular the mountain-chain, the calmer and more extensive the + sea, the more considerable, as a general rule, will be the taxonomic + separation between the populations"; and he shows that, in + correlation with such differences in the _degrees_ of separation, + are the _degrees_ of diversification--i. e., the _numbers_ of + species, and even of varieties, which these topographical barriers + determine. + +I cannot well conceive a _reductio ad absurdum_ more complete than this. +But, having now presented these most general facts of geographical +distribution in their relation to the issue before us, we may next +proceed to consider a few illustrations of them in detail, for in this +way I think that their overwhelming weight may become yet more +abundantly apparent. + + * * * * * + +It will assist us in dealing with these detailed illustrations if we +begin by considering the means of dispersal of organisms from one place +to another. Of course the most ordinary means is that of continuous +wandering, or emigration; but where geographical barriers of any kind +have to be surmounted, organisms may only be able to pass them by more +exceptional and accidental means. The principal barriers of a +geographical kind are oceans, rivers, mountain-chains, and +desert-tracts, in the case of terrestrial organisms; and, in the case +of aquatic organisms, the presence of land. But it is to be observed +that, as regards marine organisms, any considerable difference in the +temperature of the water may constitute a barrier as effectual as the +presence of land; and also that, in the case of all shallow-water +faunas, a tract of deep ocean constitutes almost as complete a barrier +as it does to terrestrial faunas. + +Now, the means whereby barriers admit of being accidentally or +occasionally surmounted are, of course, various; and they differ in the +case of different organisms. Birds, bats, and insects, on account of +their powers of flight, are particularly apt to be blown out great +distances to sea, and hence of all animals are most likely to become the +involuntary colonists of distant shores. Floating timber serves to +convey seeds and eggs of small animals over great distances; and Darwin +has shown that many kinds of seeds are able of themselves to float for +more than a month in sea-water without losing their powers of +germination. For instance, out of 87 kinds, 64 germinated after an +immersion of 28 days, and a few survived an immersion of 137 days. As a +result of all his experiments he concludes, that the seeds of at least +ten per cent. of the species of plants of any country might be floated +by sea-currents during 28 days, without losing their powers of +germination; and this, at the average rate of flow of several Atlantic +currents, would serve to transport the seeds to a distance of at least +900 miles. Again, he proved that even seeds which are quickly destroyed +by contact with sea-water admit of being successfully transported during +30 days, if they be contained within the crop of a dead bird. He also +proved that living birds are most active agents in the work of +dissemination, and this not only by taking seeds into their crops +(where, so long as they remain, the seeds are uninjured), but likewise +by carrying seeds (and even young mollusks) attached to their feet and +feathers. In the course of these experiments he found that a small +cup-full of mud, which he gathered from the edges of three ponds in +February, was so charged with seeds that when sown in the ground these +few ounces of mud yielded no less than 537 plants, belonging to many +different species. It is therefore evident what opportunities are thus +afforded for the transportation of seeds on the feet and bills of +wading-birds. Lastly, floating ice is well known to act as a carrier of +any kind of life which may prove able to survive this mode of transit. + +Such being the nature of geographical barriers, and the means that +organisms of various kinds may occasionally have of overcoming them, I +will now give a few detailed illustrations of the argument from +geographical distribution, as previously presented in its general form. + +To begin with aquatic animals. As Darwin remarks, "the marine +inhabitants of the Eastern and Western shores of South America are very +distinct; with extremely few shells, crustacea, or echinodermata in +common." Again, westward of the shores of America, a wide space of open +ocean extends, which, as we have seen, furnishes as effectual a barrier +as does the land to any emigration of shallow-water animals. Now, as +soon as this reach of deep water is passed, we meet in the eastern +islands of the Pacific with another and totally distinct fauna. "So that +three marine faunas range northward and southward in parallel lines not +far from each other, under corresponding climates": they are, however, +"separated from each other by impassable barriers, either of land or +open sea": and it is in exact coincidence with the course of these +barriers that we find so remarkable a differentiation of the faunas[21]. +Obviously, therefore, it is impossible to suggest that this correlation +is accidental. Altogether many thousands of species are involved, and +within this comparatively limited area they are sharply marked off into +three groups as to their natural affinities, and into three groups as to +their several basins. Hence, if all these species were separately +created, there is no escape from the conclusion that for some reason or +another the act of creation was governed by the presence of these +barriers, so that species deposited on the Eastern shores of South +America were formed with one set of natural affinities, while species +deposited on the Western shore were formed with another set; and +similarly with regard to the third set of species in the third basin, +which, extending over a whole hemisphere to the coast of Africa without +any further barrier, nowhere presents, over this vast area, any other +case of a distinct marine fauna. But what conceivable reason can there +have been thus to consult these geographical barriers in the original +creation of specific types? Even if such a case stood alone, it would +be strongly suggestive of error on the part of the special creation +theory. But let us take another case, this time from fresh-water faunas. + + [21] The only exception is in the case of the fish on each side of + the isthmus of panama, where about 30 per cent, of the species are + identical. But it is possible enough that at some previous time this + narrow isthmus may have been even narrower than at present, if not + actually open. At all events, the fact that this partial exception + occurs just where the land-barrier is so narrow, is more suggestive + of migration than of independent creation. + +Although the geographical distribution of fresh-water fish and +fresh-water shells is often surprisingly extensive and apparently +capricious, this may be explained by the means of dispersal being here +so varied--not only aquatic birds, floods, and whirlwinds, but also +geographical changes of water-shed having all assisted in the process. +Moreover, in some cases it is possible that the habits of more widely +distributed fresh-water fish may have originally been wholly or partly +marine--which, of course, would explain the existing discontinuity of +their existing fresh-water distribution. But, be this as it may (and it +is not a question that affects the issue between special creation and +gradual evolution, since it is only a question as to how a given species +has been dispersed from its original home, whether or not in that home +it was specially created), the point I desire to bring forward is, that +where we find a barrier to the emigration of fresh-water forms which is +more formidable than a thousand miles of ocean--a barrier over which +neither water-fowl nor whirlwinds are likely to pass, and which is above +the reach of any geological changes of water-shed,--where we find such a +barrier, we always find a marked difference in the fresh-water faunas on +either side of it. The kind of barrier to which I allude is a high +mountain-chain. It may be only a few miles wide; yet it exercises a +greater influence on the diversification of specific types, where +fresh-water faunas are concerned, than almost any other. But why should +this be the case on any intelligible theory of special creation? Why, in +the depositing of species of newly created fresh-water fish, should the +presence of an impassable mountain-chain have determined so uniformly a +difference of specific affinity on either side of it? The question, so +far as I can see, does not admit of an answer from any reasonable +opponent. + + * * * * * + +Turning now from aquatic organisms to terrestrial, the body of facts +from which to draw is so large, that I think the space at my disposal +may be best utilized by confining attention to a single division of +them--that, namely, which is furnished by the zoological study of +oceanic islands. + +In the comparatively limited--but in itself extensive--class of facts +thus presented, we have a particularly fair and cogent test as between +the alternative theories of evolution and creation. For where we meet +with a volcanic island, hundreds of miles from any other land, and +rising abruptly from an ocean of enormous depth, we may be quite sure +that such an island can never have formed part of a now submerged +continent. In other words, we may be quite sure that it always has been +what it now is--an oceanic peak, separated from all other land by +hundreds of miles of sea, and therefore an area supplied by nature for +the purpose, as it were, of testing the rival theories of creation and +evolution. For, let us ask, upon these tiny insular specks of land what +kind of life should we expect to find? To this question the theories of +special creation and of gradual evolution would agree in giving the +same answer up to a certain point. For both theories would agree in +supposing that these islands would, at all events in large part, derive +their inhabitants from accidental or occasional arrivals of wind-blown +or water-floated organisms from other countries--especially, of course, +from the countries least remote. But, after agreeing upon this point, +the two theories must part company in their anticipations. The +special-creation theory can have no reason to suppose that a small +volcanic island in the midst of a great ocean should be chosen as the +theatre of any extraordinary creative activity, or for any particularly +rich manufacture of peculiar species to be found nowhere else in the +world. On the other hand, the evolution theory would expect to find that +such habitats are stocked with more or less peculiar species. For it +would expect that when any organisms chanced to reach a wholly isolated +refuge of this kind, their descendants should forthwith have started +upon an independent course of evolutionary history. Protected from +intercrossing with any members of their parent species elsewhere, and +exposed to considerable changes in their conditions of life, it would +indeed be fatal to the general theory of evolution if these descendants, +during the course of many generations, were not to undergo appreciable +change. It has happened on two or three occasions that European rats +have been accidentally imported by ships upon some of these islands, and +even already it is observed that their descendants have undergone a +slight change of appearance, so as to constitute them what naturalists +call local varieties. The change, of course, is but slight, because the +time allowed for it has been so short. But the longer the time that a +colony of a species is thus completely isolated under changed conditions +of life the greater, according to the evolution theory, should we expect +the change to become. Therefore, in all cases where we happen to know, +from independent evidence of a geological kind, that an oceanic island +is of very ancient formation, the evolution theory would expect to +encounter a great wealth of peculiar species. On the other hand, as I +have just observed, the special-creation theory can have no reason to +suppose that there should be any correlation between the age of an +oceanic island and the number of peculiar species which it may be found +to contain. + +Therefore, having considered the principles of geographical distribution +from the widest or most general point of view, we shall pass to the +opposite extreme, and consider exhaustively, or in the utmost possible +detail, the facts of such distribution where the conditions are best +suited to this purpose--that is, as I have already said, upon oceanic +islands, which may be metaphorically regarded as having been formed by +nature for the particular purpose of supplying naturalists with a +crucial test between the theories of creation and evolution. The +material upon which my analysis is to be based will be derived from the +most recent works upon geographical distribution--especially from the +magnificent contributions to this department of science which we owe to +the labours of Mr. Wallace. Indeed, all that follows may be regarded as +a condensed filtrate of the facts which he has collected. Even as thus +restricted, however, our subject-matter would be too extensive to be +dealt with on the present occasion, were we to attempt an exhaustive +analysis of the floras and faunas of all oceanic islands upon the face +of the globe. Therefore, what I propose to do is to select for such +exhaustive analysis a few of what may be termed the most oceanic of +oceanic islands--that is to say, those oceanic islands which are most +widely separated from mainlands, and which, therefore, furnish the most +unquestionable of test cases as between the theories of special creation +and genetic descent. + + * * * * * + +_Azores._--A group of volcanic islands, nine in number, about 900 miles +from the coast of Portugal, and surrounded by ocean depths of 1,800 to +2,500 fathoms. There is geological evidence that the origin of the group +dates back at least as far as Miocene times. There is a total absence of +all terrestrial Vertebrata, other than those which are known to have +been introduced by man. Flying animals, on the other hand, are abundant; +namely, 53 species of birds, one species of bat, a few species of +butterflies, moths, and hymenoptera, with 74 species of indigenous +beetles. All these animals are unmodified European species, with the +exception of one bird and many of the beetles. Of the 74 indigenous +species of the latter, 36 are not found in Europe; but 19 are natives of +Madeira or the Canaries, and 3 are American, doubtless transplanted by +drift-wood. The remaining 14 species occur nowhere else in the world, +though for the most part they are allied to other European species. +There are 69 known species of land-shells, of which 37 are European, and +32 peculiar, though all allied to European forms. Lastly, there are 480 +known species of plants, of which 40 are peculiar, though allied to +European species. + +_Bermudas._--A small volcanic group of islands, 700 miles from North +Carolina. Although there are about 100 islands in the group, their total +area does not exceed 50 square miles. The group is surrounded by water +varying in depth from 2,500 to 3,800 fathoms. The only terrestrial +Vertebrate (unless the rats and mice are indigenous) is a lizard allied +to an American form, but specifically distinct from it, and therefore a +solitary species which does not occur anywhere else in the world. None +of the birds or bats are peculiar, any more than in the case of the +Azores; but, as in that case, a large percentage of the land-shells are +so--namely, at least one quarter of the whole. Neither the botany nor +the entomology of this group has been worked out; but I have said enough +to show how remarkably parallel are the cases of these two volcanic +groups of islands situated in different hemispheres, but at about the +same distance from large continents. In both there is an extraordinary +paucity of terrestrial vertebrata, and of any peculiar species of bird +or beast. On the other hand, there is in both a marvellous wealth of +peculiar species of insects and land-shells. Now these correlations are +all abundantly intelligible. It is a difficult matter for any +terrestrial animal to cross 900, or even 700, miles of ocean: therefore +only one lizard has succeeded in doing so in one of the two parallel +cases; and, living cut off from intercrossing with its parent form, the +descendants of that lizard have become modified so as to constitute a +peculiar species. But it is more easy for large flying animals to cross +those distances of ocean: consequently, there is only one instance of a +peculiar species of bird or bat--namely, a bull-finch in the Azores, +which, being a small land-bird, is not likely ever to have had any other +visitors from its original parent species coming over from Europe to +keep up the original breed. Lastly, it is very much more easy for +insects and land-mollusca to be conveyed to such islands by wind and +floating timber than it is for terrestrial mammals, or even than it is +for small birds and bats; but yet such means of transit are not +sufficiently sure to admit of much recruiting from the mainland for the +purpose of keeping up the specific types. Consequently, the insects and +the land-shells present a much greater proportion of peculiar +species--namely, one half and one fourth of the land-shells in the one +case, and one eighth of the beetles in the other. All these +correlations, I say, are abundantly intelligible on the theory of +evolution; but who shall explain, on the opposite theory, why orders of +beetles and land-mollusca should have been chosen from among all other +animals for such superabundant creation on oceanic islands, so that in +the Azores alone we find no less than 32 of the one and 14 of the other? +And, in this connexion, I may again allude to the peculiar species of +beetles in the island of Madeira. Here there are an enormous number of +peculiar species, though they are nearly all related to, or included +under the same genera as, beetles on the neighbouring continent. Now, as +we have previously seen, no less than 200 of these species have lost the +use of their wings. Evolutionists explain this remarkable fact by their +general laws of degeneration under disuse, and the operation of natural +selection, as will be shown later on; but it is not so easy for special +creationists to explain why this enormous number of peculiar species of +beetles should have been deposited on Madeira, all allied to beetles on +the nearest continent, and nearly all deprived of the use of their +wings. And similarly, of course, with all the peculiar species of the +Bermudas and the Azores. For who will explain, on the theory of +independent creation, why all the peculiar species, both of animals and +plants, which occur on the Bermudas should so unmistakably present +American affinities, while those which occur on the Azores no less +unmistakably present European affinities? But to proceed to other, and +still more remarkable, cases. + +_The Galapagos Islands._--This archipelago is of volcanic origin, +situated under the equator between 500 and 600 miles from the West Coast +of South America. The depth of the ocean around them varies from 2,000 +to 3,000 fathoms or more. This group is of particular interest, from the +fact that it was the study of its fauna which first suggested to +Darwin's mind the theory of evolution. I will, therefore, begin by +quoting a short passage from his writings upon the zoological relations +of this particular fauna. + + Here almost every product of the land and of the water bears the + unmistakeable stamp of the American continent. There are twenty-six + land birds; of these, twenty-one, or perhaps twenty-three, are + ranked as distinct species, and would commonly be assumed to have + been here created; yet the close affinity of most of these birds to + American species is manifest in every character, in their habits, + gestures, and tones of voice. So it is with the other animals, and + with a large proportion of the plants, as shown by Dr. Hooker in + his admirable Flora of this archipelago. The naturalist, looking at + the inhabitants of these volcanic islands in the Pacific, distant + several hundred miles from the continent, feels that he is standing + on American land. Why should this be so? Why should the species + which are supposed to have been created in the Galapagos + Archipelago, and nowhere else, bear so plainly the stamp of + affinity to those created in America? There is nothing in the + conditions of life, in the geological nature of the islands, in + their height or climate, or in the proportions in which the several + classes are associated together, which closely resembles the + conditions of the South American coast; in fact, there is a + considerable dissimilarity in all these respects. On the other + hand, there is a considerable degree of resemblance in the volcanic + nature of the soil, in the climate, height, and size of the + islands, between the Galapagos and Cape de Verde Archipelagoes; but + what an entire and absolute difference in their inhabitants! The + inhabitants of the Cape de Verde Islands are related to those of + Africa, like those of the Galapagos to America. Facts such as these + admit of no sort of explanation on the ordinary view of independent + creation; whereas on the view here maintained, it is obvious that + the Galapagos Islands would be likely to receive colonists from + America, and the Cape de Verde Islands from Africa; such colonists + would be liable to modification--the principle of inheritance still + betraying their original birthplace[22]. + + [22] _origin of species_, pp. 353-4. + +The following is a synopsis of the fauna and flora of this archipelago, +so far as at present known. The only terrestrial vertebrates are two +peculiar species of land-tortoise, and one extinct species; five species +of lizards, all peculiar--two of them so much so as to constitute a +peculiar genus;--and two species of snakes, both closely allied to South +American forms. Of birds there are 57 species, of which no less than 38 +are peculiar; and all the non-peculiar species, except one, belong to +aquatic tribes. The true land birds are represented by 31 species, of +which all, except one, are peculiar; while more than half of them go to +constitute peculiar genera. Moreover, while they are all unquestionably +allied to South American forms, they present a beautiful series of +gradations, "from perfect identity with the continental species, to +genera so distinct that it is difficult to determine with what forms +they are most nearly allied; and it is interesting to note that this +diversity bears a distinct relation to the probabilities of, and +facilities for, migration to the islands. The excessively abundant +rice-bird, which breeds in Canada, and swarms over the whole United +States, migrating to the West Indies and South America, visiting the +distant Bermudas almost every year, and extending its range as far as +Paraquay, is the only species of land-bird which remains completely +unchanged in the Galapagos; and we may therefore conclude that some +stragglers of the migrating host reach the islands sufficiently often to +keep up the purity of the breed[23]." Again, of the thirty peculiar +land-birds, it is observable that the more they differ from any other +species or genera on the South American continent, the more certainly +are they found to have their nearest relations among those South +American forms which have the more restricted range, and are therefore +the least likely to have found their way to the islands with any +frequency. + + [23] Wallace, _Island Life_, pp. 271-2. + +The insect fauna of the Galapagos islands is scanty, and chiefly +composed of beetles. These number 35 species, which are nearly all +peculiar, and in some cases go to constitute peculiar genera. The same +remarks apply to the twenty species of land-shells. Lastly, of the total +number of flowering plants (332 species) more than one half (174 +species) are peculiar. It is observable in the case of these peculiar +species of plants--as also of the peculiar species of birds--that many +of them are restricted to single islands. It is also observable that, +with regard both to the fauna and flora, the Galapagos Islands as a +whole are very much richer in peculiar species than either the Azores or +Bermudas, notwithstanding that both the latter are considerably more +remote from their nearest continents. This difference, which at first +sight appears to make against the evolutionary interpretation, really +tends to confirm it. For the Galapagos Islands are situated in a calm +region of the globe, unvisited by those periodic storms and hurricanes +which sweep over the North Atlantic, and which every year convey some +straggling birds, insects, seeds, &c., to the Azores and Bermudas. +Notwithstanding their somewhat greater isolation geographically, +therefore, the Azores and Bermudas are really less isolated biologically +than are the Galapagos Islands; and hence the less degree of peculiarity +on the part of their endemic species. But, on the theory of special +creation, it is impossible to understand why there should be any such +correlation between the prevalence of gales and a comparative inertness +of creative activity. And, as we have seen, it is equally impossible on +this theory to understand why there should be a further correlation +between the _degree_ of peculiarity on the part of the isolated +species, and the degree in which their nearest allies on the mainland +are there confined to narrow ranges, and therefore less likely to keep +up any biological communication with the islands. + +_St. Helena._--A small volcanic island, ten miles long by eight wide, +situated in mid-ocean, 1100 miles from Africa, and 1800 from South +America. It is very mountainous and rugged, bounded for the most part by +precipices, rising from ocean depths of 17,000 feet, to a height above +the sea-level of nearly 3,000. When first discovered it was richly +clothed with forests; but these were all destroyed by human agency +during the 16th, 17th and 18th centuries. The records of civilization +present no more lamentable instance of this kind of destruction. From a +merely pecuniary point of view the abolition of these primeval forests +has proved an irreparable loss; but from a scientific point of view the +loss is incalculable. These forests served to harbour countless forms of +life, which extended at least from the Miocene age, and which, having +found there an ocean refuge, survived as the last remnants of a remote +geological epoch. In those days, as Mr. Wallace observes, St. Helena +must have formed a kind of natural museum or vivarium of archaic species +of all classes, the interest of which we can now only surmise from the +few remnants of those remnants, which are still left among the more +inaccessible portions of the mountain peaks and crater edges. These +remnants of remnants are as follows. + +There is a total absence of all indigenous mammals, reptiles, +fresh-water fish, and true land-birds. There is, however, a species of +plover, allied to one in South Africa; but it is specifically distinct, +and therefore peculiar to the island. The insect life, on the other +hand, is abundant. Of beetles no less than 129 species are believed to +be aboriginal, and, with one single exception, the whole number are +peculiar to the island. "But in addition to this large amount of +specific peculiarity (perhaps unequalled anywhere else in the world), +the beetles of this island are remarkable for their generic isolation, +and for the altogether exceptional proportion in which the great +divisions of the order are represented. The species belong to 39 genera, +of which no less than 25 are peculiar to the island; and many of these +are such isolated forms that it is impossible to find their allies in +any particular country[24]." More than two-thirds of all the species +belong to the group of weevils--a circumstance which serves to explain +the great wealth of beetle-population, the weevils being beetles which +live in wood, and St. Helena having been originally a densely wooded +island. This circumstance is also in accordance with the view that the +peculiar insect fauna has been in large part evolved from ancestors +which reached the island by means of floating timber; for, of course, no +explanation can be suggested why special creation of this highly +peculiar insect fauna should have run so disproportionately into the +production of weevils. About two-thirds of the whole number of beetles, +or over 80 species, show no close affinity with any existing insects, +while the remaining third have some relations, though often very remote, +with European and African forms. That this high degree of peculiarity +is due to high antiquity is further indicated, according to our theory, +by the large number of species which some of the types comprise. Thus, +the 54 species of _Cossonidae_ may be referred to three types; the 11 +species of _Bembidium_ form a group by themselves; and the _Heteromera_ +form two groups. "Now, each of these types may well be descended from a +single species, which originally reached the island from some other +land; and the great variety of generic and specific forms into which +some of them have diverged is an indication, and to some extent a +measure, of the remoteness of their origin[25]." But, on the +counter-supposition that all these 128 peculiar species were separately +created to occupy this particular island, it is surely unaccountable +that they should thus present such an arborescence of natural affinities +amongst themselves. + + [24] Wallace, _Island Life_, p. 287. + + [25] Wallace, _Island Life_, p. 287. + +Passing over the rest of the insect fauna, which has not yet been +sufficiently worked out, we next find that there are only 20 species of +indigenous land-shells--which is not surprising when we remember by what +enormous reaches of ocean the island is surrounded. Of these 20 species +no less than 13 have become extinct, three are allied to European +species, while the rest are so highly peculiar as to have no near allies +in any other part of the globe. So that the land-shells tell exactly the +same story as the insects. + +Lastly, the plants likewise tell the same story. The truly indigenous +flowering plants are about 50 in number, besides 26 ferns. Forty of the +former and ten of the latter are peculiar to the island, and, as Sir +Joseph Hooker tells us, "cannot be regarded as very close specific +allies of any other plants at all" Seventeen of them belong to peculiar +genera, and the others all differ so markedly as species from their +congeners, that not one comes under the category of being an insular +form of a continental species. So that with respect to its plants no +less than with respect to its animals, we find that the island of St. +Helena constitutes a little world of unique species, allied among +themselves, but diverging so much from all other known forms that in +many cases they constitute unique genera. + +_Sandwich Islands._--These are an extensive group of islands, larger +than any we have hitherto considered--the largest of the group being +about the size of Devonshire. The entire archipelago is volcanic, with +mountains rising to a height of nearly 14,000 feet. The group is +situated in the middle of the North Pacific, at a distance of +considerably over 2,000 miles from any other land, and surrounded by +enormous ocean depths. The only terrestrial vertebrata are two lizards, +one of which constitutes a peculiar genus. There are 24 aquatic birds, +five of which are peculiar; four birds of prey, two of which are +peculiar; and 16 land-birds, all of which are peculiar. Moreover, these +16 land-birds constitute no less than 10 peculiar genera, and even one +peculiar family of five genera. This is an amount of peculiarity far +exceeding that of any other islands, and, of course, corresponds with +the great isolation of this archipelago. The only other animals which +have here been carefully studied are the land-shells, and these tell the +same story as the birds. For there are no less than 400 species which +are all, without any exception, peculiar; while about three-quarters of +them go to constitute peculiar genera. Again, of the plants, 620 species +are believed to be endemic; and of these 377 are peculiar, yielding no +less than 39 peculiar genera. + + * * * * * + +Prejudice apart, I think we must all now agree that it is needless to +continue further this line of proof. I have chosen the smallest and most +isolated islands for the purposes of our present argument, first because +these furnish the most crucial kind of test, and next because they best +admit of being dealt with in a short space. But, if necessary, a vast +amount of additional material could be furnished, not only from other +small oceanic islands, but still more from the largest islands of the +world, such as Australia and New Zealand. However, after the detailed +inventories which have now been given in the case of some of the smaller +islands most remote from mainlands, we may well be prepared to accept it +as a general law, that _wherever_ there is evidence of land-areas having +been for a long time separated from other land-areas, there we meet with +a more or less extraordinary profusion of unique species, often running +up into unique genera. And, in point of fact, so far as naturalists have +hitherto been able to ascertain, _there is no exception to this general +law in any region of the globe_. Moreover, there is everywhere a +constant correlation between the _degree_ of this peculiarity on the +part of the fauna and flora, and the _time_ during which they have been +isolated. Thus, for instance, among the islands which I have called +into evidence, those that are at once the most isolated and give +independent proofs of the highest antiquity, are the Galapagos Islands, +the Sandwich Islands, and St. Helena. Now, if we apply the method of +tabular analysis to these three cases, we obtain the following most +astonishing results. For the sake of simplicity I will omit the +enumeration of peculiar genera, and confine attention to peculiar +species. Moreover, I will consider only terrestrial animals; for, as we +have already seen, aquatic animals are so much more likely to reach +oceanic islands that they do not furnish nearly so fair a test of the +evolutionary hypothesis. + + PECULIAR SPECIES. + + +------------+---------+----------+-----------+----------+----------+ + | | Shells. | Insects. | Reptiles. | Birds. | Mammals. | + | +---------+----------+-----------+----------+----------+ + | Sandwich. | 400 | ? | 2 | 16 | 0 | + | Galapagos | 15 | 35 | 10 | 30 | 0 | + | St. Helena | 20 | 128 | 0 | 1 | 0 | + +------------+---------+----------+-----------+----------+----------+ + | Totals. | 435 | 163 | 12 | 47 | 0 | + +------------+---------+----------+-----------+----------+----------+ + + NON-PECULIAR SPECIES. + + +------------+---------+----------+-----------+----------+----------+ + | | Shells. | Insects. | Reptiles. | Birds. | Mammals. | + | +---------+----------+-----------+----------+----------+ + | Sandwich. | 0 | ? | 0 | 0 | 0 | + | Galapagos | ? | ? | 0 | 1 | 0 | + | St. Helena | 0 | ? | 0 | 0 | 0 | + +------------+---------+----------+-----------+----------+----------+ + | Totals. | 0 | ? | 0 | 1 | 0 | + +------------+---------+----------+-----------+----------+----------+ + +From this synopsis we perceive that out of a total of 658 species of +terrestrial animals known to inhabit these three oceanic territories, +all are peculiar, with the exception of a single land-bird which is +found in the Galapagos Islands. This is the rice-bird, so very abundant +on the American continent that its representatives must not unfrequently +become the involuntary colonists of the Archipelago. There are, however, +a few species of non-peculiar insects inhabiting the Sandwich and +Galapagos Islands, the exact number of which is doubtful, and on this +account are not here quoted. But at most they would be represented by +units, and therefore do not affect the general result. Lastly, the +remarkable fact will be noted, that there is no single representative of +the mammalian class in any of these islands. + +If we turn next to consider the case of plants, we obtain the following +result:-- + + +-----------+-----------+--------------+ + | |_Peculiar |_Non-peculiar | + | | Species._ | Species._ | + +-----------|-----------|--------------+ + |Sandwich | 377 | 243 | + |Galapagos | 174 | 158 | + |St. Helena | 50 | 26 | + | | ---- | ---- | + | Totals | 601 | 427 | + +-----------+-----------+--------------+ + +So that by adding together peculiar species both of land-animals and +plants, we find that on these three limited areas alone there are 1258 +forms of life which occur nowhere else upon the globe--not to speak of +the peculiar aquatic species, nor of the presumably large number of +peculiar species of all kinds not hitherto discovered in these +imperfectly explored regions. + +Now let us compare these facts with those which are presented by the +faunas and floras of islands less remote from continents, and known +from independent geological evidence to be of comparatively recent +origin--that is, to have been separated from their adjacent mainlands in +comparatively recent times, and therefore as islands to be comparatively +young. The British Isles furnish as good an instance as could be chosen, +for they together comprise over 1000 islands of various sizes, which are +nowhere separated from one another by deep seas, and in the opinion of +geologists were all continuous with the European continent since the +glacial period. + + BRITISH ISLES. + + NON-PECULIAR SPECIES. + + +---------+---------+----------+-----------+---------+---------+ + | | Land | | Reptiles | Land | Land | + | Plants. | Shells. | Insects. | and | Birds. | Mammals.| + | | | | Amphibia. | | | + +---------+---------+----------+-----------+---------+---------+ + | 1462 | 83 | 12,551 | 13 | 130 | 40 | + +---------+---------+----------+-----------+---------+---------+ + + PECULIAR SPECIES. + +---------+---------+----------+-----------+---------+---------+ + | | Land | | Reptiles | Land | Land | + | Plants. | Shells. | Insects. | and | Birds. | Mammals.| + | | | | Amphibia. | | | + +---------+---------+----------+-----------+---------+---------+ + | 46 | 4 | 149 | 0 | 1 | 0 | + +---------+---------+----------+-----------+---------+---------+ + + Total Peculiar Plants 46 + Total Peculiar Animals 154 + ---- + Grand Total 200 + +I have drawn up this table in the most liberal manner possible, +including as peculiar species forms which many naturalists regard as +merely local varieties. But, even as thus interpreted, how wonderful is +the contrast between the 1000 islands of Great Britain and the single +volcanic rock of St. Helena, where almost all the animals and about half +the plants are peculiar, instead of about 1/80 of the animals, and 1/30 +of the plants. Of course, if no peculiar species of any kind had +occurred in the British Isles, advocates of special creation might have +argued that it was, so to speak, needless for the Divinity to have added +any new species to those European forms which fully populated the +islands at the time when they were separated from the continent. But, as +the matter stands, advocates of special creation must face the fact that +a certain small number of new and peculiar species have been formed on +the British Isles; and, therefore, that creative activity has not been +wholly suspended in their case. Why, then, has it been so meagre in this +case of a thousand islands, when it has proved so profuse in the case of +all single islands more remote from mainlands, and presenting a higher +antiquity? Or why should the Divinity have thus appeared so uniformly to +consult these merely accidental circumstances of space and time in the +depositing of his unique specific types? Do not such facts rather speak +with irresistible force in favour of the view, that while all ancient +and solitary islands have had time enough, and separation enough, to +admit of distinct histories of evolution having been written in their +living inhabitants, no one of the thousand islands of Great Britain has +had either time enough, or separation enough, to have admitted of more +than some of the first pages of such a history having been commenced? + +But this allusion to Great Britain introduces us to another point. It +will have been observed that, unlike oceanic islands remote from +mainlands, Great Britain is well furnished both with reptiles (including +amphibia) and mammals. For there is no instance of any oceanic island +situated at more than 300 miles from a continent where any single +species of the whole class of mammals is to be found, excepting species +of the only order which is able to fly--namely, the bats. And the same +has to be said of frogs, toads, and newts, whose spawn is quickly killed +by contact with sea-water, and therefore could never have reached remote +islands in a living state. Hence, on evolutionary principles; it is +quite intelligible why oceanic islands should not present any species of +mammals or batrachians--peculiar or otherwise,--save such species of +mammals as are able to fly. But on the theory of special creation we can +assign no reason why, notwithstanding the extraordinary profusion of +unique types of other kinds which we have seen to occur on oceanic +islands, the Deity should have made this curious exception to the +detriment of all frogs, toads, newts, and mammals, save only such as are +able to fly. Or, if any one should go so far to save a desperate +hypothesis as to maintain that there must have been some hidden reason +why batrachians and quadrupeds were not specially created on oceanic +islands, I may mention another small--but in this relation a most +significant--fact. This is that on some of these islands there occur +certain peculiar species of plants, the seeds of which are provided with +numerous tiny hooks, obviously and beautifully adapted--like those on +the seeds of allied plants elsewhere--to catch the wool or hair of +moving quadrupeds, and so to further their own dissemination. But, as we +have just seen, there are no quadrupeds in the islands to meet these +beautiful adaptations on the part of the plants; so that special +creationists must resort to the almost impious supposition that in these +cases the Deity has only carried out half his plan, in that while he +made an elaborate provision for these uniquely created species of +plants, which depended for its efficiency on the presence of quadrupeds, +he nevertheless neglected to place any quadrupeds on the islands where +he had placed the plants. Such one-sided attempts at adaptation surely +resolve the thesis of special creation to a _reductio ad absurdum_; and +hence the only reasonable interpretation of them is, that while the +seeds of allied or ancestral plants were able to float to the islands, +no quadrupeds were ever able over so great a distance to swim. + + * * * * * + +Although much more evidence might still be given under the head of +geographical distribution, I must now close with a brief summary of the +main points that have been adduced. + +After certain preliminary considerations, I began by noticing that the +theory of evolution has a much more intelligible account to give than +has its rival of the facts of discontinuous distribution--the Alpine +flora, for instance, being allied to the Arctic, not because the same +species were separately created in both places, but because during the +glacial period these species extended all over Europe, and were left +behind on the Alps as the Arctic flora receded northwards--which was +sufficiently long ago to explain why some of the Alpine species are +unique, though closely allied to Arctic forms. + +Next we saw that, although living things are always adapted to the +climates under which they live (since otherwise they could not live +there at all), it is equally true that, as a rule, besides the area on +which they do live, there are many other areas in different parts of the +globe where they might have lived equally well. Consequently we must +conclude that, if all species were separately created, many species were +severally created on only one among a number of areas where they might +equally well have thrived. Now, although this conclusion in itself may +not seem opposed to the theory of special creation, a most serious +difficulty is raised when it is taken in connexion with another fact of +an equally general kind. This is, that on every biological region we +encounter chains of allied species constituting allied genera, families, +and so on; while we scarcely ever meet with allied species in different +biological regions, notwithstanding that their climates may be similar, +and, consequently, just as well suited to maintain some of the allied +species. Hence we must further conclude, if all species were separately +created, that in the work of creation some unaccountable regard was paid +to making areas of distribution correspond to degrees of structural +affinity. A great many species of the rat genus were created in the Old +World, and a great many species of another, though allied, genus were +created in the New World: yet no reason can be assigned why no one +species of the Old World series should not just as well have been +deposited in the New World, and _vice versa_. On the other hand, the +theory of evolution may claim as direct evidence in its support all the +innumerable cases such as these--cases, indeed, so innumerable that, as +Mr. Wallace remarks, it may be taken as a law of nature that "every +species has come into existence coincident both in space and time with a +pre-existing and closely allied species." A general law which, while in +itself most strongly suggestive of evolution, is surely impossible to +reconcile with any reasonable theory of special creation. Furthermore, +this law extends backwards through all geological time, with the result +that the extinct species which now occur only as fossils on any given +geological area, resemble the species still living upon that area, as we +should expect that they must, if the former were the natural progenitors +of the latter. On the other hand, if they were not the natural +progenitors, but all the species, both living and extinct, were the +supernatural and therefore independent creations which the rival theory +would suppose, then no reason can be given why the extinct species +should thus resemble the living--any more than why the living species +should resemble one another. For, as we have seen, there are almost +always many other habitats on other parts of the globe, where any +members of any given group of species might equally well have been +deposited; and this, of course, applies to geological no less than to +historical time. Yet throughout all time we meet with this most +suggestive correlation between continuity of a geographical area and +structural affinity between the forms of life which have lived, or are +still living, upon that area. + +Similarly, we find the further, and no less suggestive, correlation +between the birth of new species and the immediate pre-existence of +closely allied species on the same area--or, at most, on closely +contiguous areas. + +Where a continuous area has long been circumscribed by barriers of any +kind, which prevent the animals from wandering beyond it, then we find +that all the species, both extinct and living, constitute more or less a +world of their own; while, on the other hand, where the animals are free +to migrate from one area to another, the course of their migrations is +marked by the origination of new species springing up _en route_, and +serving to connect the older, or metropolitan, forms with the younger, +or colonising, forms in the way of a graduated series. This principle, +however, admits of being traced only in certain cases of species +belonging to the same genus, of genera belonging to the same family, or, +at most, of families belonging to the same order. In other words, the +more general the structural affinity, the more general is the +geographical extension--as we should expect to be the case on the theory +of descent with branching modifications, seeing that the larger, the +older, and the more diverse the group of organisms compared, the greater +must be their chances of dispersal. + +These general considerations led us to contemplate more in detail the +correlation between structural affinity and barriers to free migration. +Such barriers, of course, differ in the cases of different organisms. +Marine organisms are stopped by land, unsuitable temperature, or +unsuitable depths; fresh-water organisms by sea and by mountain-chains; +terrestrial organisms chiefly by water. Now it is a matter of fact +which admits of no dispute, that in each of these cases we meet with a +direct correlation between the kind of barrier and the kind of organisms +whose structural affinities are affected thereby. Where we have to do +with marine organisms, barriers such as the Isthmus of Panama and the +varying depth of the Western Pacific determine three very distinct +faunas, ranging north and south in closely parallel lines, and under +corresponding climates. Where we have to do with fresh-water organisms, +we find that a mountain-chain only a few miles wide has more influence +in determining differences of organic type on either side of it than is +exercised by even thousands of miles of a continuous land-area, if this +be uninterrupted by any mountains high enough to prevent water-fowl, +whirlwinds, &c., from dispersing the ova. Again, where we have to do +with terrestrial organisms, the most effectual barriers are wide reaches +of ocean; and, accordingly, we find that these exercise an enormous +influence on the modification of terrestrial types. Moreover, we find +that the _more_ terrestrial an organism, or the _greater_ the difficulty +it has in traversing a wide reach of ocean, the _greater_ is the +modifying influence of such a barrier upon that type. In oceanic +islands, for example, many of the plants and aquatic birds usually +belong to the same species as those which occur on the nearest +mainlands, and where there are any specific differences, these but +rarely run up to generic differences. But the land-birds, insects, and +reptiles which are found on such islands are nearly always specifically, +and very often generically, distinct from those on the nearest +mainland--although invariably allied with sufficient closeness to leave +no manner of doubt as to their affinities with the fauna of that +mainland. Lastly, no amphibians and no mammals (except bats) are ever +found on any oceanic islands. Yet, as we have seen, on the theory of +special creation, these islands must all be taken to have been the +theatres of the most extraordinary creative activity, so that on only +three of them we found no less than 1258 unique species, whereof 657 +were unique species of land animals, to be set against one single +species known to occur elsewhere. Nevertheless, notwithstanding this +prodigious expenditure of creative energy in the case of land-birds, +land-shells, insects, and reptiles, no single new amphibian, or no +single new mammal, has been created on any single oceanic island, if we +except the only kind of mammal that is able to fly, and the ancestors of +which, like those of the land-birds and insects, might therefore have +reached the islands ages ago. Moreover, with regard to mammals, even in +cases where allied forms occur on either side of a sea-channel, it is +found to be a general rule that if the channel is shallow, the species +on either side of it are much more closely related than if it be +deep--and this irrespective of its width. Therefore we can only +conclude, in the words of Darwin--"As the amount of modification which +animals of all kinds undergo partly depends on lapse of time, and as the +islands which are separated from each other or from the mainland by +shallow channels are more likely to have been continuously united within +a recent period than islands separated by deeper channels, we can +understand how it is that a relation exists between the depth of the sea +separating two mammalian faunas, and the degree of their affinity--a +relation which is quite inexplicable on the theory of independent acts +of creation." + + * * * * * + +Looking to all these general principles of geographical distribution, +and remembering the sundry points of smaller detail relating to oceanic +islands which I will not wait to recapitulate, to my mind it seems that +there is no escape from the following conclusion, with which I will +bring my brief epitome of the evidence to a close. The conclusion to +which, I submit, all the evidence leads is, that if the doctrine of +special creation is taken to be true, then it must be further taken that +the one and only principle which has been consistently followed in the +geographical deposition of species, is that of so depositing them as to +make it everywhere appear that they were not thus deposited at all, but +came into existence where they now occur by way of genetic descent with +perpetual migration and correlative modification. On no other principle, +so far as I can see, would it be possible to account for the fact that +"every species has come into existence coincident both in space and time +with a pre-existing and closely allied species," together with the +carefully graduated regard to physical barriers which the Creator must +have displayed while depositing his newly formed species on either sides +of them--everywhere making _degrees_ of structural affinity correspond +to _degrees_ of geographical continuity, and _degrees_ of structural +difference correspond to _degrees_ of geographical separation, whether +by mountain-chains in the case of fresh-water faunas, by land and by +deep sea in the case of marine faunas, or by reaches of ocean in the +case of terrestrial faunas--stocking oceanic islands with an enormous +profusion of peculiar species all allied to those on the nearest +mainlands, yet everywhere avoiding the creation upon them of any +amphibian or mammal, except an occasional bat. We are familiar with the +doctrine that God is a God who hideth himself; here, however, it seems +to me, we should have but a thinly-veiled insinuation, not merely that +in his works he is hidden, but that in these works he is untrue. Than +which I cannot conceive a stronger condemnation of the theory which it +has been my object fairly to represent and dispassionately to +criticise. + + + + +SECTION II + +_SELECTION_ + + + + +CHAPTER VII. + +THE THEORY OF NATURAL SELECTION. + + +Thus far we have been considering the main evidences of organic +evolution considered as a fact. We now enter a new field, namely, the +evidences which thus far have been brought to light touching the causes +of organic evolution considered as a process. + +As was pointed out in the opening chapter, this is obviously the +methodical course to follow: we must have some reasonable assurance that +a fact is a fact before we endeavour to explain it. Nevertheless, it is +not necessary that we should actually demonstrate a fact to be a fact +before we endeavour to explain it. Even if we have but a reasonable +presumption as to its probability, we may find it well worth while to +consider its explanation; for by so doing we may obtain additional +evidence of the fact itself. And this because, if it really is a fact, +and if we hit upon the right explanation of it, by proving the +explanation probable, we may thereby greatly increase our evidence of +the fact. In the very case before us, for example, the evidence of +evolution as a fact has from the first been largely derived from testing +Darwin's theory concerning its method. It was this theoretical +explanation of its method which first set him seriously to enquire into +the evidences of evolution as a fact; and ever since he published his +results, the evidences which he adduced in favour of natural selection +as a method have constituted some of the strongest reasons which +scientific men have felt for accepting evolution as a fact. Of course +the evidence in favour of this fact has gone on steadily growing, quite +independently of the assistance which was thus so largely lent to it by +the distinctively Darwinian theory of its method; and, indeed, so much +has this been the case, that in the present treatise we have been able +to consider such direct evidence of the fact itself, without any +reference at all to the indirect or accessory evidence which is derived +from that of natural selection as a method. From which it follows that +in most of what I am about to say in subsequent chapters on the +evidences of natural selection as a method, there will be furnished a +large addition to the evidences which have already been detailed of +evolution as a fact. But, as a matter of systematic treatment, I have +thought it desirable to keep these two branches of our subject separate. +Which means that I have made the evidences of evolution as a fact to +stand independently on their own feet--feet which in my opinion are +amply strong enough to bear any weight of adverse criticism that can be +placed upon them. + +Our position, then, is this. On the foundation of the previous chapters, +I will henceforth assume that we all accept organic evolution as a fact, +without requiring any of the accessory evidence which is gained by +independent proof of natural selection as a method. But in making this +assumption--namely, that we are all now firmly persuaded of the fact of +evolution--I do not imagine that such is really the case. I make the +assumption for the purposes of systematic exposition, and in order that +different parts of the subject may be kept distinct. I confess it does +appear to me remarkable that there should still be a doubt in any +educated mind touching the general fact of evolution; while it becomes +to me unaccountable that such should be the case with a few still living +men of science, who cannot be accused of being ignorant of the evidences +which have now been accumulated. But in whatever measure we may +severally have been convinced--or remained unconvinced--on this matter, +for the purposes of exposition I must hereafter assume that we are all +agreed to the extent of regarding the process of evolution as, at least, +sufficiently probable to justify enquiry touching its causes on +supposition of its truth. + +Now, the causes of evolution have been set forth in a variety of +different hypotheses, only the chief of which need be mentioned here. +Historically speaking the first of these was that which was put forward +by Erasmus Darwin, Lamarck, and Herbert Spencer. It consists in putting +together the following facts and inferences. + +We know that, in the lifetime of the individual, increased use of +structures leads to an increase of their functional efficiency; while, +on the other hand, disuse leads to atrophy. The arms of a blacksmith, +and the legs of a mountaineer, are familiar illustrations of the first +principle: our hospital wards are full of illustrations of the second. +Again, we know that the characters of parents are transmitted to their +progeny by means of heredity. Now the hypothesis in question consists +in supposing that if any particular organs in a species are habitually +used for performing any particular action, they must undergo a +structural improvement which would more and more adapt them to the +performance of that action; for in each generation constant use would +better and better adapt the structures to the discharge of their +functions, and they would then be bequeathed to the next generation in +this their improved form by heredity. So that, for instance, if there +had been a thousand generations of blacksmiths, we might expect the sons +of the last of them to inherit unusually strong arms, even if these +young men had themselves taken to some other trade not requiring any +special use of their arms. Similarly, if there had been a thousand +generations of men who used their arms but slightly, we should expect +their descendants to show but a puny development of the upper +extremities. Now let us apply all this to the animal kingdom in general. +The giraffe, for instance, is a ruminant whose entire frame has been +adapted to support an enormously long neck, which is of use to the +animal in reaching the foliage of trees. The ancestors of the giraffe, +having had ordinary necks, were supposed by Lamarck to have gradually +increased the length of them, through many successive generations, by +constantly stretching to reach high foliage; and he further supposed +that, when the neck became so long as to require for its support special +changes in the general form of the animal as a whole, these special +changes would have brought about the dwindling of other parts from which +so much activity was no longer required--the general result being that +the whole organization of the animal became more and more adapted to +browsing on high foliage. And so in the cases of other animals, Lamarck +believed that the adaptation of their forms to their habits could be +explained by this simple hypothesis that the habits created the forms, +through the effects of use and disuse, coupled with heredity. + +Such is what is ordinarily known as Lamarck's theory of evolution. We +may as well remember, however, that it really constitutes only one part +of his theory; for besides this hypothesis of the cumulative inheritance +of functionally-produced modifications--to which we may add the +inherited effects of any direct action exercised by surrounding +conditions of life,--Lamarck believed in some transcendental principle +tending to produce gradual improvement in pre-determined lines of +advance. Therefore it would really be more correct to designate the +former hypothesis by the name either of Erasmus Darwin, or, still +better, of Herbert Spencer. Nevertheless, in order to avoid confusion, I +will follow established custom, and subsequently speak of this +hypothesis as the Lamarckian hypothesis--understanding, however, that in +employing this designation I am not referring to any part or factor of +Lamarck's general theory of evolution other than the one which has just +been described--namely, the hypothesis of the cumulative transmission of +functionally-produced, or otherwise "acquired," modifications. + +This, then, was the earliest hypothesis touching the causes of organic +evolution. But we may at once perceive that it is insufficient to +explain all that stands to be explained. In the first place, it refers +in chief part only to the higher animals, which are actuated to effort +by intelligence. Its explanatory power in the case of most +invertebrata--as well as in that of all plants--is extremely limited, +inasmuch as these organisms can never be moved to a greater or less use +of their several parts by any discriminating volition, such as that +which leads to the continued straining of a giraffe's neck for the +purpose of reaching foliage. In the second place, even among the higher +animals there are numberless tissues and organs which unquestionably +present a high degree of adaptive evolution, but which nevertheless +cannot be supposed to have fallen within the influence of Lamarckian +principles. Of such are the shells of crustacea, tortoises, &c., which +although undoubtedly of great use to the animals presenting them, cannot +ever have been _used_ in the sense required by Lamarck's hypothesis, i. +e. actively exercised, so as to increase a flow of nutrition to the +part. Lastly, in the third place, the validity of Lamarck's hypothesis +in any case whatsoever has of late years become a matter of serious +question, as will be fully shown and discussed in the next volume. +Meanwhile it is enough to observe that, on account of all these reasons, +the theory of Lamarck, even if it be supposed to present any truth at +all, is clearly insufficient as a full or complete theory of organic +evolution. + + * * * * * + +In historical order the next theory that was arrived at was the theory +of natural selection, simultaneously published by Darwin and Wallace on +July 1st, 1858. + +If we may estimate the importance of an idea by the change of thought +which it effects, this idea of natural selection is unquestionably the +most important idea that has ever been conceived by the mind of man. +Yet the wonder is that it should not have been hit upon long before. Or +rather, I should say, the wonder is that its immense and immeasurable +importance should not have been previously recognised. For, since the +publication of this idea by Darwin and Wallace, it has been found that +its main features had already occurred to at least two other +minds--namely, Dr. Wells in 1813, and Mr. Patrick Matthew in 1831. But +neither of these writers perceived that in the few scattered sentences +which they had written upon the subject they had struck the key-note of +organic nature, and resolved one of the principal chords of the +universe. Still more remarkable is the fact that Mr. Herbert +Spencer--notwithstanding his great powers of abstract thought and his +great devotion of those powers to the theory of evolution, when as yet +this theory was scorned by science--still more remarkable, I say, is the +fact that Mr. Herbert Spencer should have missed what now appears so +obvious an idea. But most remarkable of all is the fact that Dr. +Whewell, with all his stores of information on the history of the +inductive sciences, and with all his acumen on the matter of scientific +method, should not only have conceived the idea of natural selection, +but expressly stated it as a logically possible explanation of the +origin of species, and yet have so stated it merely for the purpose of +dismissing it with contempt[26]. This, I think, is most remarkable, +because it serves to prove how very far men's minds at that time must +have been from entertaining, as in any way antecedently probable, the +doctrine of transmutation. In order to show this I will here quote one +passage from the writings of Whewell, and another from a distinguished +French naturalist referred to by him. + + [26] For quotations, see Note A. + +In 1846 Whewell wrote:-- + + Not only is the doctrine of the transmutation of species in itself + disproved by the best physiological reasonings, but the additional + assumptions which are requisite to enable its advocates to apply it + to the explanation of the geological and other phenomena of the + earth, are altogether gratuitous and fantastical[27]. + + [27] whewell, _indications of the creator_, 2nd ed., 1846. + +Then he quotes with approval the following opinion:-- + + Against this hypothesis, which, up to the present time, I regard as + purely gratuitous, and likely to turn geologists out of the sound + and excellent road in which they now are, I willingly raise my + voice, with the most absolute conviction of being in the right[28]. + + [28] de blainville, _compte rendu_, 1837. + +And, after displaying the proof rendered by Lyell of uniformitarianism +in geology, and cordially subscribing thereto, Whewell adds:-- + + We are led by our reasonings to this view, that the present order + of things was commenced by an act of creative power entirely + different to any agency which has been exerted since. None of the + influences which have modified the present races of animals and + plants since they were placed in their habitations on the earth's + surface can have had any efficacy in producing them at first. We + are necessarily driven to assume, as the beginning of the present + cycle of organic nature, an event not included in the course of + nature[29]. + + [29] Whewell, _ibid._, p. 162. + +So much, then, for the state of the most enlightened and representative +opinions on the question of evolution before the publication of +Darwin's work; and so much, likewise, for the only reasonable +suggestions as to the causes of evolution which up to that time had been +put forward, even by those few individuals who entertained any belief in +evolution as a fact. It was the theory of natural selection that changed +all this, and created a revolution in the thought of our time, the +magnitude of which in many of its far-reaching consequences we are not +even yet in a position to appreciate; but the action of which has +already wrought a transformation in general philosophy, as well as in +the more special science of biology, that is without a parallel in the +history of mankind. + + * * * * * + +Although every one is now more or less well acquainted with the theory +of natural selection, it is necessary, for the sake of completeness, +that I should state the theory; and I will do so in full detail. + +It is a matter of observable fact that all plants and animals are +perpetually engaged in what Darwin calls a "struggle for existence." +That is to say, in every generation of every species a great many more +individuals are born than can possibly survive; so that there is in +consequence a perpetual battle for life going on among all the +constituent individuals of any given generation. Now, in this struggle +for existence, which individuals will be victorious and live? Assuredly +those which are best fitted to live, in whatever respect, or respects, +their superiority of fitness may consist. Hence it follows that Nature, +so to speak, _selects_ the best individuals out of each generation to +live. And not only so; but as these favoured individuals transmit their +favourable qualities to their offspring, according to the fixed laws of +heredity, it further follows that the individuals composing each +successive generation have a general tendency to be better suited to +their surroundings than were their forefathers. And this follows, not +merely because in every generation it is only the "flower of the flock" +that is allowed to breed, but also because, if in any generation some +new and beneficial qualities happen to arise as slight variations from +the ancestral type, they will (other things permitting) be seized upon +by natural selection, and, being transmitted by heredity to subsequent +generations, will be added to the previously existing type. Thus the +best idea of the whole process will be gained by comparing it with the +closely analogous process whereby gardeners, fanciers, and +cattle-breeders create their wonderful productions; for just as these +men, by always "_selecting_" their best individuals to breed from, +slowly but continuously improve their stock, so Nature, by a similar +process of "_selection_" slowly but continuously makes the various +species of plants and animals better and better suited to the conditions +of their life. + +Now, if this process of continuously adapting organisms to their +environment takes place in nature at all, there is no reason why we +should set any limits on the extent to which it is able to go, up to the +point at which a complete and perfect adaptation is achieved. Therefore +we might suppose that all species would eventually reach this condition +of perfect harmony with their environment, and then remain fixed. And +so, according to the theory, they would, if the environment were itself +unchanging. But forasmuch as the environment (i. e. the sum total of the +external conditions of life) of almost every organic type alters more +or less from century to century--whether from astronomical, geological, +and geographical changes, or from the immigrations and emigrations of +other species living on contiguous areas, and so on--it follows that the +process of natural selection need never reach a terminal phase. And +forasmuch as natural selection may thus continue, _ad infinitum_, slowly +to alter a specific type in adaptation to a gradually changing +environment, if in any case the alteration thus effected is sufficient +in amount to lead naturalists to name the result as a distinct species, +it follows that natural selection has transmuted one specific type into +another. Similarly, by a continuation of the process, specific types +would become transmuted into generic, generic into family types, and so +on. Thus the process is supposed to go on throughout all the countless +forms of life continuously and simultaneously--the world of organic +types being thus regarded as in a state of perpetual, though gradual, +flux. + + * * * * * + +Now, the first thing we have to notice about this theory is, that in all +its main elements it is merely a statement of observable facts. It is an +observable fact that in all species of plants and animals a very much +larger number of individuals are born than can possibly survive. Thus, +for example, it has been calculated that if the progeny of a single pair +of elephants--which are the slowest breeding of animals--were all +allowed to reach maturity and propagate, in 750 years there would be +living 19,000,000 descendants. Again, in the case of vegetables, if a +species of annual plant produces only two seeds a year, if these in +successive years were all allowed to reproduce their kind, in twenty +years there would be 11,000,000 plants from a single ancestor. Yet we +know that nearly all animals and plants produce many more young at a +time than in either of these two supposed cases. Indeed, as individuals +of many kinds of plants, and not a few kinds of animals, produce every +year several thousand young, we may make a rough estimate and say, that +over organic nature as a whole probably not one in a thousand young are +allowed to survive to the age of reproduction. How tremendous, +therefore, must be the struggle for existence! It is thought a terrible +thing in battle when one half the whole number of combatants perish. But +what are we to think of a battle for life where only one in a thousand +survives? + +This, then, is the first fact. The second is the fact so long ago +recognised, that the battle is to the strong, the race to the swift. The +thousandth individual which does survive in the battle for +existence--which does win the race for life--is, without question, one +of the individuals best fitted to do so; that is to say, best fitted to +the conditions of its existence considered as a whole. Nature is, +therefore, always picking out, or selecting, such individuals to live +and to breed. + +The third fact is, that the individuals so selected transmit their +favourable qualities to their offspring by heredity. There is no doubt +about this fact, so far as we are concerned with it. For although, as I +have already hinted, considerable doubt has of late years been cast upon +Lamarck's doctrine of the hereditary transmission of _acquired_ +characters, it remains as impossible as ever it was to question the +hereditary transmission of what are called _congenital_ characters. And +this is all that Darwin's theory necessarily requires. + +The fourth fact is, that although heredity as a whole produces a +wonderfully exact copy of the parent in the child, there is never a +precise reduplication. Of all the millions of human beings upon the face +of the earth, no one is so like another that we cannot see some +difference; the resemblance is everywhere specific, nowhere individual. +Now this same remark applies to all specific types. The only reason why +we notice individual differences in the case of the human type more than +we do in the case of any other types, is because our attention is here +more incessantly focussed upon these differences. We are compelled to +notice them in the case of our own species, however small they may +appear to a naturalist, because, unless we do so, we should not +recognise the members of our own family, or be able to distinguish +between a man whom we know is ready to do us an important service, and +another man whom we know is ready to cut our throats. But our common +mother Nature is able thus to distinguish between all her children. Her +eyes are much more ready to detect small individual peculiarities than +are the eyes of any naturalist. No slight variations in the cast of +feature or disposition of parts, no minute difference in the arrangement +of microscopical cells, can escape her ever vigilant attention. And, +consequently, when among all the innumerable multitudes of individual +variations any one arises which--no matter in how slight a degree--gives +to that individual a better chance of success in the struggle for life, +Nature chooses that individual to survive, and so to perpetuate the +improvement in his or her progeny. + +Now I say that all these several component parts of Darwinian doctrine +are not matters of theory, but matters of fact. The only element of +theory in his doctrine of evolution by natural selection has reference +to the degree in which these observable facts, when thus brought +together, are adequate to account for the process of evolution. + + * * * * * + +So much, then, as a statement of the theory of natural selection. But +from this statement--i. e. from the theory of natural selection +itself--there follow certain matters of general principle which it is +important to bear in mind. These, therefore, I shall here proceed to +mention. + +First of all, it is evident that the theory is applicable as an +explanation of organic changes in specific types only in so far as these +changes are of _use_, or so far as such changes endow the species with +better chances of success in the general struggle for existence. This is +the only sense in which I shall always employ the terms use, utility, +service, benefit, and so forth--that is to say, in the sense of +life-preserving. + + * * * * * + +Next, it must be clearly understood that the life which it is the +object, so to speak, of natural selection to preserve, is primarily the +life of the _species_; not that of the _individual_. Natural selection +preserves the life of the individual only in so far as this is conducive +to that of the species. Wherever the life-interests of the individual +clash with those of the species, that individual is sacrificed in favour +of others who happen better to subserve the interests of the species. +For example, in all organisms a greater or less amount of vigour is +wasted, so far as individual interests are concerned, in the formation +and the nourishment of progeny. In the great majority of plants and +animals an enormous amount of physiological energy is thus expended. +Look at the roe or the milt of a herring, for instance, and see what a +huge drain has been made upon the individual for the sake of its +species. Again, all unselfish instincts have been developed for the sake +of the species, and usually against the interests of the individual. An +ant which will allow her head to be slowly drawn from her body rather +than relinquish her hold upon a pupa, is clearly acting in response to +an instinct which has been developed for the benefit of the hive, though +fatal to the individual. And, in a lesser degree, the parental +instincts, wherever they occur, are more or less detrimental to the +interests of the individual, though correspondingly essential to those +of the race. + +These illustrations will serve to show that natural selection always +works primarily for the life-interests of the species--and, indeed, only +works for those of the individual at all in so far as the latter happen +to coincide with the former. Or, otherwise stated, the object of natural +selection is always that of producing and maintaining specific types in +the highest degree of efficiency, no matter what may become of the +constituent individuals. Which is a striking republication by Science of +a general truth previously stated by Poetry:-- + + So careful of the type she seems, + So careless of the single life. + +Tennyson thus noted the fact, and a few years later Darwin supplied the +explanation. + +But of course in many, if not in the majority of cases, anything that +adds to the life-sustaining power of the single life thereby ministers +also to the life-sustaining power of the type; and thus we can +understand why all mechanisms and instincts which minister to the single +life have been developed--namely, because the life of the species is +made up of the lives of all its constituent individuals. It is only +where the interests of the one clash with those of the other that +natural selection works against the individual. So long as the interests +are coincident, it works in favour of both. + +Natural selection, then, is a theory which seeks to explain by natural +causes the occurrence of every kind of adaptation which is to be met +with in organic nature, on the assumption that adaptations of every kind +have primary reference to the preservation of species, and therefore +also, as a general rule, to the preservation of their constituent +individuals. And from this it follows that where it is for the benefit +of a species to change its type, natural selection will effect that +change, thus leading to a specific transmutation, or the evolution of a +new species. In such cases the old species may or may not become +extinct. If the transmutation affects the species as a whole, or +throughout its entire range, of course _that_ particular type becomes +extinct, although it does so by becoming changed into a still more +suitable type in the course of successive generations. If, on the other +hand, the transmutation affects only a part of the original species, or +not throughout its entire range, then the other parts of that species +may survive for any number of ages as they originally were. In the one +case there is a ladder-like transmutation of species in time; in the +other case a possibly tree-like multiplication of species in space. But +whether the evolution of species be thus serial in time or divergent in +space, the object of natural selection, so to speak, is in either case +the same--namely, that of preserving all types which prove best suited +to the conditions of their existence. + + * * * * * + +Once more, the term "struggle for existence" must be understood to +comprehend, not only a competition for life among contemporary +individuals of the same species, but likewise a struggle by all such +individuals taken collectively for the continuance of their own specific +type. Thus, on the one hand, while there is a perpetual civil war being +waged between members of the same species, on the other hand there is a +foreign war being waged by the species as a whole against its world as a +whole. Hence it follows that natural selection does not secure survival +of the fittest as regards individuals only, but also survival of the +fittest as regards types. This is a most important point to remember, +because, as a general rule, these two different causes produce exactly +opposite effects. Success in the civil war, where each is fighting +against all, is determined by _individual_ fitness and _self-reliance_. +But success in the foreign war is determined by what may be termed +_tribal_ fitness and _mutual dependence_. For example, among social +insects the struggle for existence is quite as great between different +tribes or communities, as it is between different individuals of the +same community; and thus we can understand the extraordinary degree in +which not only co-operative instincts, but also largely intelligent +social habits, have here been developed[30]. Similarly, in the case of +mankind, we can understand the still more extraordinary development of +these things--culminating in the moral sense. I have heard a sermon, +preached at one of the meetings of the British Association, entirely +devoted to arguing that the moral sense could not have been evolved by +natural selection, seeing that the altruism which this sense involves is +the very opposite of selfishness, which alone ought to have been the +product of survival of the fittest in a struggle for life. And, of +course, this argument would have been perfectly sound had Darwin limited +the struggle for existence to individuals, without extending it to +communities. But if the preacher had ever read Darwin's works he would +have found that, when thus extended, the principle of natural selection +is bound to work in favour of the co-operative instincts in the case of +so highly social an animal as man; and that of these instincts +conscience is the highest imaginable exhibition. + + [30] For cases, see _Animal Intelligence_, in the chapters on Ants + and Bees; and, for discussion of principles, _Mental Evolution in + Animals_, in the chapters on Instinct. + +What I have called tribal fitness--in contradistinction to individual +fitness--begins with the family, developes in the community (herd, hive, +clan, &c.), and usually ends with the limits of the species. On the one +hand, however, it is but seldom that it extends so far as to embrace the +entire species; while, on the other hand, it may in some cases, and as +it were sporadically, extend beyond the species. In these latter cases +members of different species mutually assist one another, whether in the +way of what is called symbiosis, or in a variety of other ways which I +need not wait to mention. For the only point which I now desire to make +clear is, that all cases of mutual aid or co-operation, whether within +or beyond the limits of species, are cases which fall under the +explanatory sweep of the Darwinian theory[31]. + + [31] Prince Kropotkin in the _Nineteenth Century_ (Feb. 1888, Apr. + 1891) has adduced a large and interesting body of facts, showing the + great prevalence of the principle of co-operation in organic + nature. + + * * * * * + +Another important point to notice is, that it constitutes no part of the +theory of natural selection to suppose that survival of the fittest must +invariably lead to _improvement_ of type, in the sense of superior +organization. On the contrary, if from change of habits or conditions of +life an organic type ceases to have any use for previously useful +organs, natural selection will not only allow these organs in successive +generations to deteriorate--by no longer placing any selective premium +upon their maintenance--but may even proceed to assist the agencies +engaged in their destruction. For, being now useless, they may become +even deleterious, by absorbing nutriment, causing weight, occupying +space, &c., without conferring any compensating benefit. Thus we can +understand why it is that parasites, for example, present the phenomena +of what is called _degeneration_, i. e. showing by their whole structure +that they have descended from a possibly very much higher type of +organization than that which they now exhibit. Having for innumerable +generations ceased to require their legs, their eyes, and so forth, all +such organs of high elaboration have either disappeared or become +vestigial, leaving the parasite as a more or less effete representative +of its ancestry. + +These facts of degeneration, as we have previously seen, are of very +general occurrence, and it is evident that their importance in the field +of organic evolution as a whole has been very great. Moreover, it ought +to be particularly observed that, as just indicated, the facts may be +due either to a passive _cessation_ of selection, or to an active +_reversal_ of it. Or, more correctly, these facts are probably _always_ +due to the cessation of selection, although in most cases where species +in a state of nature are concerned, the process of degeneration has been +both hastened and intensified by the super-added influence of the +reversal of selection. In the next volume I shall have occasion to recur +to this distinction, when it will be seen that it is one of no small +importance to the general theory of descent. + + * * * * * + +We may now proceed to consider certain misconceptions of the Darwinian +theory which are largely, not to say generally, prevalent among +supporters of the theory. These misconceptions, therefore, differ from +those which fall to be considered in the next chapter, i. e. +misconceptions which constitute grounds of objection to the theory. + + * * * * * + +Of all the errors connected with the theory of natural selection, +perhaps the one most frequently met with--especially among supporters of +the theory--is that of employing the theory to explain all cases of +phyletic modification (or inherited change of type) indiscriminately, +without waiting to consider whether in particular cases its application +is so much as logically possible. The term "natural selection" thus +becomes a magic word, or Sesame, at the utterance of which every closed +door is supposed to be immediately opened. Be it observed, I am not here +alluding to that merely blind faith in natural selection, which of late +years has begun dogmatically to force this principle as the sole cause +of organic evolution in every case where it is _logically possible_ that +the principle can have come into play. Such a blind faith, indeed, I +hold to be highly inimical, not only to the progress of biological +science, but even to the true interests of the natural selection theory +itself. As to this I shall have a good deal to say in the next volume. +Here, however, the point is, that the theory in question is often +invoked in cases where it is not even logically possible that it can +apply, and therefore in cases where its application betokens, not merely +an error of judgment or extravagance of dogmatism, but a fallacy of +reasoning in the nature of a logical contradiction. Almost any number of +examples might be given; but one will suffice to illustrate what is +meant. And I choose it from the writings of one of the authors of the +selection theory itself, in order to show how easy it is to be cheated +by this mere juggling with a phrase--for of course I do not doubt that a +moment's thought would have shown the writer the untenability of his +statement. + +In his most recent work Mr. Wallace advances an interesting hypothesis +to the effect that differences of colour between allied species, which +are apparently too slight to serve any other purpose, may act as +"recognition marks," whereby the opposite sexes are enabled at once to +distinguish between members of their own and of closely resembling +species. Of course this hypothesis can only apply to the higher animals; +but the point here is that, supposing it to hold for them, Mr. Wallace +proceeds to argue thus:--Recognition marks "have in all probability been +acquired in the process of differentiation for the purpose of checking +the intercrossing of allied forms," because "one of the first needs of a +new species would be to keep separate from its nearest allies, and this +could be more readily done by some easily seen external mark[32]." +Now, it is clearly not so much as logically possible that these +recognition-marks (supposing them to be such) can have been acquired +by natural selection, "for the purpose of checking intercrossing of +allied forms." For the theory of natural selection, from its own +essential nature as a theory, is logically exclusive of the supposition +that survival of the fittest ever provides changes in anticipation of +future uses. Or, otherwise stated, it involves a contradiction of the +theory itself to say that the colour-changes in question were originated +by natural selection, in order to meet "one of the _first_ needs of a +_new_ species," or for the purpose of _subsequently_ preventing +intercrossing with allied forms. If it had been said that these +colour-differentiations were originated by some cause other than natural +selection (or, if by natural selection, still with regard to some +_previous_, instead of _prophetic_, "purpose"), and, when so "acquired," +_then_ began to serve the "purpose" assigned, the argument would not +have involved the fallacy which we are now considering. But, as it +stands, the argument reverts to the teleology of pre-Darwinian days--or +the hypothesis of a "purpose" in the literal sense which sees the end +from the beginning, instead of a "purpose" in the metaphorical sense of +an adaptation that is evolved by the very modifications which subserve +it[33]. + + [32] _Darwinism_, pp. 218 and 227. + + [33] Since the above was written Prof. Lloyd Morgan has published a + closely similar notice of the passage in question. "This language," + he says, "seems to savour of teleology (that pitfall of the + evolutionist). The cart is put before the horse. The + recognition-marks were, I believe, not produced to prevent + intercrossing, but intercrossing has been prevented because of + preferential mating between individuals possessing special + recognition-marks. To miss this point is to miss an important + segregation-factor."--(_Animal Life and Intelligence_, p. 103.) + Again, on pp. 184-9, he furnishes an excellent discussion on the + whole subject of the fallacy alluded to in the text, and gives + illustrative quotations from other prominent Darwinians. I should + like to add that Darwin himself has nowhere fallen into this, or any + of the other fallacies, which are mentioned in the text. + + * * * * * + +Another very prevalent, and more deliberate, fallacy connected with the +theory of natural selection is, _that it follows deductively from the +theory itself_ that the principle of natural selection must be the sole +means of modification in all cases where modification is of an +_adaptive_ kind,--with the consequence that no other principle can ever +have been concerned in the production of structures or instincts which +are of any use to their possessors. Whether or not natural selection +actually has been the sole means of adaptive modification in the race, +as distinguished from the individual, is a question of biological +fact[34]; but it involves a grave error of reasoning to suppose that +this question can be answered deductively from the theory of natural +selection itself, as I shall show at some length in the next volume. + + [34] Of course adaptive modifications produced in the individual + lifetime, and not _inherited_, do not concern the question at all. + In this and the following paragraphs, therefore, "adaptations," + "adaptive modifications," &c., refer exclusively to such as are + hereditary, i. e. phyletic. + + * * * * * + +A still more extravagant, and a still more unaccountable fallacy is the +one which represents it as following deductively from the theory of +natural selection itself, that all _hereditary_ characters are +"necessarily" due to natural selection. In other words, not only all +adaptive, but likewise all non-adaptive hereditary characters, it is +said, _must_ be due to natural selection. For non-adaptive characters +are taken to be due to "correlation of growth," in connexion with some +of the adaptive ones--natural selection being thus the _indirect_ means +of producing the former _wherever_ they may occur, on account of its +being the _direct_ and the _only_ means of producing the latter. Thus it +is deduced from the theory of natural selection itself,--1st, that the +principle of natural selection is the only possible cause of adaptive +modification: 2nd, that non-adaptive modifications can only occur in the +race as correlated appendages to the adaptive: 3rd, that, consequently, +natural selection is the only possible cause of modification, whether +adaptive or non-adaptive. Here again, therefore, we must observe that +none of these sweeping generalizations can possibly be justified by +deductive reasoning from the theory of natural selection itself. Any +attempt at such deductive reasoning must necessarily end in circular +reasoning, as I shall likewise show in the second volume, where this +whole "question of utility" will be thoroughly dealt with. + + * * * * * + +Once more, there is an important oversight very generally committed by +the followers of Darwin. For even those who avoid the fallacies above +mentioned often fail to perceive, that natural selection can only begin +to operate if the _degree_ of adaptation is already given as +sufficiently high to count for something in the struggle for +_existence_. Any adaptations which fall below this level of importance +cannot possibly have been produced by survival of the fittest. Yet the +followers of Darwin habitually speak of adaptative characters, which _in +their own opinion_ are subservient merely to comfort or convenience, as +having been produced by such means. Clearly this is illogical; for it +belongs to the essence of Darwin's theory to suppose, that natural +selection can have no jurisdiction beyond the line where structures or +instincts already present a sufficient degree of adaptational value to +increase, in some measure, the expectation of life on the part of their +possessors. We cannot speak of adaptations as due to natural selection, +without thereby affirming that they present what I have elsewhere termed +a "selection value." + + * * * * * + +Lastly, as a mere matter of logical definition, it is well-nigh +self-evident that the theory of natural selection is a theory of the +origin, and cumulative development, of _adaptations_, whether these be +distinctive of species, or of genera, orders, families, classes, and +sub-kingdoms. It is only when the adaptations happen to be distinctive +of the first (or lowest) of these taxonomic divisions, that the theory +which accounts for _these_ adaptations accounts also for the forms which +present them,--i. e. becomes _also_ a theory of the origin of species. +This, however, is clearly but an accident of particular cases; and, +therefore, even in them the theory is _primarily_ a theory of +adaptations, while it is but secondarily a theory of the species which +present them. Or, otherwise stated, the theory is no more a theory of +the origin of species than it is of the origin of genera, families, and +the rest; while, on the other hand, it is _everywhere_ a theory of the +adaptive modifications whereby each of these taxonomic divisions has +been differentiated as such. Yet, sufficiently obvious as the accuracy +of this definition must appear to any one who dispassionately considers +it, several naturalists of high standing have denounced it in violent +terms. I shall therefore have to recur to the subject at somewhat +greater length hereafter. At present it is enough merely to mention the +matter, as furnishing another and a curious illustration of the not +infrequent weakness of logical perception on the part of minds well +gifted with the faculty of observation. It may be added, however, that +the definition in question is in no way hostile to the one which is +virtually given by Darwin in the title of his great work. _The Origin of +Species by means of Natural Selection_ is beyond doubt the best title +that could have been given, because at the time when the work was +published the _fact_, no less than the _method_, of organic evolution +had to be established; and hence the most important thing to be done at +that time was to prove the transmutation of species. But now that this +has been done to the satisfaction of naturalists in general, it is as I +have said, curious to find some of them denouncing a wider definition of +the principle of natural selection, merely because the narrower (or +included) definition is invested with the charm of verbal +associations[35]. + + [35] The question as to whether natural selection has been the only + principle concerned in the origination of species, is quite distinct + from that as to the accuracy of the above definition. + + * * * * * + +So much for fallacies and misconceptions touching Darwin's theory, which +are but too frequently met with in the writings of its supporters. We +must now pass on to mention some of the still greater fallacies and +misconceptions which are prevalent in the writings of its opponents. +And, in order to do this thoroughly, I shall begin by devoting the +remainder of the present chapter to a consideration of the antecedent +standing of the two theories of natural selection and supernatural +design. This having been done, in the succeeding chapters I shall deal +with the evidences for, and the objections against, the former theory. + + * * * * * + +Beginning, then, with the antecedent standing of these alternative +theories, the first thing to be noticed is, that they are both concerned +with the same subject-matter, which it is their common object to +explain. Moreover, this subject-matter is clearly and sharply divisible +into two great classes of facts in organic nature--namely, those of +Adaptation and those of Beauty. Darwin's theory of descent explains the +former by his doctrine of natural selection, and the latter by his +doctrine of sexual selection. In the first instance, therefore, I shall +have to deal only with the facts of adaptation, leaving for subsequent +consideration the facts of beauty. + +Innumerable cases of the adaptation of organisms to their surroundings +being the facts which now stand before us to be explained either by +natural selection or by supernatural intention, we may first consider a +statement which is frequently met with--namely, that even if all such +cases of adaptation were proved to be fully explicable by the theory of +descent, this would constitute no disproof of the theory of design: all +the cases of adaptation, it is argued, might still be due to design, +even though they admit of being hypothetically accounted for by the +theory of descent. I have heard an eminent Professor tell his class that +the many instances of mechanical adaptation discovered and described by +Darwin as occurring in orchids, seemed to him to furnish better proof of +supernatural contrivance than of natural causes; and another eminent +Professor has informed me that, although he had read the _Origin of +Species_ with care, he could see in it no evidence of natural selection +which might not equally well have been adduced in favour of intelligent +design. But here we meet with a radical misconception of the whole +logical attitude of science. For, be it observed, this exception _in +limine_ to the evidence which we are about to consider does not question +that natural selection _may_ be able to do all that Darwin ascribes to +it. The objection is urged against his interpretation of the facts +merely on the ground that these facts might _equally well_ be ascribed +to intelligent design. And so undoubtedly they might, if we were all +simple enough to adopt a supernatural explanation whenever a natural one +is found sufficient to account for the facts. Once admit the irrational +principle that we may assume the operation of higher causes where the +operation of lower ones is sufficient to explain the observed phenomena, +and all our science and all our philosophy are scattered to the winds. +For the law of logic which Sir William Hamilton called the law of +parsimony--or the law which forbids us to assume the operation of higher +causes when lower ones are found sufficient to explain the observed +effects--this law constitutes the only barrier between science and +superstition. It is always possible to give a hypothetical explanation +of any phenomenon whatsoever, by referring it immediately to the +intelligence of some supernatural agent; so that the only difference +between the logic of science and the logic of superstition consists in +science recognising a validity in the law of parsimony which +superstition disregards. Therefore one can have no hesitation in saying +that this way of looking at the evidence in favour of natural selection +is not a scientific or a reasonable way of looking at it, but a purely +superstitious way. Let us take, as an illustration, a perfectly parallel +case. When Kepler was unable to explain by any known causes the paths +described by the planets, he resorted to a supernatural explanation, and +supposed that every planet was guided in its movements by some presiding +angel. But when Newton supplied a beautifully simple physical +explanation, all persons with a scientific habit of mind at once +abandoned the metaphysical one. Now, to be consistent, the +above-mentioned Professors, and all who think with them, ought still to +adhere to Kepler's hypothesis in preference to Newton's explanation; +for, excepting the law of parsimony, there is certainly no other +logical objection to the statement, that the movements of the planets +afford as good evidence of the influence of guiding angels as they do of +the influence of gravitation. + +So much, then, for the illogical position that, granting the evidence in +favour of natural descent and supernatural design to be equal and +parallel, we should hesitate in our choice between the two theories. +But, of course, if the evidence is supposed _not_ to be equal and +parallel--i. e. if it is supposed that the theory of natural selection +is not so good a theory whereby to explain the facts of adaptation as is +that of supernatural design,--then the objection is no longer the one +which we are considering. It is quite another objection, and one which +is not _prima facie_ absurd. Therefore let us state clearly the distinct +question which thus arises. + +Innumerable cases of adaptation of organisms to their environments are +the observed facts for which an explanation is required. To supply this +explanation, two, and only two, hypotheses are in the field. Of these +two hypotheses one is intelligent design manifested directly in special +creation; the other is natural causation operating through countless +ages of the past. Now, the adaptations in question involve an +innumerable multitude of special mechanisms, in most cases even within +the limits of any one given species; but when we consider the sum of all +these mechanisms presented by organic nature as a whole, the mind must +indeed be dull which does not feel astounded. For, be it further +observed, these mechanical contrivances[36] are, for the most part, no +merely simple arrangements, which might reasonably be supposed due, +like the phenomena of crystallization, to comparatively simple physical +causes. On the contrary, they everywhere and habitually exhibit so +deep-laid, so intricate, and often so remote an adaptation of means to +ends, that no machinery of human contrivance can properly be said to +equal their perfection from a mechanical point of view. Therefore, +without question, the hypothesis which first of all they suggest--or +suggest most readily--is the hypothesis of design. And this hypothesis +becomes virtually the only hypothesis possible, if it be assumed--as it +generally was assumed by natural theologians of the past,--that all +species of plants and animals were introduced into the world _suddenly_. +For it is quite inconceivable that any known cause, other than +intelligent design, could be competent to turn out instantaneously any +one of these intricate pieces of machinery, already adapted to the +performance of its special function. But, on the other hand, if there is +any evidence to show that one species becomes slowly transformed into +another--or that one set of adaptations becomes slowly changed into +another set as changing circumstances require,--then it becomes quite +possible to imagine that a strictly natural causation may have had +something to do with the matter. And this suggestion becomes greatly +more probable when we discover, from geological evidence and +embryological research, that in the history both of races and of +individuals the various mechanisms in question have themselves had a +history--beginning in the forms of most uniformity and simplicity, +gradually advancing to forms more varied and complex, nowhere exhibiting +any interruptions in their upward progress, until the world of organic +machinery as we now have it is seen to have been but the last phase of a +long and gradual growth, the ultimate roots of which are to be found in +the soil of undifferentiated protoplasm. + + [36] It is often objected to Darwin's terminology, that it embraces + such words as "contrivance," "purpose," &c., which are strictly + applicable only to the processes or the products of thought. But + when it is understood that they are used in a neutral or + metaphorical sense, I cannot see that any harm arises from their + use. + +Lastly, when there is supplied to us the suggestion of natural selection +as a cause presumably adequate to account for this continuous growth in +the number, the intricacy, and the perfection of such mechanisms, it is +only the most unphilosophical mind that can refuse to pause as between +the older hypothesis of design and the newer hypothesis of descent. + +Thus it is clear that the _a priori_ standing of the rival hypotheses of +naturalism and supernaturalism in the case of all these pieces of +organic machinery, is profoundly affected by the question whether they +came into existence suddenly, or whether they did so gradually. For, if +they all came into existence suddenly, the fact would constitute +well-nigh positive proof in favour of supernaturalism, or creation by +design; whereas, if they all came into existence gradually, this fact +would in itself constitute presumptive evidence in favour of naturalism, +or of development by natural causes. And, as shown in the previous +chapters, the proof that all species of plants and animals came into +existence gradually--or the proof of evolution as a fact--is simply +overwhelming. + +From a still more general point of view I may state the case in another +way, by borrowing and somewhat expanding an illustration which, I +believe, was first used by Professor Huxley. If, when the tide is out, +we see lying upon the shore a long line of detached sea-weed, marking +the level which is reached by full tide, we should be free to conclude +that the separation of the sea-weed from the sand and the stones was due +to the intelligent work of some one who intended to collect the sea-weed +for manure, or for any other purpose. But, on the other hand, we might +explain the fact by a purely physical cause--namely, the separation by +the sea-waves of the sea-weed from the sand and stones, in virtue of its +lower specific gravity. Now, thus far the fact would be explained +equally well by either hypothesis; and this fact would be the fact of +_selection_. But whether we yielded our assent to the one explanation or +to the other would depend upon a due consideration of all collateral +circumstances. The sea-weed might not be of a kind that is of any use to +man; there might be too great a quantity of it to admit of our supposing +that it had been collected by man; the fact that it was all deposited on +the high-water-mark would in itself be highly suggestive of the agency +of the sea; and so forth. Thus, in such a case any reasonable observer +would decide in favour of the physical explanation, or against the +teleological one. + +Now the question whether organic evolution has been caused by physical +agencies or by intelligent design is in precisely the same predicament. +There can be no logical doubt that, theoretically at all events, the +physical agencies which the present chapter is concerned with, and which +are conveniently summed up in the term natural selection, are as +competent to produce these so-called mechanical contrivances, and the +other cases of adaptation which are to be met with in organic nature, +as intelligent design could be. Hence, our choice as between these two +hypotheses must be governed by a study of all collateral circumstances; +that is to say, by a study of the evidences in favour of the physical +explanation. To this study, therefore, we shall now address ourselves, +in the course of the following chapters. + + + + +CHAPTER VIII. + +EVIDENCES OF THE THEORY OF NATURAL SELECTION. + + +I will now proceed to state the main arguments in favour of the theory +of natural selection, and then, in the following chapter, the main +objections which have been urged against it. + +In my opinion, the main arguments in favour of the theory are three in +number. + +First, it is a matter of observation that the struggle for existence in +nature does lead to the extermination of forms less fitted for the +struggle, and thus makes room for forms more fitted. This general fact +may be best observed in cases where an exotic species proves itself +better fitted to inhabit a new country than is some endemic species +which it exterminates. In Great Britain, for example, the so-called +common rat is a comparatively recent importation from Norway, and it has +so completely supplanted the original British rat, that it is now +extremely difficult to procure a single specimen of the latter: the +native black rat has been all but exterminated by the foreign brown rat. +The same thing is constantly found in the case of imported species of +plants. I have seen the river at Cambridge so choked with the inordinate +propagation of a species of water-weed which had been introduced from +America, that considerable expense had to be incurred in order to clear +the river for traffic. In New Zealand the same thing has happened with +the European water-cress, and in Australia with the common rabbit. So it +is doubtless true, as one of the natives is said to have philosophically +remarked, "the white man's rat has driven away our rat, the European fly +drives away our fly, his clover kills our grass, and so will the Maoris +disappear before the white man himself." Innumerable other cases to the +same effect might be quoted; and they all go to establish the fact that +forms less fitted to survive succumb in their competition with forms +better fitted. + + * * * * * + +Secondly, there is a general consideration of the largest possible +significance in the present connexion--namely, that among all the +millions of structures and instincts which are so invariably, and for +the most part so wonderfully, adapted to the needs of the species +presenting them, we cannot find a single instance, either in the +vegetable or animal kingdom, of a structure or an instinct which is +developed for the exclusive benefit of another species. Now this great +and general fact is to my mind a fact of the most enormous, not to say +overwhelming, significance. The theory of natural selection has now been +before the world for more than thirty years, and during that time it had +stood a fire of criticism such as was never encountered by any +scientific theory before. From the first Darwin invited this criticism +to adduce any single instance, either in the vegetable or animal +kingdom, of a structure or an instinct which should unquestionably be +proved to be of exclusive use to any species other than the one +presenting it. He even went so far as to say that if any one such +instance could be shown he would surrender his whole theory on the +strength of it--so assured had he become, by his own prolonged +researches, that natural selection was the true agent in the production +of adaptive structures, and, as such, could never have permitted such a +structure to occur in one species for the benefit of another. Now, as +this invitation has been before the world for so many years, and has not +yet been answered by any naturalist, we may by this time be pretty +confident that it never will be answered. How tremendous, then, is the +significance of this fact in its testimony to Darwin's theory! The +number of animal and vegetable species, both living and extinct, is to +be reckoned by millions, and every one of these species presents on an +average hundreds of adaptive structures,--at least one of which in many, +possibly in most, if not actually in all cases, is peculiar to the +species that presents it. In other words, there are millions of adaptive +structures (not to speak of instincts) which are peculiar to the species +presenting them, and also many more which are the common property of +allied species: yet, notwithstanding this inconceivable profusion of +adaptive structures in organic nature, there is no single instance that +has been pointed out of the occurrence of such a structure save for the +benefit of the species that presents it. Therefore, I say that this +immensely large and general fact speaks with literally immeasurable +force in favour of natural selection, as at all events one of the main +causes of organic evolution. For the fact is precisely what we should +expect if this theory is true, while upon no other theory can its +universality and invariability be rendered intelligible. On the +beneficent design theory, for instance, it is inexplicable that no +species should ever be found to present a structure or an instinct +having primary reference to the welfare of another species, when, _ex +hypothesi_, such an endless amount of thought has been displayed in the +creation of structures and instincts having primary reference to the +species which present them. For how magnificent a display of divine +beneficence would organic nature have afforded, if all--or even +some--species had been so inter-related as to have ministered to each +others wants. Organic species might then have been likened to a +countless multitude of voices, all singing in one great harmonious +psalm. But, as it is, we see absolutely no vestige of such +co-ordination: every species is for itself, and for itself alone--an +outcome of the always and everywhere fiercely raging struggle for life. + +In order that the force of this argument may not be misapprehended, it +is necessary to bear in mind that it is in no way affected by cases +where a structure or an instinct is of primary benefit to its possessor, +and then becomes of secondary benefit to some other species on account +of the latter being able in some way or another to utilise its action. +Of course organic nature is full of cases of this kind; but they only go +to show the readiness which all species display to utilise for +themselves everything that can be turned to good account in their own +environments, and so, among other things, the structures and instincts +of other animals. For instance, it would be no answer to Darwin's +challenge if any one were to point to a hermit-crab inhabiting the +cast-off shell of a mollusk; because the shell was primarily of use to +the mollusk itself, and, so far as the mollusk is concerned, the fact of +its shell being afterwards of a secondary use to the crab is quite +immaterial. What Darwin's challenge requires is, that some structure or +instinct should be shown which is not merely of such secondary or +accidental benefit to another species, but clearly adapted to the needs +of that other species in the first instance--such, for example, as would +be the case if the tail of a rattle-snake were of no use to its +possessor, while serving to warn other animals of the proximity of a +dangerous creature; or, in the case of instincts, if it were true that a +pilot-fish accompanies a shark for the purpose of helping the shark to +discover food. Both these instances have been alleged; but both have +been shown untenable. And so it has proved of all the other cases which +thus far have been put forward. + +Perhaps the most remarkable of all the allegations which ever have been +put forward in this connexion are those that were current with regard to +instincts before the publication of Darwin's work. These allegations are +the most remarkable, because they serve to show, in a degree which I do +not believe could be shown anywhere else, the warping power of +preconceived ideas. A short time ago I happened to come across the 8th +edition of the _Encyclopaedia Britannica_, and turned up the article on +"Instinct" there, in order to see what amount of change had been wrought +with regard to our views on this subject by the work of Darwin--the 8th +edition of the _Encyclopaedia Britannica_ having been published shortly +before _The Origin of Species by means of Natural Selection_. I cannot +wait to give any lengthy quotations from this representative exponent of +scientific opinion upon the subject at that time; but its general drift +may be appreciated if I transcribe merely the short concluding +paragraph, wherein he sums up his general results. Here he says:-- + + It thus only remains for us to regard instinct as a mental faculty, + _sui generis_, the gift of God to the lower animals, that man in + his own person, and by them, might be relieved from the meanest + drudgery of nature. + +Now, here we have the most extraordinary illustration that is imaginable +of the obscuring influence of a preconceived idea. Because he started +with the belief that instincts _must_ have been implanted in animals for +the benefit of man, this writer, even when writing a purely scientific +essay, was completely blinded to the largest, the most obvious, and the +most important of the facts which the phenomena of instinct display. +For, as a matter of fact, among all the many thousands of instincts +which are known to occur in animals, there is no single one that can be +pointed to as having any special reference to man; while, on the other +hand, it is equally impossible to point to one which does not refer to +the welfare of the animal presenting it. Indeed, when the point is +suggested, it seems to me surprising how few in number are the instincts +of animals which have proved to be so much as of secondary or accidental +benefit to man, in the same way as skins, furs, and a whole host of +other animal products are thus of secondary use to him. Therefore, this +writer not only failed to perceive the most obvious truth that every +instinct, without any single exception, has reference to the animal +which presents it; but he also conceived a purely fictitious inversion +of this truth, and wrote an essay to prove a statement which all the +instincts in the animal kingdom unite in contradicting. + +This example will serve to show, in a striking manner, not only the +distance that we have travelled in our interpretation of organic nature +between two successive editions of the _Encyclopaedia Britannica_, but +also the amount of verification which this fact furnishes to the theory +of natural selection. For, inasmuch as it belongs to the very essence of +this theory that all adaptive characters (whether instinctive or +structural) must have reference to their own possessors, we find +overpowering verification furnished to the theory by the fact now before +us--namely, that immediately prior to the enunciation of this theory, +the truth that all adaptive characters have reference only to the +species which present them was not perceived. In other words, it was the +testing of this theory by the facts of nature that _revealed_ to +naturalists the general law which the theory, as it were, predicted--the +general law that all adaptive characters have primary reference to the +species which present them. And when we remember that this is a kind of +verification which is furnished by millions of separate cases, the whole +mass of it taken together is, as I have before said, overwhelming. + +It is somewhat remarkable that the enormous importance of this argument +in favour of natural selection as a prime factor of organic evolution +has not received the attention which it deserves. Even Darwin himself, +with his characteristic reserve, has not presented its incalculable +significance; nor do I know any of his followers who have made any +approach to an adequate use of it in their advocacy of his views. In +preparing the present chapter, therefore, I have been particularly +careful not to pitch too high my own estimate of its evidential value. +That is to say, I have considered, both in the domain of structures and +of instincts, what instances admit of being possibly adduced _per +contra_, or as standing outside the general law that adaptive structures +and instincts are of primary use only to their possessors. In the result +I can only think of two such instances. These, therefore, I will now +dispose of. + +The first was pointed out, and has been fully discussed, by Darwin +himself. Certain species of ants are fond of a sweet fluid that is +secreted by aphides, and they even keep the aphides as we keep cows for +the purpose of profiting by their "milk." Now the point is, that the use +of this sweet secretion to the aphis itself has not yet been made out. +Of course, if it is of no use to the aphis, it would furnish a case +which completely meets Darwin's own challenge. But, even if this +supposition did not stand out of analogy with all the other facts of +organic nature, most of us would probably deem it prudent to hold that +the secretion must primarily be of some use to the aphis itself, +although the matter has not been sufficiently investigated to inform us +of what this use is. For, in any case, the secretion is not of any vital +importance to the ants which feed upon it: and I think but few impartial +minds would go so far to save an hypothesis as to maintain, that the +Divinity had imposed this drain upon the internal resources of one +species of insect for the sole purpose of supplying a luxury to +another. On the whole, it seems most probable that the fluid is of the +nature of an excretion, serving to carry off waste products. Such, at +all events, was the opinion at which Darwin himself arrived, as a result +of observing the facts anew, and in relation to his theory. + + * * * * * + +The other instance to which I have alluded as seeming at first sight +likely to answer Darwin's challenge is the formation of vegetable galls. +The great number and variety of galls agree in presenting a more or less +elaborate structure, which is not only foreign to any of the uses of +plant-life, but singularly and specially adapted to those of the +insect-life which they shelter. Yet they are produced by a growth of the +plant itself, when suitably stimulated by the insects' inoculation--or, +according to recent observations, by emanations from the bodies of the +larvae which develop from the eggs deposited in the plant by the insect. +Now, without question, this is a most remarkable fact; and if there were +many more of the like kind to be met with in organic nature, we might +seriously consider whether the formation of galls should not be held to +make against the ubiquitous agency of natural selection. But inasmuch as +the formation of galls stands out as an exception to the otherwise +universal rule of every species for itself, and for itself alone, we are +justified in regarding this one apparent exception with extreme +suspicion. Indeed, I think we are justified in regarding the peculiar +pathological effect produced in the plant by the secretions of the +insect as having been in the first instance accidentally beneficial to +the insects. Thus, if any other effect than that of a growing tumour had +been produced in the first instance, or if the needs of the insect +progeny had not been such as to have derived profit from being enclosed +in such a tumour, then, of course, the inoculating instinct of these +animals could not have been developed by natural selection. But, given +these two conditions, and it appears to me there is nothing very much +more remarkable about an accidental correlation between the effects of a +parasitic larva on a plant and the needs of that parasite, than there is +between the similarly accidental correlation between a hydated parasite +and the nutrition furnished to it by the tissues of a warm-blooded +animal. Doubtless the case of galls is somewhat more remarkable, +inasmuch as the morbid growth of the plant has more concern in the +correlation--being, in many instances, a more specialized structure on +the part of a host than occurs anywhere else, either in the animal or +vegetable world. But here I may suggest that although natural selection +cannot have acted upon the plant directly, so as to have produced galls +ever better and better adapted to the needs of the insect, it may have +so acted upon the plants indirectly _though the insects_. For it may +very well have been that natural selection would ever tend to preserve +those individual insects, the quality of whose emanations tended to +produce the form of galls best suited to nourish the insect progeny; and +thus the character of these pathological growths may have become ever +better and better adapted to the needs of the insects. Lastly, looking +to the enormous number of relations and inter-relations between all +organic species, it is scarcely to be wondered at that even so +extraordinary an instance of correlation as this should have arisen thus +by accident, and then have been perfected by such an _indirect_ agency +of natural selection as is here suggested[37]. + + [37] Note B. + + * * * * * + +The third general class of facts which tell so immensely in favour of +natural selection as an important cause of organic evolution, are those +of domestication. The art of the horticulturist, the fancier, the +cattle-breeder, &c., consists in producing greater and greater +deviations from a given wild type of plant or animal, in any particular +direction that may be desired for purposes either of use or of beauty. +Cultivated cereals, fruits, and flowers are known to have been all +derived from wild species; and, of course, the same applies to all our +domesticated varieties of animals. Yet if we compare a cabbage rose with +a wild rose, a golden pippin apple with a crab, a toy terrier with any +species of wild dog, not to mention any number of other instances, there +can be no question that, if such differences had appeared in nature, the +organisms presenting them would have been entitled to rank as distinct +species--or even, in many cases, as distinct genera. Yet we know, as a +matter of fact, that all these differences have been produced by a +process of artificial selection, or pairing, which has been continuously +practised by horticulturists and breeders through a number of +generations. It is the business of these men to note the individual +organisms which show most variation in the directions required, and then +to propagate from these individuals, in order that the progeny shall +inherit the qualities desired. The results thus become cumulative from +generation to generation, until we now have an astonishing manifestation +of useful qualities on the one hand, and of beautiful qualities on the +other, according as the organisms have been thus bred for purposes of +use or for those of beauty. + +Now it is immediately obvious that in these cases the process of +artificial selection is precisely analogous to that of natural selection +(and of sexual selection which will be considered later on), in all +respects save one: the utility or the beauty which it is the aim of +artificial selection continually to enhance, is utility or beauty in +relation to the requirements or to the tastes of man; whereas the +utility or the beauty which is produced by natural selection and sexual +selection has reference only to the requirements or the tastes of the +organisms themselves. But, with the exception of this one point of +difference, the processes and the products are identical in kind. +Persevering selection by man is thus proved to be capable of creating +what are virtually new specific types, and this in any required +direction. Hence, when we remember how severe is the struggle for +existence in nature, it becomes impossible to doubt that selection by +nature is able to do at least as much as artificial selection in the way +of thus creating new types out of old ones. Artificial selection, +indeed, notwithstanding the many and marvellous results which it has +accomplished, can only be regarded as but a feeble imitation of natural +selection, which must act with so much greater vigilance and through +such immensely greater periods of time. In a word, the proved +capabilities of artificial selection furnish, in its best conceivable +form, what is called an argument _a fortiori_ in favour of natural +selection. + +Or, to put it in another way, it may be said that for thousands of years +mankind has been engaged in making a gigantic experiment to test, as it +were by anticipation, the theory of natural selection. For, although +this prolonged experiment has been carried on without any such intention +on the part of the experimenters, it is none the less an experiment in +the sense that its results now furnish an overwhelming verification of +Mr. Darwin's theory. That is to say, they furnish overwhelming proof of +the efficacy of the selective principle in the modification of organic +types, when once this principle is brought steadily and continuously to +bear upon a sufficiently long series of generations. + +In order to furnish ocular evidence of the value of this line of +verification, I have had the following series of drawings prepared. +Another and equally striking series might be made of the products of +artificial selection in the case of plants; but it seems to me that the +case of animals is more than sufficient for the purpose just stated. +Perhaps it is desirable to add that considerable care has been bestowed +upon the execution of these portraits; and that in every case the latter +have been taken from the most typical specimens of the artificial +variety depicted. Those of them which have not been drawn directly from +life are taken from the most authoritative sources; and, before being +submitted to the engraver, they were all examined by the best judges in +each department. In none of the groups, however, have I aimed at an +exhaustive representation of all the varieties: I have merely introduced +representatives of as many as the page would in each case accommodate. + + [Illustration: FIG. 91.--Pigeons. Drawn from life (prize + specimens).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 92.--Pigeons, continued. Drawn from life (prize + specimens).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 93.--Fowls. Drawn from life (prize specimens).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 94.--Fowls, continued. Drawn from life (prize + specimens).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 95.--Pair of Japanese Fowls, long-tailed breed. + Drawn from stuffed specimens in the British Museum.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 96.--Canaries. Drawn from life (prize + specimens).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 97.--Sebastopol, or Frizzled Goose. Drawn from a + photograph.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 98.--The Dingo, or wild dog of Australia, 1/10 + nat. size. Drawn from life (_Zoological Gardens_).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 99.--Dogs. Drawn from life (prize specimens).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 100.--Dogs, continued. Drawn from life (prize + specimens).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 101.--The Hairless Dog of Japan, 1/10 nat. size. + Drawn from a photograph kindly lent for the purpose by the + proprietor.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 102.--The skull of a Bull-dog compared with that + of a Deerhound. Drawn from nature.] + + [Illustration: FIG. 103. Rabbits. Drawn from life (prize + specimens).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 104.--Horses. Drawn from life (prize + specimens).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 105.--Sheep. The illustrations are confined to + British breeds. Drawn from life (prize specimens).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 106.--Cattle. The illustrations are confined to + British breeds. Drawn from life (prize specimens).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 107.--Wild Boar contrasted with a modern + Domesticated Pig. Drawn from life (_Zoological Gardens_, and prize + specimen).] + +The exigencies of space have prevented, in some of the groups, strict +adherence to a uniform scale--with the result that contrasts between +different breeds in respect of size are not adequately rendered. This +remark applies especially to the dogs; for although the artist has +endeavoured to draw them in perspective, unless the distance between +those in the foreground and those in the background is understood to be +more considerable than it appears, an inadequate idea is given of the +relative differences of size. The most instructive of the groups, I +think, is that of the Canaries; because the many and great changes in +different directions must in this case have been produced by artificial +selection in so comparatively short a time--the first mention of this +bird that I can find being by Gesner, in the sixteenth century. + + * * * * * + +Now, it is surely unquestionable that in these typical proofs of the +efficacy of artificial selection in the modification of specific types, +we have the strongest conceivable testimony to the power of natural +selection in the same direction. For it thus appears that wherever +mankind has had occasion to operate by selection for a sufficiently long +time--that is to say, on whatever species of plant or animal he chooses +thus to operate for the purpose of modifying the type in any required +direction,--the results are always more or less the same: he finds that +all specific types lend themselves to continuous deflection in any +particulars of structure, colour, &c., that he may desire to modify. + +Nevertheless, to this parallel between the known effects of artificial +selection, and the inferred effects of natural selection, two objections +have been urged. The first is, that in the case of artificial selection +the selecting agent is a voluntary intelligence, while in the case of +natural selection the selecting agent is Nature herself; and whether or +not there is any counterpart of man's voluntary intelligence in nature +is a question with which Darwinism has nothing to do. Therefore, it is +alleged, the analogy between natural selection and artificial selection +fails _ab initio_, or at the fountain-head of the causes which are taken +by the analogy to be respectively involved. + +The second objection to the analogy is, that the products of artificial +selection, closely as they may resemble natural species in all other +respects, nevertheless present one conspicuous and highly important +point of difference: they rarely, if ever, present the physiological +character of mutual infertility, which is a character of extremely +general occurrence in the case of natural species, even when these are +most nearly allied. + +I will deal with these two objections in the next chapter, where I shall +be concerned with the meeting of all the objections which have ever been +urged against the theory of natural selection. Meanwhile I am engaged +only in presenting the general arguments which support the theory, and +therefore mention these objections to one of them merely _en passant_. +And I do so in order to pledge myself effectually to dispose of them +later on, so that for the purposes of my present argument both these +objections may be provisionally regarded as non-existent; which means, +in other words, that we may provisionally regard the analogy between +artificial selection and natural selection as everywhere logically +intact. + + * * * * * + +To sum up, then, the results of the foregoing exposition thus far, what +I hold to be the three principal, or most general, arguments in favour +of the theory of natural selection, are as follows. + +First, there is the _a priori_ consideration that, if on independent +grounds we believe in the theory of evolution at all, it becomes obvious +that natural selection _must_ have had _some_ part in the process. For +no one can deny the potent facts of heredity, variability, the struggle +for existence, and survival of the fittest. But to admit these facts is +to admit natural selection as a principle which must be, at any rate, +one of the factors of organic evolution, supposing such evolution to +have taken place. Next, when we turn from these _a priori_ +considerations, which thus show that natural selection _must_ have been +concerned to some extent in the process of evolution, we find in organic +nature evidence _a posteriori_ of the extent to which this principle +_has_ been thus concerned. For we find that among all the countless +millions of adaptive structures which are to be met with in organic +nature, it is an invariable rule that they exist in relation to the +needs of the particular species which present them: they never have any +primary reference to the needs of other species. And as this +extraordinarily large and general fact is exactly what the theory of +natural selection would expect, the theory is verified by the fact in an +extraordinarily cogent manner. In other words, the fact goes to prove +that in _all_ cases where adaptive structures or instincts are +concerned, natural selection must have been either the sole cause at +work, or, at the least, an influence controlling the operation of all +other causes. + +Lastly, an actually experimental verification of the theory has been +furnished on a gigantic scale by the operations of breeders, fanciers, +and horticulturists. For these men, by their process of selective +accumulation, have empirically proved what immense changes of type may +thus be brought about; and so have verified by anticipation, and in a +most striking manner, the theory of natural selection--which, as now so +fully explained, is nothing more than a theory of cumulative +modifications by means of selective breeding. + +So much, then, by way of generalities. But perhaps the proof of natural +selection as an agency of the first importance in the transmutation of +species may be best brought home to us by considering a few of its +applications in detail. I will therefore devote the rest of the present +chapter to considering a few cases of this kind. + +There are so many large fields from which such special illustrations may +be supplied, that it is difficult to decide which of them to draw upon. +For instance, the innumerable, always interesting, and often astonishing +adaptations on the part of flowers to the fertilising agency of insects, +has alone given rise to an extensive literature since the time when +Darwin himself was led to investigate the subject by the guidance of his +own theory. The same may be said of the structures and movements of +climbing plants, and in short, of all the other departments of natural +history where the theory of natural selection has led to the study of +the phenomena of adaptation. For in all these cases the theory of +natural selection, which first led to their discovery, still remains the +only scientific theory by which they can be explained. But among all the +possible fields from which evidences of this kind may be drawn, I think +the best is that which may be generically termed defensive colouring. To +this field, therefore, I will restrict myself. But, even so, the cases +to be mentioned are but mere samples taken from different divisions of +this field; and therefore it must be understood at the outset that they +could easily be multiplied a hundred-fold. + + +_Protective Colouring._ + +A vast number of animals are rendered more or less inconspicuous by +resembling the colours of the surfaces on which they habitually rest. +Such, for example, are grouse, partridges, rabbits, &c. Moreover, there +are many cases in which, if the needs of the creature be such that it +must habitually frequent surfaces of different colours, it has acquired +the power of changing its colour accordingly--e. g. cuttle-fish, +flat-fish, frogs, chameleons, &c. The physiological mechanism whereby +these adaptive changes of colour are produced differs in different +animals; but it is needless for our purposes to go into this part of the +subject. Again, there are yet other cases where protective colouring +which is admirably suited to conceal an animal through one part of the +year, would become highly conspicuous during another part of it--namely, +when the ground is covered with snow. Accordingly, in these cases the +animals change their colour in the winter months to a snowy white: +witness stoats, mountain hares, ptarmigan, &c. (Fig. 108.) + + [Illustration: FIG. 108.--Seasonal changes of colour in Ptarmigan + (_Lagopus mutus_). Drawn from stuffed specimens in the British + Museum, 1/6 nat. size, with appropriate surroundings supplied.] + +Now, it is sufficiently obvious that in all these classes of cases the +concealment from enemies or prey which is thus secured is of advantage +to the animals concerned; and, therefore, that in the theory of natural +selection we have a satisfactory theory whereby to explain it. And this +cannot be said of any other theory of adaptive mechanisms in nature that +has ever been propounded. The so-called Lamarckian theory, for instance, +cannot be brought to bear upon the facts at all; and on the theory of +special creation it is unintelligible why the phenomena of protective +colouring should be of such general occurrence. For, in as far as +protective colouring is of advantage to the species which present it, it +is of corresponding disadvantage to those other species against the +predatory nature of which it acts as a defence. And, of course, the +same applies to yet other species, if they serve as prey. Moreover, +the more minutely this subject is investigated in all its details, +the more exactly is it found to harmonise with the naturalistic +interpretation[38]. + + [38] Were it not that some of Darwin's critics have overlooked the + very point wherein the great value of protective colouring as + evidence of natural selection consists, it would be needless to + observe that it does so in the _minuteness_ of the protective + resemblance which in so many cases is presented. Of course where the + resemblance is only very general, the phenomena might be ascribed to + mere coincidence, of which the instincts of the animal have taken + advantage. But in the measure that the resemblance becomes minutely + detailed, the supposition of mere coincidence is excluded, and the + agency of some specially adaptive cause demonstrated. Again, it is + almost needless to say, no real difficulty is presented (as has been + alleged) by the cases above quoted of seasonal imitations, on the + ground that natural selection could not act alternately on the same + individual. Natural selection is not supposed to act alternately on + the same individual. It is supposed to act always in the same + manner, and if, as in the case of a regularly recurring change in + the colours of the environment, correspondingly recurrent changes + are required to appear in the colours of the animals, natural + selection sets its premium upon those individuals the constitutions + of which best lend themselves to seasonal changes of the needful + kind--probably under the influence of stimuli supplied by the + changes of external conditions (temperature, moisture, &c.). + +In the first place, we always find a complete correspondence between +imitative colouring and instinctive endowment. If a caterpillar exactly +resembles the colour of a twig, it also presents the instinct of +habitually reposing in the attitude which makes it most resemble a +twig--standing out from the branch on which it rests at the same angle +as is presented by the real twigs of the tree on which it lives. + +Here, again, is a bird protectively coloured so as to resemble stones +upon the rough ground where it habitually lives; and the drawing shows +the attitude in which the bird instinctively reposes, so as still +further to increase its resemblance to a stone. (Fig. 109.) + + [Illustration: FIG. 109.--_Oedicnemus crepitans_, showing the + instinctive attitude of concealment. Drawn from a stuffed specimen + in the British Museum, 1/6 nat. size, with appropriate surroundings + supplied. + +To take only one other instance, hares and rabbits, like grouse and +partridges--or like the plover just alluded to,--instinctively crouch +upon those surfaces the colours of which they resemble; and I have often +remarked that if, on account of any individual peculiarity of +coloration, the animal is not able thus to secure concealment, it +nevertheless exhibits the instinct of crouching which is of benefit to +all its kind, although, from the accident of its own abnormal colouring, +this instinct is then actually detrimental to the animal itself. For +example, every sportsman must have noticed that the somewhat rare +melanic variety of the common rabbit will crouch as steadily as the +normal brownish-gray type, notwithstanding that, owing to its abnormal +colour, a "nigger-rabbit" thus renders itself the most conspicuous +object in the landscape. In all such cases, of course, there has been a +deviation from the normal type in respect of colour, with the result +that the inherited instinct is no longer in tune with the other +endowments of the animal. Such a variation of colour, therefore, will +tend to be suppressed by natural selection; while any variations which +may bring the animal still more closely to resemble its habitual +surroundings will be preserved. Thus we can understand the truly +wonderful extent to which this principle of protective colouring has +been carried in many cases where the need of it has been most urgent. + +Not only colour, but structure, may be profoundly modified for the +purposes of protective concealment. Thus, caterpillars which resemble +twigs do so not only in respect of colour, but also of shape; and this +even down to the most minute details in cases where the adaptation is +most complete: certain butterflies and leaf-insects so precisely +resemble the leaves upon which, or among which, they live, that it is +almost impossible to detect them in the foliage--not only the colour, +the shape, and the venation being all exactly imitated, but in some +cases even the defects to which the leaves are liable, in the way of +fungoid growths, &c. There are other insects which with similar +exactness resemble moss, lichens, and so forth. A species of fish +secures a complete resemblance to bunches of sea-weed by a frond-like +modification of all its appendages, and so on through many other +instances. Now, in all such cases where there is so precise an +imitation, both in colour and structure, it seems impossible to suggest +any other explanation of the facts than the one which is supplied by +Mr. Darwin's theory--namely, that the more perfect the resemblance is +caused to become through the continuous influence of natural selection +always picking out the best imitations, the more highly discriminative +becomes the perception of those enemies against the depredations of +which this peculiar kind of protection is developed; so that, in virtue +of this action and re-action, eventually we have a degree of imitation +which renders it almost impossible for a naturalist to detect the animal +when living in its natural environment. + + [Illustration: FIG. 110.--Imitative forms and colours in insects. + Drawn from nature (_R. Coll. Surg. Mus._).] + + +_Warning Colours._ + +In strange and glaring contrast to all these cases of protective +colouring, stand other cases of conspicuous colouring. Thus, for +example, although there are numberless species of caterpillars which +present in an astonishing degree the phenomena of protective colouring, +there are numberless other species which not only fail to present these +phenomena in any degree, but actually go to the opposite extreme of +presenting colours which appear to have been developed for the sake of +their conspicuousness. At all events, these caterpillars are usually the +most conspicuous objects in their surroundings, and therefore in the +early days of Darwinism they were regarded by Darwin himself as +presenting a formidable difficulty in the way of his theory. To Mr. +Wallace belongs the merit of having cleared up this difficulty in an +extraordinarily successful manner. He virtually reasoned thus. If the +_raison d'etre_ of protective colouring be that of concealing agreeably +flavoured caterpillars from the eye-sight of birds, may not the _raison +d'etre_ of conspicuous colouring be that of protecting disagreeably +flavoured caterpillars from any possibility of being mistaken by birds? +Should this be the case, of course the more conspicuous the colouring +the better would it be for the caterpillars presenting it. Now as soon +as this suggestion was acted upon experimentally, it was found to be +borne out by facts. Birds could not be induced to eat caterpillars of +the kinds in question; and there is now no longer any doubt that their +conspicuous colouring is correlated with their distastefulness to birds, +in the same way as the inconspicuous or imitative colouring of other +caterpillars is correlated with their tastefulness to birds. Here then +is yet another instance, added to those already given, of the +verification yielded to the theory of natural selection by its proved +competency as a guide to facts in nature; for assuredly this particular +class of facts would never have been suspected but for its suggestive +agency. + +As in the case of protective imitation, so in this case of warning +conspicuousness, not only colour, but structure may be greatly modified +for the purpose of securing immunity from attack. Here, of course, the +object is to assume, as far as possible, a touch-me-not appearance; so +that, although destitute of any real means of offence, the creatures in +question present a fictitiously dangerous aspect. As the +Devil's-coach-horse turns up his stingless tail when threatened by an +enemy, so in numberless ways do many harmless animals of all classes +pretend to be formidable. But the point now is that these instincts of +self-defence are often helped out by structural modifications, +expressly and exclusively adapted to this end. For example, what a +remarkable series of protective adjustments occurs in the life-history +of the Puss Moth--culminating with so comical an instance of the +particular device now under consideration as the following. I quote the +facts from Mr. E. B. Poulton's admirable book on _The Colours of +Animals_ (pp. 269-271). + + [Illustration: FIG. 111.--The larva of Puss Moth (_C. vinula_) + when undisturbed; full-fed; natural size.] + + The larva of the Puss Moth (Cerura vinula) is very common upon + poplar and willow. The circular dome-like eggs are laid, either + singly or in little groups of two or three, upon the upper side of + the leaf, and being of a reddish colour strongly suggest the + appearance of little galls, or the results of some other injury to + the leaf. The youngest larvae are black, and also rest upon the + upper surface of the leaf, resembling the dark patches which are + commonly seen in this position. As the larva grows, the apparent + black patch would cover too large a space, and would lead to + detection if it still occupied the whole surface of the body. The + latter gains a green ground-colour which harmonises with the leaf, + while the dark marking is chiefly confined to the back. As growth + proceeds the relative amount of green increases, and the dark mark + is thus prevented from attaining a size which would render it too + conspicuous. In the last stage of growth the green larva becomes + very large, and usually rests on the twigs of its food-plant (Fig. + 111). The dark colour is still present on the back but is softened + to a purplish tint, which tends to be replaced by a combination of + white and green in many of the largest larvae. Such a larva is well + concealed by General Protective Resemblance, and one may search a + long time before finding it, although assured of its presence from + the stripped branches of the food-plant and the faeces on the ground + beneath. + + [Illustration: FIG. 112.--The larva of Puss Moth in its terrifying + attitude after being disturbed; full-fed; natural size.] + + As soon as a large larva is discovered and disturbed it withdraws + its head into the first body-ring, inflating the margin, which is + of a bright red colour. There are two intensely black spots on this + margin in the appropriate position for eyes, and the whole + appearance is that of a large flat face extending to the outer edge + of the red margin (see Fig. 112). The effect is an intensely + exaggerated caricature of a vertebrate face, which is probably + alarming to the vertebrate enemies of the caterpillar. The + terrifying effect is therefore mimetic. The movements entirely + depend on tactile impressions: when touched ever so lightly a + healthy larva immediately assumes the terrifying attitude, and + turns so as to present its full face towards the enemy; if touched + on the other side or on the back it instantly turns its face in the + appropriate direction. The effect is also greatly strengthened by + two pink whips which are swiftly protruded from the prongs of the + fork in which the body terminates. The prongs represent the last + pair of larval legs which have been greatly modified from their + ordinary shape and use. The end of the body is at the same time + curved forward over the back (generally much further than in Fig. + 112), so that the pink filaments are brandished above the head. + + +_Mimicry._ + +Lastly, these facts as to imitative and conspicuous colouring lead on to +the yet more remarkable facts of what is called mimicry. By mimicry is +meant the imitation in form and colour of one species by another, in +order that the imitating species may be mistaken for the imitated, and +thus participate in some advantage which the latter enjoys. For +instance, if, as in the case of the conspicuously-coloured caterpillars, +it is of advantage to an ill-savoured species that it should hold out a +warning to enemies, clearly it may be of no less advantage to a +well-savoured species that it should borrow this flag, and thus be +mistaken for its ill-savoured neighbour. Now, the extent to which this +device of mimicry is carried is highly remarkable, not only in respect +of the number of its cases, but also in respect of the astonishing +accuracy which in most of these cases is exhibited by the imitation. +There need be little or virtually no zoological affinity between the +imitating and the imitated forms; that is to say, in some cases the +zoological affinity is not closer than ordinal, and therefore cannot +possibly be ascribed to kinship. Like all the other branches of the +general subject of protective resemblance in form or colouring, this +branch has already been so largely illustrated by previous writers, +that, as in the previous cases, I need only give one or two examples. +Those which I choose are chosen on account of the colours concerned not +being highly varied or brilliant, and therefore lending themselves to +less ineffectual treatment by wood-engraving than is the case where +attempts are made to render by this means even more remarkable +instances. (Figs. 113, 114, 115.) + + [Illustration: FIG. 113.--Three cases of mimicry. Drawn from nature: + first two pairs nat. size, last pair 2/3 (_R. Coll. Surg. Mus._).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 114.--Two further cases of mimicry; flies + resembling a wasp in the one and a bee in the other. Drawn from + nature: nat. size (_R. Coll. Surg. Mus._).] + + [Illustration: FIG. 115.--A case of mimicry where a non-venomous + species of snake resembles a venomous one. Drawn from nature: 1/3 + nat. size (_R. Coll. Surg. Mus._).] + +It is surely apparent, without further comment, that it is impossible to +imagine stronger evidence in favour of natural selection as a true cause +in nature, than is furnished by this culminating fact in the matter of +protective resemblance, whereby it is shown that a species of one +genus, family, or even order, will accurately mimic the appearance of a +species belonging to another genus, family, or order, so as to deceive +its natural enemies into mistaking it for a creature of so totally +different a kind. And it must be added that while this fact of mimicry +is of extraordinarily frequent occurrence, there can be no possibility +of our mistaking its purpose. For the fact is never observable except in +the case of species which occupy the same area or district. + +Such being what appears to me the only reasonable view of the matter, I +will now conclude this chapter on the evidences of natural selection as +at all events the main factor of organic evolution, by simply adding +illustrations of two further cases of mimicry, which are perhaps even +more remarkable than any of the foregoing examples. The first of the two +(Fig. 115) speaks for itself. The second will be rendered intelligible +by the following few words of explanation. + +There are certain ants of the Amazons which present the curious instinct +of cutting off leaves from trees, and carrying them like banners over +their heads to the hive, as represented in Fig. 116, B, where one ant is +shown without a leaf, and the others each with a leaf. Their object in +thus collecting leaves is probably that of growing a fungus upon the +"soil" which is furnished by the leaves when decomposing. But, be this +as it may[39], the only point we are now concerned with is the +appearance which these ants present when engaged in their habitual +operation of carrying leaves. For it has been recently observed by Mr. +W. L. Sclater, that in the localities where these hymenopterous insects +occur, there occurs also a _homopterous_ insect which mimics the ant, +leaf and all, in a wonderfully deceptive manner. The leaf is imitated by +the thin flattened body of the insect, "which in its dorsal aspect is so +compressed laterally that it is no thicker than a leaf, and terminates +in a sharp jagged edge." The colour is exactly the same as that of a +leaf, and the brown legs show themselves beneath the green body in just +the same way as those of the ant show themselves beneath the leaf. So +that both the form and the colouring of the homopterous insect has been +brought to resemble, with singular exactness, those belonging to a +different order of insect, when the latter is engaged in its peculiar +avocation. A glance at the figure is enough to show the means employed +and the result attained. In A, an ant and its mimic are represented as +about 2-1/2 times their natural size, and both proceeding in the same +direction. It ought to be mentioned, however, that in reality the margin +of the leaf is seldom allowed to retain its natural serrations as here +depicted: the ants usually gnaw the edge of the real leaf, so that the +margin of the false one bears an even closer resemblance to it than the +illustration represents. B is a drawing from life of a group of five +ants carrying leaves, and their mimic walking beside them[40]. + + [39] For a full account of this instinct and its probable purpose, + see _Animal Intelligence_, pp. 93-6. + + [40] Both drawings are reproduced from Mr. Poulton's paper upon the + subject (_Proc. Zool. Soc._, June 16, 1891). + + [Illustration: FIG. 116 PROTECTIVE MIMICRY] + + + + +CHAPTER IX. + +CRITICISMS OF THE THEORY OF NATURAL SELECTION. + + +I will now proceed to consider the various objections and difficulties +which have hitherto been advanced against the theory of natural +selection. + +Very early in the day Owen hurled the weight of his authority against +the new theory, and this with a strength of onslaught which was only +equalled by its want of judgment. Indeed, it is painfully apparent that +he failed to apprehend the fundamental principles of the Darwinian +theory. For he says:-- + + Natural Selection is an explanation of the process [of + transmutation] of the same kind and value as that which has been + proffered of the mystery of "secretion." For example, a particular + mass of matter in a living animal takes certain elements out of the + blood, and rejects them as "bile." Attributes were given to the + liver which can only be predicated of the whole animal; the + "appetency" of the liver, it was said, was for the elements of + bile, and "biliosity," or the "hepatic sensation," guided the gland + to their secretion. Such figurative language, I need not say, + explains absolutely nothing of the nature of bilification[41]. + + [41] _Anatomy of Vertebrates_, vol. iii. p. 794. + +Assuredly, it was needless for Owen to say that figurative language of +this kind explains nothing; but it was little less than puerile in him +to see no more in the theory of natural selection than such a mere +figure of speech. To say that the liver selects the elements of bile, or +that nature selects specific types, may both be equally unmeaning +re-statements of facts; but when it is explained that the term natural +selection, unlike that of "hepatic sensation," is used as a shorthand +expression for a whole group of well-known natural causes--struggle, +variation, survival, heredity,--then it becomes evidence of an almost +childish want of thought to affirm that the expression is figurative and +nothing more. The doctrine of natural selection may be a huge mistake; +but, if so, this is not because it consists of any unmeaning metaphor: +it can only be because the combination of natural causes which it +suggests is not of the same adequacy in fact as it is taken to be in +theory. + +Owen further objected that the struggle for existence could only act as +a cause of the extinction of species, not of their origination--a view +of the case which again shows on his part a complete failure to grasp +the conception of Darwinism. Acting alone, the struggle for existence +could only cause extermination; but acting together with variation, +survival, and heredity, it may very well--for anything that Owen, or +others who followed in this line of criticism, show to the +contrary--have produced every species of plant and animal that has ever +appeared upon the face of the earth. + +Another and closely allied objection is, that the theory of natural +selection "personifies an abstraction." Or, as the Duke of Argyll states +it, the theory is "essentially the image of mechanical necessity +concealed under the clothes, and parading in the mask, of mental +purpose. The word 'natural' suggests Matter, and the physical forces. +The word 'selection' suggests Mind, and the powers of choice." This, +however, is a mere quarrelling about words. Darwin called the principle +which he had discovered by the name natural selection in order to mark +the analogy between it and artificial selection. No doubt in this +analogy there is not necessarily supposed to be in nature any +counterpart to the mind of the breeder, nor, therefore, to his powers of +intelligent choice. But there is no need to limit the term _selection_ +(_se_ and _lego_, Gr. [Greek: lego]) to powers of intelligent choice. As +previously remarked, a bank of sea-weed on the sea-shore may be said to +have been selected by the waves from all the surrounding sand and +stones. Similarly, we may say that grain is selected from chaff by the +wind in the process of winnowing corn. Or, if it be thought that there +is any ambiguity involved in such a use of the term in the case of +"Natural Selection," there is no objection to employing the phrase which +has been coined by Mr. Spencer as its equivalent--namely, "Survival of +the Fittest." The point of the theory is, that those organisms which are +best suited to their surroundings are allowed to live and to propagate, +while those which are less suited are eliminated; and whether we call +this process a process of selection, or call it by any other name, is +clearly immaterial. + +A material question is raised only when it is asked whether the process +is one that can be ascribed to causation strictly natural. It is often +denied that such is the case, on the ground that natural selection does +not originate the variations which it favours, but depends upon the +variations being supplied by some other means. For, it is said, all that +natural selection does is to preserve the suitable variations _after +they have arisen_. Natural selection does not _cause_ these suitable +variations; and therefore, it is argued, Darwin and his followers are +profoundly mistaken in representing the principle as one which +_produces_ adaptations. Now, although this objection has been put +forward by some of the most intelligent minds in our generation, it +appears to me to betoken some extraordinary failure to appreciate the +very essence of Darwinian doctrine. No doubt it is perfectly true that +natural selection does not produce variations of any kind, whether +beneficial or otherwise. But if it be granted that variations of many +kinds are occurring in every generation, and that natural selection is +competent to preserve the more favourable among them, then it appears to +me unquestionable that this principle of selection deserves to be +regarded as, in the full sense of the word, a natural cause. The +variations being expressly regarded by the theory as more or less +promiscuous[42], survival of the fittest becomes the winnowing fan, +whose function it is to eliminate all the less fit in each generation, +in order to preserve the good grain, out of which to constitute the next +generation. And as this process is supposed to be continuous through +successive generations, its action is supposed to be cumulative, till +from the eye of a worm there is gradually developed the eye of an eagle. +Therefore it follows from these suppositions (which are not disputed by +the present objection), that if it had not been for the process of +selection, such development would never have been begun; and that in the +exact measure of its efficiency will the development proceed. But any +agency without the operation of which a result cannot take place may +properly be designated the cause of that result: it is the agency which, +in co-operation with all the other agencies in the cosmos, produces that +result. + + [42] The degree in which variability is indefinite, or, on the + contrary, determinate, is a question which is not yet ripe for + decision--nor even, in my opinion, for discussion. But I may here + state the following general principles with regard to it. + + (1) It is evident that up to some point or another variations _must_ + be pre-determined in definite lines. Men do not gather grapes from + thorns, figs from thistles, nor even moss-roses from sweet-briars. + In other words, "the nature of the organism" in all cases + necessitates the limiting of variations within certain bounds. + + (2) But when the question is as to what these bounds may be, we can + only answer in a general way that, according to the general theory + of evolution, they must be such as are imposed by heredity, coupled + with the degree to which external conditions of life (and possibly + also use-inheritance) are capable, in given cases, of modifying + congenital characters. These are the only causes which the theory of + descent can consistently recognise as producing variations in + determinate directions. + + (3) Inasmuch as variation presupposes the existence of parts that + vary, and inasmuch as the variation of parts can only be in the + alternative directions of increase or decrease around an average, it + follows that, in the first instance at all events, every variation, + if determinate, must be so only in one or other of these two + opposite directions. + + (4) In as far as variations are summated in successive generations, + so as eventually to give rise to new structures, organs, mechanisms, + &c., natural selection is theoretically competent to explain the + facts, without our having to postulate the operation of unknown + causes producing variations in determinate lines,--or not further + than is stated in paragraphs 1 and 2. + + (5) Nevertheless, it does not follow that there are not such other + unknown causes; and, if there are, of course the importance of + natural selection as a cause of adaptive modification would be + limited in proportion to their number and the extent of their + operation. But it is for those who, like the late Professors Asa + Gray and Naegeli, maintain the existence of such causes, to + substantiate their belief by indicating them. + +Take any analogous case. The selective agency of specific gravity which +is utilised in gold-washing does not create the original differences +between gold-dust and dust of all other kinds. But these differences +being presented by as many different bodies in nature, the gold-washer +takes advantage of the selective agency in question, and, by using it as +a cause of segregation, is enabled to separate the gold from all the +earths with which it may happen to be mixed. So far as the objects of +the gold-washer are concerned, it is immaterial with what other earths +the gold-dust may happen to be mixed. For although gold-dust may occur +in intimate association with earths of various kinds in various +proportions, and although in each case the particular admixture which +occurs must have been due to definite causes, these things, in relation +to the selective process of the washer, are what is called accidental: +that is to say, they have nothing to do with the causative action of the +selective process. Now, in precisely the same sense Darwin calls the +multitudinous variations of plants and animals accidental. By so calling +them he expressly says he does not suppose them to be accidental in the +sense of not all being due to definite causes. But they are accidental +in relation to the sifting process of natural selection: all that they +have to do is to furnish the promiscuous material on which this sifting +process acts. + +Or let us take an even closer analogy. The power of selective breeding +by man is so wonderful, that in the course of successive generations all +kinds of peculiarities as to size, shape, colour, special appendages or +abortions, &c., can be produced at pleasure, as we saw in the last +chapter. Now all the promiscuous variations which are supplied to the +breeder, and out of which, by selecting only those that are suited to +his purpose, he is able to produce the required result--all those +promiscuous variations, in relation to that purpose, are accidental. +Therefore the selective agency of the breeder deserves to be regarded as +the cause of that which it produces, or of that which could not have +been produced but for the operation of such agency. But where is the +difference between artificial and natural selection in this respect? +And, if there is no difference, is not natural selection as much +entitled to be regarded as a true cause of the origin of natural +species, as artificial selection is to be regarded as a true cause of +our domesticated races? Here, as in the case of the previous +illustration, if there be any ambiguity in speaking of variations as +accidental, it arises from the incorrect or undefined manner in which +the term "accidental" is used by Darwin's critics. In its original and +philosophically-correct usage, the term "accident" signifies a property +or quality not essential to our conception of a substance: hence, it has +come to mean anything that happens as a result of unforeseen causes--or, +lastly, that which is causeless. But, as we know that nothing can happen +without causes of some kind, the term "accident" is divested of real +meaning when it is used in the last of these senses. Yet this is the +sense that is sought to be placed upon it by the objection which we are +considering. If the objectors will but understand the term in its +correct philosophical sense--or in the only sense in which it presents +any meaning at all,--they will see that Darwinians are both logically +and historically justified in employing the word "accidental" as the +word which serves most properly to convey the meaning that they +intend--namely, variations due to causes accidental to the struggle for +existence. Similarly, when it is said that variations are "spontaneous," +or even "fortuitous," nothing further is meant than that we do not know +the causes which lead to them, and that, so far as the principle of +selection is concerned, it is immaterial what these causes may be. Or, +to revert to our former illustration, the various weights of different +kinds of earths are no doubt all due to definite causes; but, in +relation to the selective action of the gold-washer, all the different +weights of whatever kinds of earth he may happen to include in his +washing-apparatus are, _strictly speaking_, accidental. And as at +different washings he meets with different proportions of heavy earths +with light ones, and as these "variations" are immaterial to him, he may +colloquially speak of them as "fortuitous," or due to "chance," even +though he knows that at each washing they must have been determined by +definite causes. + +More adequately to deal with this merely formal objection, however, +would involve more logic-chopping than is desirable on the present +occasion. But I have already dealt with it fully elsewhere,--viz. in +_The Contemporary Review_ for June, 1888, to which therefore I may refer +any one who is interested in dialectics of this kind[43]. + + [43] Within the last few months this objection has been presented + anew by Mr. D. Syme, whose book _On the Modification of Organisms_ + exhibits a curious combination of shrewd criticisms with almost + ludicrous misunderstandings. One of the latter it is necessary to + state, because it pervades the quotation which I am about to supply. + He everywhere compares "natural selection" with "the struggle for + existence," uses them as convertible terms, and while absurdly + stating that "Darwin defines natural selection as the struggle for + existence," complains of "the liability of error, both on his own + part and on the part of his readers," which arises from his not + having everywhere adhered to this definition! (p. 8). + + "Darwin has put forth two distinct and contradictory theories of the + functions of natural selection. According to the one theory natural + selection is selective or preservative, and nothing more. According + to the other theory natural selection creates the variations(!) ... + It certainly seems absurd to speak of natural selection, or the + struggle for existence, as selective or preservative, for the + struggle for existence does not preserve at all, not even the fit + variations, as both the fit and the unfit struggle for existence, + the unfit naturally more than the fit, and the fit are preserved, + not in consequence of the struggle, but in consequence of their + fitness. Suppose two varieties of the same species are driven, by an + increase of their numbers, to seek for subsistence in a colder + region than they have been accustomed to, and that one of these + varieties had a hardier constitution than the other; and let us + suppose that the former withstood the severe climate better than the + latter, and consequently survived, while the other perished. In this + case the hardier survived, not because of the struggle, but because + it had a constitution better adapted to the climate. I wish to + ascertain if a certain metal in my possession is gold or some baser + metal, and I apply the usual test; but the mere fact of my testing + this metal would not make it gold or any other kind of metal." + + I have thought it worth while to quote this passage for the sake of + showing the extraordinary confusion of mind which still prevails on + the part of Darwin's critics, even with reference to the very + fundamental parts of his theory. For, as I have said, the writer of + this passage shows himself a shrewd critic in some other parts of + his essay, where he is not engaged especially on the theory of + natural selection. + +I will now pass on to consider another misconception of the Darwinian +theory, which is very prevalent in the public mind. It is virtually +asked, If some species are supposed to have been improved by natural +selection, why have not all species been similarly improved? Why should +not all invertebrated animals have risen into vertebrated? Or why +should not all monkeys have become men? + +The answers are manifold. In the first place, it by no means follows +that because an advance in organization has proved itself of benefit in +the case of one form of life, therefore any or every other form would +have been similarly benefited by a similar advance. The business of +natural selection is to bring this and that form of life into the +closest harmony with its environment that all the conditions of the case +permit. Sometimes it will happen that the harmony will admit of being +improved by an improvement of organization. But just as often it will +happen that it will be best secured by leaving matters as they are. If, +therefore, an organism has already been brought into a tolerably full +degree of harmony with its environment, natural selection will not try +to change it so long as the environment remains unchanged; and this, no +doubt, is the reason why some species have survived through enormous +periods of geological time without having undergone any change. Again, +as we saw in a previous chapter, there are yet other cases where, on +account of some change in the environment or even in the habits of the +organisms themselves, adaption will be best secured by an active +_reversal_ of natural selection, with the result of causing +_degeneration_. + +But, it is sometimes further urged, there are cases where we cannot +doubt that improvement of organization would have been of benefit to +species; and yet such improvement has not taken place--as, for instance, +in the case all monkeys not turning into men. Here, however, we must +remember that the operation of natural selection in any case depends +upon a variety of highly complex conditions; and, therefore, that the +fact of all those conditions having been satisfied in one instance is no +reason for concluding that they must also have been satisfied in other +instances. Take, for example, the case of monkeys passing into men. The +wonder to me appears to be that this improvement should have taken place +in even one line of descent; not that, having taken place in one line, +it should not also have taken place in other lines. For how enormously +complex must have been the conditions--physical, anatomical, +physiological, psychological, sociological--which by their happy +conjunction first began to raise the inarticulate cries of an ape into +the rational speech of a man. Therefore, the more that we appreciate the +superiority of a man to an ape, the less ought we to countenance this +supposed objection to Darwin's theory--namely, that natural selection +has not effected the change in more than one line of descent. + +Even in the case of two races of mankind where one has risen higher in +the scale of civilization than another, it is now generally impossible +to assign the particular causes of the difference; much more, then, must +this be impossible in the case of still more remote conditions which +have led to the divergence of species. The requisite variations may not +have arisen in the one line of descent which did arise in the other; or +if they did arise in both, some counterbalancing disadvantages may have +attended their initial development in the one case which did not obtain +in the other. In short, where so exceedingly complex a play of +conditions are concerned, the only wonder would be if two different +lines of descent _had_ happened to present two independent and yet +perfectly parallel lines of history. + +These general considerations would apply equally to the great majority +of other cases where some types have made great advances upon others, +notwithstanding that we can see no reason why the latter should not in +this respect have imitated the former. But there is yet a further +consideration which must be taken into account. The struggle for +existence is always most keen between closely allied species, because, +from the similarity of their forms, habits, needs, &c., they are in +closest competition. Therefore it often happens that the mere fact of +one species having made an advance upon others of itself precludes the +others from making any similar advance: the field, so to speak, has +already been occupied as regards that particular improvement, and where +the struggle for existence is concerned possession is emphatically nine +points of the law. For example, to return to the case of apes becoming +men, the fact of one rational species having been already evolved (even +if the rational faculty were at first but dimly nascent) must make an +enormous change in the conditions as regards the possibility of any +other such species being subsequently evolved--unless, of course, it be +by way of descent from the rational one. Or, as Sir Charles Lyell has +well put it, two rational species can never _coexist_ on the globe, +although the descendants of one rational species may in time become +_transformed_ into another single rational species[44]. + + [44] _Principles of Geology_, vol. ii. p. 487 (11th ed.). + +In view of such considerations, another and exactly opposite objection +has sometimes been urged--viz. that we ought never to find inferior +forms of organization in company with superior, because in the struggle +for existence the latter ought to have exterminated the former. Or, to +quote the most recent expression of this view, "in every locality there +would only be one species, and that the most highly organized; and thus +a few superior races would partition the earth amongst them to the +entire exclusion of the innumerable varieties, species, genera, and +orders which now inhabit it[45]." Of course to this statement it would +be sufficient to enquire, On what would these few supremely organized +species subsist? Unless manna fell from heaven for their especial +benefit, it would appear that such forms could under no circumstances be +the most improved forms; in exterminating others on such a scale as +this, they would themselves be quickly, and very literally, improved off +the face of the earth. But even when the statement is not made in so +extravagant a form as this, it must necessarily be futile as an +objection unless it has first been shown that we know exactly all the +conditions of the complex struggle for existence between the higher and +lower forms in question. And this it is impossible that we ever can +know. The mere fact that one form has been changed in virtue of this +struggle must in many cases of itself determine a change in the +conditions of the struggle. Again, the other and closely allied forms +(and these furnish the best grounds for the objection) may also have +undergone defensive changes, although these may be less conspicuous to +our observation, or perhaps less suggestive of "improvement" to our +imperfect means of judging. Lastly, not to continue citing an endless +number of such considerations, there is the broad fact that it is only +to those cases where, for some reason or another, the lower forms have +not been exposed to a struggle of fatal intensity, that the objection +applies. But we know that in millions of other cases the lower (i. e. +less fitted) forms _have_ succumbed, and therefore I do not see that the +objection has any ground to stand upon. That there is a general tendency +for lower forms to yield their places to higher is shown by the gradual +advance of organization throughout geological time; for if _all_ the +inferior forms had survived, the earth could not have contained them, +unless she had been continually growing into something like the size of +Jupiter. And if it be asked why any of the inferior forms have survived, +the answer has already been given, as above. + + [45] Syme, on the _Modification of Organisms_, p. 46. + +There is only one other remark to be made in this connexion. Mr. Syme +chooses two cases as illustrations of the supposed difficulty. These are +sufficiently diverse--viz. Foraminifera and Man. Touching the former, +there is nothing that need be added to the general answer just given. +But with regard to the latter it must be observed that the dominion of +natural selection as between different races of mankind is greatly +restricted by the presence of rationality. Competition in the human +species is more concerned with wits and ideas than with nails and teeth; +and therefore the "struggle" between man and man is not so much for +actual _being_, as for _well-being_. Consequently, in regard to the +present objection, the human species furnishes the worst example that +could have been chosen. + + * * * * * + +Hitherto I have been considering objections which arise from +misapprehensions of Darwin's theory. I will now go on to consider a +logically sound objection, which nevertheless is equally futile, +because, although it does not depend on any misapprehension of the +theory, it is not itself supported by fact. + +The objection is the same as that which we have already considered in +relation to the general theory of descent--namely, that similar organs +or structures are to be met with in widely different branches of the +tree of life. Now this would be an objection fatal to the theory of +natural selection, supposing these organs or structures in the cases +compared are not merely analogous, but also homologous. For it would be +incredible that in two totally different lines of descent one and the +same structure should have been built up independently by two parallel +series of variations, and that in these two lines of descent it should +always and independently have ministered to the same function. On the +other hand, there would be nothing against the theory of natural +selection in the fact that two structures, _not_ homologous, should come +by independent variation in two different lines of descent to be adapted +to perform the same function. For it belongs to the very essence of the +theory of natural selection that a useful function should be secured by +favourable variations of whatever structural material may happen to be +presented by different organic types. Flying, for instance, is a very +useful function, and it has been developed independently in at least +four different lines of descent--namely, the insects, reptiles, birds, +and mammals. Now if in all, or indeed in any, of these four cases the +wings had been developed on the same anatomical pattern, so as not only +to present the analogical resemblance which it is necessary that they +should present in order to discharge their common function of flying, +but likewise an homologous or structural resemblance, showing that they +had been formed on the same anatomical "plan,"--if such has been the +case, I say, the theory of natural selection would certainly be +destroyed. + +Now it has been alleged by competent naturalists that there are several +such cases in organic nature. We have already noticed in a previous +chapter (pp. 58, 59), that Mr. Mivart has instanced the eye of the +cuttle-fish as not only analogous to, but also homologous with, the eye +of a true fish--that is to say, the eye of a mollusk with the eye of a +vertebrate. And he has also instanced the remarkable resemblance of a +shrew to a mouse--that is, of an insectivorous mammal to a rodent--not +to mention other cases. In the chapter alluded to these instances of +homology, alleged to occur in different branches of the tree of life, +were considered with reference to the process of organic evolution as a +fact: they are now being considered with reference to the agency of +natural selection as a method. And just as in the former case it was +shown, that if any such alleged instances could be proved, the proof +would be fatal to the general theory of organic evolution by physical +causes, so in the present case, if this could be proved, it would be +equally fatal to the more special theory of natural selection. But, as +we have before seen, no single case of this kind has ever been made +out; and, therefore, not only does this supposed objection fall to the +ground, but in so doing it furnishes an additional argument in favour of +natural selection. For in the earlier chapter just alluded to I showed +that this great and general fact of our nowhere being able to find two +homologous structures in different branches of the tree of life, was the +strongest possible testimony in favour of the theory of evolution. And, +by parity of reasoning, I now adduce it as equally strong evidence of +natural selection having been the cause of _adaptive_ structures, +independently developed in all the different lines of descent. For the +alternative is between adaptations having been caused by natural +selection or by supernatural design. Now, if adaptations were caused by +natural selection, we can very well understand why they should never be +homologous in different lines of descent, even in cases where they have +been brought to be so closely analogous as to have deceived so good a +naturalist as Mr. Mivart. Indeed, as I have already observed, so well +can we understand this, that any single instance to the contrary would +be sufficient to destroy the theory of natural selection _in toto_, +unless the structure be one of a very simple type. But on the other +hand, it is impossible to suggest any rational explanation why, if all +adaptations are due to supernatural design, such scrupulous care should +have been taken never to allow homologous adaptations to occur in +different divisions of the animal or vegetable kingdoms. Why, for +instance, should the eye of a cuttle-fish _not_ have been constructed on +the same ideal pattern as that of vertebrate? Or why, among the +thousands of vertebrated species, should no one of their eyes be +constructed on the ideal pattern that was devised for the cuttle-fish? +Of course it may be answered that perhaps there was some hidden reason +why the design should never have allowed an adaptation which it had +devised for one division of organic nature to appear in another--even in +cases where the new design necessitated the closest possible resemblance +in everything else, save in the matter of anatomical homology. +Undoubtedly such may have been the case--or rather such _must_ have been +the case--if the theory of special design is true. But where the +question is as to the truth of this theory, I think there can be no +doubt that its rival gains an enormous advantage by being able to +_explain_ why the facts are such as they are instead of being obliged to +take refuge in hypothetical possibilities of a confessedly +unsubstantiated and apparently unsubstantial kind. + +Therefore, as far as this objection to the theory of natural selection +is concerned--or the allegation that homologous structures occur in +different divisions of organic nature--not only does it fall to the +ground, but positively becomes itself converted into one of the +strongest arguments in favour of the theory. As soon as the allegation +is found to be baseless, the very fact that it cannot be brought to bear +upon any one of all the millions of adaptive structures in organic +nature becomes a fact of vast significance on the opposite side. + + * * * * * + +The next difficulty to which I shall allude is that of explaining by the +theory of natural selection the preservation of the first beginnings of +structures which are then useless, though afterwards, when more fully +developed, they become useful. For it belongs to the very essence of the +theory of natural selection, that a structure must be supposed already +useful before it can come under the influence of natural selection: +therefore the theory seems incapable of explaining the origin and +conservation of _incipient_ organs, or organs which are not yet +sufficiently developed to be of any service to the organisms presenting +them. + +This objection is one that has been advanced by all the critics of +Darwinism; but has been presented with most ability and force by the +Duke of Argyll. I will therefore state it in his words. + + If the doctrine of evolution be true--that is to say, if all + organic creatures have been developed by ordinary generation from + parents--then it follows of necessity that the primaeval germs must + have contained potentially the whole succeeding series. Moreover, + if that series has been developed gradually and very slowly, it + follows, also as a matter of necessity, that every modification of + structure must have been functionless at first, when it began to + appear.... Things cannot be selected until they have first been + produced. Nor can any structure be selected by utility in the + struggle for existence until it has not only been produced, but has + been so far perfected as to actually be used. + +The Duke proceeds to argue that all adaptive structures must therefore +originally have been due to special design: in the earlier stages of +their development they must all have been what he calls "prophetic +germs." Not yet themselves of any use, and therefore not yet capable of +being improved by natural selection, both in their origin and in the +first stages (at all events) of their development, they must be +regarded as intentionally preparatory to the various uses which they +subsequently acquire. + +Now this argument, forcible as it appears at first sight, is really at +fault both in its premiss and in its conclusion. By which I mean that, +in the first place the premiss is not true, and, in the next place, that +even if it were, the conclusion would not necessarily follow. The +premiss is, "that every modification of structure must have been +functionless at first, when it began to appear;" and the conclusion is, +that, _qua_ functionless, such a modification cannot have been caused by +natural selection. I will consider these two points separately. + +First as to the premiss, it is not true that every modification of +structure must necessarily be functionless when it first begins to +appear. There are two very good reasons why such should not be the case +in all instances, even if it should be the case in some. For, as a +matter of observable fact, a very large proportional number of incipient +organs are useful from the very moment of their inception. Take, for +example, what is perhaps the most wonderful instance of refined +mechanism in nature--the eye of a vertebrated animal. Comparative +anatomy and embryology combine to testify that this organ had its origin +in modifications of the endings of the ordinary nerves of the skin. Now +it is evident that from the very first any modification of a cutaneous +nerve whereby it was rendered able, in however small a degree, to be +differently affected by light and by darkness would be of benefit to the +creature presenting it; for the creature would thus be able to seek the +one and shun the other according to the requirements of its life. And +being thus useful from the very moment of its inception, it would +afterwards be gradually improved as variations of more and more utility +presented themselves, until not only would finer and finer degrees of +difference between light and shade become perceptible, but even the +outlines of solid bodies would begin to be appreciated. And so on, stage +by stage, till from an ordinary nerve-ending in the skin is evolved the +eye of an eagle. + +Moreover, in this particular instance there is very good reason to +suppose that the modification of the cutaneous nerves in question began +by a progressive increase in their sensitiveness to temperature. +Wherever dark pigment happened to be deposited in the skin--and we know +that in all animals it is apt to be deposited in points and patches, as +it were by accident, or without any "prophecy" as to future uses,--the +cutaneous nerves in its vicinity would be better able to appreciate the +difference between sun and shade in respect of temperature, even though +as yet there were no change at all in these cutaneous nerves tending to +make them responsive to light. Now it is easy to see how, from such a +purely accidental beginning, natural selection would have had from the +first sufficient material to act upon. It being of advantage to a lowly +creature that it should distinguish with more and more delicacy, or with +more and more rapidity, between light and darkness by means of its +thermal sensations, the pigment spots in the skin would be rendered +permanent by natural selection, while the nerves in that region would by +the same agency be rendered more and more specialized as organs adapted +to perceive changes of temperature, until from the stage of responding +to the thermal rays of the non-luminous spectrum alone, they become +capable of responding also to luminous. + +So much, then, for the first consideration which serves to invalidate +the Duke's premiss. The second consideration is, that very often an +organ which began by being useful for the performance of one function, +after having been fully developed for the performance of that function, +finds itself, so to speak, accidentally fitted to the performance of +some other and even more important function, which it thereupon begins +to discharge, and so to undergo a new course of adaptive development. In +such cases, and so far as the new function is concerned, the difficulty +touching the first inception of an organ does not apply; for here the +organ has already been built up by natural selection for one purpose, +before it begins to discharge the other. As an example of such a case we +may take the lung of an air-breathing animal. Originally the lung was a +swim-bladder, or float, and as such it was of use to the aquatic +ancestors of terrestrial animals. But as these ancestors gradually +became more and more amphibious in their habits, the swim-bladder began +more and more to discharge the function of a lung, and so to take a +wholly new point of departure as regards its developmental history. But +clearly there is here no difficulty with regard to the inception of its +new function, because the organ was already well developed for one +purpose before it began to serve another. Or, to take only one +additional example, there are few structures in the animal kingdom so +remarkable in respect of adaptation as is the wing of a bird or a bat; +and at first sight it might well appear that a wing could be of no +conceivable use until it had already acquired enormous proportional +dimensions, as well as an immense amount of special elaboration as to +its general form, size of muscle, amount of blood-supply, and so on. +For, obviously, not until it had attained all these things could it even +begin to raise the animal in the air. But observe how fallacious is this +argument. Although it is perfectly true that a wing could be of no use +_as a wing_ until sufficiently developed to serve the purpose of flight, +this is merely to say that until it has become a wing it is no use as a +wing. It does not, however, follow that on this account it was of no +prior use for any other purpose. The first modifications of the +fore-limb which ended in its becoming an organ of flight may very well +have been due to adapting it as an organ for increased rapidity of +locomotion of other kinds--whether on land as in the case of its now +degenerated form in the ostrich, or in water as in the case of the +expanded fins of fish. Indeed, we may see the actual process of +transition from the one function to the other in the case of +"flying-fish." Here the progressive expansion of the pectoral fins must +certainly have been always of use for continuously promoting rapidity of +locomotion through water; and thus natural selection may have +continuously increased their development until they now begin to serve +also as wings for carrying the animal a short distance through air. +Again, in the case of the so-called flying squirrels we find the limbs +united to the body by means of large extensions of the skin, so-that +when jumping from one tree to another the animal is able to sustain +itself through a long distance in the air by merely spreading out its +limbs, and thus allowing the skin-extensions to act after the manner of +a parachute. Here, of course, we have not yet got a wing, any more than +we have in the case of the flying-fish; but we have the foundations laid +for the possible development of a future wing, upon a somewhat similar +plan as that which has been so wonderfully perfected in the case of +bats. And through all the stages of progressive expansion which the skin +of the squirrel has undergone, the expansion has been of use, even +though it has not yet so much as begun to acquire the distinctive +functions of a wing. Here, then, there is obviously nothing "prophetic" +in the matter, any more than there was in the case of the swim-bladder +and the lung, or in that of the nerve-ending and the eye. In short, it +is the business of natural selection to secure the highest available +degree of adaptation for the time being; and, in doing this, it not +unfrequently happens that an extreme development of a structure in one +direction (produced by natural selection for the sake of better and +better adapting the structure to perform some particular function) ends +by beginning to adapt it to the performance of some other function. And, +whenever this happens to be the case, natural selection forthwith begins +to act upon the structure, so to speak, from a new point of departure. + +So much, then, for the Duke's premiss--namely, that "every modification +of structure _must_ have been functionless _at first_, when it began to +appear." This premiss is clearly opposed to observable fact. But now, +the second position is that, even if this were not so, the Duke's +conclusion would not follow. This conclusion, it will be remembered, is, +that if incipient structures are useless, it necessarily follows that +natural selection can have had no part whatever in their inception. Now, +this is a conclusion which does not "necessarily" follow. Even if it be +granted that there are structures which in their first beginnings are +not of any use at all for any purpose, it is still possible that they +may owe their origin to natural selection--not indeed directly, but +indirectly. This possibility arises from the occurrence in nature of a +principle which has been called the Correlation of Growth. + +Mr. Darwin, who has paid more attention to this matter than any other +writer, has shown, in considerable detail, that all the parts of any +given organism are so intimately bound together, or so mutually +dependent upon each other, that when one part is caused to change by +means of natural selection, some other parts are very likely to undergo +modification as a consequence. For example, there are several kinds of +domesticated pigeons and fowls, which grow peculiar wing-like feathers +on the feet. These are quite unlike all the other feathers in the +animal, except those of the wing, to which they bear a very remarkable +resemblance. Mr. Darwin records the case of a bantam where these +wing-like feathers were nine inches in length, and I have myself seen a +pigeon where they reproduced upon the feet a close imitation of the +different kinds of feathers which occupy homologous positions in the +wing--primaries, secondaries, and tertiaries all being distinctly +repeated in their proper anatomical relations. Furthermore, in this +case, as in most cases where such wing-feathers occur upon the feet, the +third and fourth toes were partly united by skin; and, as is well known, +in the wing of a bird the third and fourth digits are completely united +by skin; "so that in feather-footed pigeons, not only does the exterior +surface support a row of long feathers, like wing-feathers [which, as +just stated, may in some cases be obviously differentiated into +primaries, secondaries and tertiaries], but the very same digits which +in the wing are completely united by skin become partially united by +skin in the feet; and thus by the law of correlated variation of +homologous parts, we can understand the curious connexion of feathered +legs and membrane between the two outer toes[46]." The illustration is +drawn from the specimen to which I have referred. + + [46] _Variation of Plants and Animals_, vol. ii. p. 315. + + [Illustration: FIG. 117.--Feather-footed pigeon. Drawn from nature.] + +Many similar instances of the same law are to be met with throughout +organic nature; and it is evident that in this principle we find a +conceivable explanation of the origin of such adaptive structures as +could not have been originated by natural selection acting directly upon +themselves: they may have been originated by natural selection +developing other adaptive structures elsewhere in the organism, the +gradual evolution of which has entailed the production of these by +correlation of growth. And, if so, when once started in this way, these +structures, because thus accidentally useful, will now themselves come +under the _direct_ action of natural selection, and so have their +further evolution determined with or without the correlated association +which first led to their inception. + +Of course it must be understood that in thus applying the principle of +correlated growth, to explain the origin of adaptive structures where it +is impossible to explain such origin by natural selection having from +the first acted directly upon these structures themselves, Darwinists +do not suppose that in all--or even in most--cases of correlated growth +the correlated structures are of use. On the contrary, it is well known +that structures due to correlated growth are, as a rule, useless. Being +only the by-products of adaptive changes going on elsewhere, in any +given case the chances are against these correlated effects being +themselves of any utilitarian significance; and, therefore, as a matter +of fact, correlated growths appear to be usually meaningless from the +point of view of adaptation. Still, on the doctrine of chances, it is +to be expected that sometimes a change of structure which has thus been +indirectly produced by correlation of growth might happen to prove +useful for some purpose or another; and in as many cases as such +indirectly produced structures do prove useful, they will straightway +begin to be improved by the direct action of natural selection. In all +such cases, therefore, we should have an explanation of the _origin_ of +such a structure, which is the only point that we are now considering. + +I think, then, that all this effectually disposes of the doctrine of +"prophetic germs." But, before leaving the subject, I should like to +make one further statement of greater generality than any which I have +hitherto advanced. This statement is, that we must remember how large a +stock of meaningless structures are always being produced in the course +of specific transmutations, not only by correlation of growth, which we +have just been considering, but also by the direct action of external +conditions, together with the constant play of all the many and complex +forces internal to organisms themselves. In other words, important as +the principle of correlation undoubtedly is, we must remember that even +this is very far from being the only principle which is concerned in the +origination of structures that may or may not chance to be useful. +Therefore, it is not only natural selection when operating indirectly +through the correlation of growth that is competent to produce new +structures without reference to utility. In all the complex action and +reaction of internal and external forces, new variations are perpetually +arising without any reference to utility, either present or future. +Among all this multitude of promiscuous variations, the chances must be +that some percentage will prove of some service, either from the first +moment of their appearance, or else after they have undergone some +amount of development. Such development prior to utility may be due, +either to correlation of growth, to the structure having previously +performed some other function, as already explained, or else to a +continued operation of the causes which were concerned in the first +appearance of originally useless characters. In a series of chapters +which will be devoted to the whole question of utility in the next +volume, I shall hope to give very good reasons for concluding that +useless characters are not only of highly frequent occurrence, but are +due to a variety of other causes besides correlation of growth. And, if +so, the possibility of originally useless characters happening in some +cases to become, by increased development, useful characters, is +correspondingly increased. Among a hundred varietal or specific +characters which are directly produced in as many different species by a +change of climate, for example, some five or six may be _potentially_ +useful: that is to say, characters thus adventitiously produced in an +incipient form may only require to be further developed by a continuance +of the same causes as first originated them, in order that some +percentage of the whole number shall become of some degree of use. Those +professed followers of Darwin, therefore, who without any reason--or, as +it appears to me, against all reason--deny the possibility of useless +specific characters in any case or in any degree (unless correlated with +useful characters), are playing into the hands of Darwin's critics by +indirectly countenancing the difficulty which we are now considering. +For, if correlation of growth is unreasonably supposed to be the only +possible cause of the origin of incipient structures which are not +useful from the first moment of their inception, clearly the field is +greatly narrowed as regards the occurrence of incipient characters +sufficient in amount--and, still more, in constancy of appearance and +persistency of transmission--to admit of furnishing material for the +working of natural selection. But in the measure that incipient +characters--whether varietal or specific--are recognised as not always +or "necessarily" useful from the moment of their inception, and yet +capable of being developed to a certain extent by the causes which first +led to their occurrence, in that measure is this line of criticism +closed. For of all the variations which thus occur, it is only those +which afterwards prove of any use that are laid hold upon and wrought up +by natural selection into adaptive structures, or working organs. And, +therefore, what we see in organic nature is the net outcome of the +development of all the happy chances. So it comes that the appearance +presented by organic nature as a whole is that of a continual fulfilment +of structural prophecies, when, in point of fact, if we had a similar +record of all the other variations it would be seen that possibly not +one such prophecy in a thousand is ever destined to be fulfilled. + + * * * * * + +Here, then, I feel justified in finally taking leave of the difficulty +from the uselessness of incipient organs, as this difficulty has been +presented, in varying degrees of emphasis, by the Duke of Argyll, Mr. +Mivart, Professors Naegeli, Bronn, Broca, Eimer, and, indeed, by all +other writers who have hitherto advanced it. For, as thus presented, I +think I have shown that it admits of being adequately met. But now, I +must confess, to me individually it does appear that behind this +erroneous presentation of the difficulty there lies another question, +which is deserving of much more serious attention. For although it +admits of being easily shown--as I have just shown--that the difficulty +as ordinarily presented fails on account of its extravagance, the +question remains whether, if stated with more moderation, a real +difficulty might not be found to remain. + +My quarrel with the conclusion, like my quarrel with the premiss, is due +to its universality. By saying in the premiss that _all_ incipient +organs are _necessarily_ useless at the time of their inception, these +writers admit of being controverted by fact; and by saying in the +conclusion that, _if_ all incipient organs are useless, it necessarily +follows that in _no_ case can natural selection have been the cause of +building up an organ until it becomes useful, they admit of being +controverted by logic. For, even if the premiss were true in +fact--namely, that all incipient organs are useless at the time of their +inception,--it would not necessarily follow that in no case could +natural selection build up a useless structure into a useful one; +because, although it is true that in no case can natural selection do +this by acting on a useless structure _directly_, it may do so by acting +on the useless structure _indirectly_, through its direct action on some +other part of the organism with which the useless structure happens to +be correlated. Moreover, as I believe, and will subsequently endeavour +to prove, there is abundant evidence to show that incipient characters +are often developed to a large extent by causes other than natural +selection (or apart from any reference to utility), with the result that +some of them thus happen to become of use, when, of course, the supposed +difficulty is at an end. + +But although it is thus easy to dispose of both the propositions in +question, on account of their universality, stated more carefully they +would require, as I have said, more careful consideration. Thus, if it +had been said that some incipient organs are _presumably_ useless at the +time of their inception, and that in _some of these cases_ it is +difficult, or impossible, to conceive how the principle of correlation, +or any other principle hitherto suggested, can apply--then the question +would have been raised from the sphere of logical discussion to that of +biological fact. And the new question thus raised would have to be +debated, no longer on the ground of general or abstract principles, but +on that of special or concrete cases. Now until within the last year or +two it has not been easy to find such a special or concrete case--that +is to say, a case which can be pointed to as apparently excluding the +possibility of natural selection having had anything to do with the +genesis of an unquestionably adaptive structure. But eventually such a +case has arisen, and the Duke of Argyll has not been slow in perceiving +its importance. This case is the electric organ in the tail of the +skate. No sooner had Professor Cossar Ewart published an abstract of his +first paper on this subject, than the Duke seized upon it as a case for +which, as he said, he had long been waiting--namely, the case of an +_adaptive_ organ the genesis of which _could not possibly_ be attributed +to natural selection, and must therefore be attributed to supernatural +design. Now, I do not deny that he is here in possession of an admirable +case--a case, indeed, so admirable that it almost seems to have been +specially designed for the discomfiture of Darwinians. Therefore, in +order to do it full justice, I will show that it is even more formidable +than the Duke of Argyll has represented. + +Electric organs are known to occur in several widely different kinds of +fish--such as the _Gymnotus_ and _Torpedo_. Wherever these organs do +occur, they perform the function of electric batteries in storing and +discharging electricity in the form of more or less powerful shocks. +Here, then, we have a function which is of obvious use to the fish for +purposes both of offence and defence. These organs are everywhere +composed of a transformation of muscular, together with an enormous +development of nervous tissue; but inasmuch as they occupy different +positions, and are also in other respects dissimilar in the different +zoological groups of fishes where they occur, no difficulty can be +alleged as to these analogous organs being likewise homologous in +different divisions of the aquatic vertebrata. + +Now, in the particular case of the skate, the organ is situated in the +tail, where it is of a spindle-like form, measuring, in a large fish, +about two feet in length by about an inch in diameter at the middle of +the spindle. Although its structure is throughout as complex and perfect +as that of the electric organ in _Gymnotus_ or _Torpedo_, its smaller +size does not admit of its generating a sufficient amount of +electricity to yield a discharge that can be felt by the hand. +Nevertheless, that it does discharge under suitable stimulation has been +proved by Professor Burdon Sanderson by means of a telephone; for he +found that every time he stimulated the animal its electrical discharge +was rendered audible by the telephone. Here, then, the difficulty +arises. For of what conceivable use is such an organ to its possessor? +We can scarcely suppose that any aquatic animal is more sensitive to +electric shocks than is the human hand; and even if such were the case, +a discharge of so feeble a kind taking place in water would be +short-circuited in the immediate vicinity of the skate itself. So there +can be no doubt that such weak discharges as the skate is able to +deliver must be wholly imperceptible alike to prey and to enemies. Yet +for the delivery of such discharges there is provided an organ of such +high peculiarity and huge complexity, that, regarded as a piece of +living mechanism, it deserves to rank as at once the most extremely +specialized and the most highly elaborated structure in the whole animal +kingdom. Thousands of separately formed elements are ranged in row after +row, all electrically insulated one from another, and packed away into +the smallest possible space, with the obvious end, or purpose, of +conspiring together for the simultaneous delivery of an electric shock. +Nevertheless, the shock when delivered is, as we have just seen, too +slight to be of any conceivable use to the skate. Therefore it appears +impossible to suggest how this astonishing structure--much more +astonishing, in my opinion, than the human eye or the human hand--can +ever have been begun, or afterwards developed, by means of natural +selection. For if it be not even yet of any conceivable use to its +possessor, clearly thus far survival of the fittest can have had nothing +to do with its formation. On the other hand, seeing that electric organs +when of larger size, as in the _Gymnotus_ and _Torpedo_, are of obvious +use to their possessors, the facts of the case, so far as the skate is +concerned, assuredly do appear to sanction the doctrine of "prophetic +germs." The organ in the skate seems to be on its way towards becoming +such an organ as we meet with in these other animals; and, therefore, +unless we can show that it is now, and in all previous stages of its +evolution has throughout been, of use to the skate, the facts do present +a serious difficulty to the theory of natural selection, while they +readily lend themselves to the interpretation of a disposing or +fore-ordaining mind, which knows how to construct an electric battery by +thus transforming muscular tissue into electric tissue, and is now +actually in process of constructing such an apparatus for the +prospective benefit of future creatures. + +Should it be suggested that possibly the electric organ of the skate may +be in process of degeneration, and therefore that it is now the +practically functionless remnant of an organ which in the ancestors of +the skate was of larger size and functional use--against so obvious a +suggestion there lie the whole results of Professor Ewart's +investigations, which go to indicate that the organ is here not in a +stage of degeneration, but of evolution. For instance, in _Raia +radiata_, it does not begin to be formed out of the muscular tissue +until some time after the animal has left the egg-capsule, and assumed +all the normal proportions (though not yet the size) of the adult +creature. The organ, therefore, is one of the very latest to appear in +the ontogeny of _R. radiata_; and, moreover, it does not attain its full +_development_ (i. e. not merely _growth_, but transforming of muscular +fibres into electrical elements) till the fish attains maturity. Read in +the light of embryology, these facts prove, (1) that the electric organ +of _R. radiata_ must be one of the very latest products of the +animal's phylogeny; and, (2) that as yet, at all events, it has not +begun to degenerate. But, if not, it must either be at a stand-still, or +it must be in course of further evolution; and, whichever of these +alternatives we adopt, the difficulty of accounting for its present +condition remains. In this connexion also it is worth while to remark +that the electric organ, even after it has attained its full +_development_, continues its _growth_ with the growth of the fish, and +this in a much higher ratio, either than the tail alone, or the whole +animal. Lastly, Prof. Burdon Sanderson finds that _section for section_ +the organ in the skate is as efficient as it is in _Torpedo_. It is +evident that these facts also point to the skate's organ being in course +of phylogenetic evolution. + + [Illustration: Fig. 118.--_Raia radiata_, representing the life size + of the youngest individual in which muscle fibres have been found + developing into electric cells]. + + [Illustration: Fig. 119.--Electric organ of the skate. The left-hand + drawing (i) represents the entire organ (natural size) of a + full-grown _r. radiata_. This is a small skate, which rarely exceeds + 50 centms. in length; but in the large _r. batis_, the organ may + exceed two feet in length. The other drawings represent single + muscle-fibres in successive stages of transition. In the first of + the series (ii) the motor plate, and the nerves connected with it, + have already been considerably enlarged. In the other three + specimens, the fibre becomes more and more club-like, and eventually + cup-like. These changes of shape are expressive of great changes of + structure, as may be seen in the last of the series (v), where the + shallow cup is seen in partial section. The electric plate lines the + concavity of the cup, and is richly supplied with nerves (only a few + of which are represented in the last drawing); the thick walls of + the cup are composed of muscular fibres, the striation of which is + distinctly visible.] + + [Illustration: Fig. 120.--Electric cells of _raia radiata_. The + drawing on the left represents one of the clubs magnified, as in the + preceding wood-cut. The drawing on the right represents a number of + these clubs, less highly magnified, _in situ_.] + +Again, it cannot be answered that the principle of correlation may be +drawn upon in mitigation of the difficulty. The structure of the +electric organ is far too elaborate, far too specialized, and far too +obviously directed to a particular end, to admit of our conceivably +supposing it due to any accidental correlation with structural changes +going on elsewhere. Even as regards the initial changes of +muscle-elements into electrical-elements, I do not think the principle +of correlation can be reasonably adduced by way of explanation; for, as +shown in the illustrations, even this initial change is most +extraordinarily peculiar, elaborate, and specialized. But, be this as it +may, I am perfectly certain that the principle of correlation cannot +possibly be adduced to explain the subsequent _association of these +electrical elements into an electric battery_, actuated by a special +nervous mechanism of enormous size and elaboration--unless of course, +the progress of such a structure were assumed to have been throughout of +some utility. Under this supposition, however, the principle of +correlation would be forsaken in favour of that of natural selection; +and we should again be in the presence of the same difficulty as that +with which we started. + +But now, and further, if we do thus abandon correlation in favour of +natural selection, and therefore if for the sake of saving an hypothesis +we assume that the organ as it now stands _must_ be of some use to the +existing skate, we should still have to face the question--Of what +conceivable use can those initial stages of its formation have been, +when first the muscle-elements began to be changed into the very +different electrical-elements, and when therefore they became useless as +muscles while not yet capable of performing even so much of the +electrical function as they now perform? + +Lastly, we must remember that not only have we here the most highly +specialized, the most complex, and altogether the most elaboratively +adaptive organ in the animal kingdom; but also that in the formation of +this structure there has been needed an altogether unparalleled +expenditure of the most physiologically expensive of all +materials--namely, nervous tissue. Whether estimated by volume or by +weight, the quantity of nervous tissue which is consumed in the electric +organ of the skate is in excess of all the rest of the nervous system +put together. It is needless to say that nowhere else in the animal +kingdom--except, of course, in other electric fishes--is there any +approach to so enormous a development of nervous tissue for the +discharge of a special function. Therefore, as nervous tissue is, +physiologically speaking, the most valuable of all materials, we are +forced to conclude that natural selection ought strongly to have +_opposed_ the evolution of such organs, unless from the first moment of +their inception, and throughout the whole course of their development, +they were of some such paramount importance as biologically to justify +so unexampled an expenditure. Yet this paramount importance does not +admit of being so much as surmised, even where the organ has already +attained the size and degree of elaboration which it presents in the +skate. + +In view of all these considerations taken together, I freely confess +that the difficulty presented by this case appears to me of a magnitude +and importance altogether unequalled by that of any other single +case--or any series of cases--which has hitherto been encountered by the +theory of natural selection. So that, if there were many other cases of +the like kind to be met with in nature, I should myself at once allow +that the theory of natural selection would have to be discarded. But +inasmuch as this particular case stands so far entirely by itself, and +therefore out of analogy with thousands, or even millions, of other +cases throughout the whole range of organic nature, I am constrained to +feel it more probable that the electric organ of the skate will some day +admit of being marshalled under the general law of natural selection--in +just the same way as proved to be the case with the conspicuous +colouring of those caterpillars, which, as explained in the last +chapter, at one time seemed to constitute a serious difficulty to the +theory, and yet, through a better knowledge of all the relations +involved, has now come to constitute one of the strongest witnesses in +its favour. + + * * * * * + +I have now stated all the objections of any importance which have +hitherto been brought against the theory of natural selection, excepting +three, which I left to be dealt with together because they form a +logically connected group. With a brief consideration of these, +therefore, I will bring this chapter to a close. + +The three objections to which I allude are, (1) that a large +proportional number of specific, as well as of higher taxonomic +characters, are seemingly useless characters, and therefore do not lend +themselves to explanation by the Darwinian theory; (2) that the most +general of all specific characters--viz. cross-infertility between +allied species--cannot possibly be due to natural selection, as is +demonstrated by Darwin himself; (3) that the swamping effects of free +intercrossing must always render impossible by natural selection alone +any evolution of species in divergent (as distinguished from serial) +lines of change. + +These three objections have been urged from time to time by not a few of +the most eminent botanists and zoologists of our century; and from one +point of view I cannot myself have the smallest doubt that the +objections thus advanced are not only valid in themselves, but also by +far the most formidable objections which the theory of natural selection +has encountered. From another point of view, however, I am equally +convinced that they all admit of absolute annihilation. This strong +antithesis arises, as I have said, from differences of standpoint, or +from differences in the view which we take of the theory of natural +selection itself. If we understand this theory to set forth natural +selection as the sole cause of organic evolution, then all the above +objections to the theory are not merely, as already stated, valid and +formidable, but as I will now add, logically insurmountable. On the +other hand, if we take theory to consist merely in setting forth natural +selection as a factor of organic evolution, even although we believe it +to have been the chief factor or principal cause, all the three +objections in question necessarily vanish. For in this case, even if it +be satisfactorily proved that the theory of natural selection is unable +to explain the three classes of facts above mentioned, the theory is not +thereby affected: facts of each and all of these classes may be +consistently left by the theory to be explained by causes other than +natural selection--whether these be so far capable or incapable of +hypothetical formulation. Thus it is evident that whether the three +objections above named are to be regarded as logically insurmountable by +the theory, or as logically non-existent in respect to it, depends +simply upon the manner in which the theory itself is stated. + +In the next volume a great deal more will have to be said upon these +matters--especially with regard to the causes other than natural +selection which in my opinion are capable of explaining these so-called +"difficulties." In the present connexion, however, all I have attempted +to show is, that, whatever may be thought touching the supplementary +theories whereby I shall endeavour to explain the facts of inutility, +cross-sterility, and non-occurrence of free intercrossing, no one of +these facts is entitled to rank as an objection against the theory of +natural selection, unless we understand this theory to claim an +exclusive prerogative in the field of organic evolution. This, as we +have previously seen, is what Mr. Wallace does claim for it; while on +the other hand, Mr. Darwin expressly--and even vehemently--repudiates +the claim: from which it follows that all the three main objections +against the theory of natural selection are objections which vitally +affect the theory only as it has been stated and upheld by Wallace. As +the theory has been stated and upheld by Darwin, all these objections +are irrelevant. This is a fact which I had not myself perceived at the +time when I mentioned these objections in a paper entitled +_Physiological Selection_, which was published in 1886. The discussions +to which that paper gave rise, however, led me to consider these matters +more closely; and further study of Darwin's writings, with these matters +specially in view, has led me to see that none of the objections in +question are relevant to his theory, as distinguished from that of Mr. +Wallace. This, I acknowledge, I ought to have perceived before I +published the paper just alluded to; but in those days I had had no +occasion to follow out the differences between Darwin and Wallace to all +their consequences, and therefore adopted the prevalent view that their +theories of evolution were virtually identical. Now, however, I have +endeavoured to make it clear that the points wherein they differ involve +the important consequences above set forth. All these the most +formidable objections against the theory of natural selection arise +simply and solely from what I conceive to be the erroneous manner in +which the theory has been presented by Darwin's distinguished colleague. + + * * * * * + +I have now considered, as impartially as I can, all the main criticisms +and objections which have been brought against the theory of natural +selection; and the result is to show that, neither singly nor +collectively, are they entitled to much weight. On the other hand, as +we have seen in the preceding chapter, there is a vast accumulation of +evidence in favour of the theory. Hence, it is no wonder that the theory +has now been accepted by all naturalists, with scarcely any one notable +exception, as at any rate the best working hypothesis which has ever +been propounded whereby to explain the facts of organic evolution. +Moreover, in the opinion of those most competent to judge, the theory is +entitled to be regarded as something very much more than a working +hypothesis: it is held to be virtually a completed induction, or, in +other words, the proved exhibition of a general law, whereby the +causation of organic evolution admits of being in large part--if not +altogether--explained. + +Now, whether or not we subscribe to this latter conclusion ought, I +think, to depend upon what we mean by an explanation in the case which +is before us. If we mean only that, given the large class of known facts +and unknown causes which are conveniently summarized under the terms +Heredity and Variability, then the further facts of Struggle and +Survival serve, in some considerable degree or another, to account for +the phenomena of adaptive evolution, I cannot see any room to question +that the evidence is sufficient to prove the statement. But it is clear +that by taking for granted these great facts of Heredity and +Variability, we have assumed the larger part of the problem as a whole. +Or, more correctly, by thus generalizing, in a merely verbal form, all +the unknown causes which are concerned in these two great factors of the +process in question, we are not so much as attempting to explain the +precedent causation which serves as a condition to the process. Much +more than half the battle would already have been won, had Darwin's +predecessors been able to explain the causes of Heredity and Variation; +hence it is but a very partial victory which we have hitherto gained in +our recent discovery of the effects of Struggle and Survival. + +Yet partial though it be in relation to the whole battle, in itself, or +considered absolutely, there can be no reasonable doubt that it +constitutes the greatest single victory which has ever been gained by +the science of Biology. For this very reason, however, it behoves us to +consider all the more carefully the extent to which it goes. But my +discussion of this matter must be relegated to the next volume, where I +hope to give abundant proof of the soundness of Darwin's judgment as +conveyed in the words:--"I am convinced that natural selection has been +the main, but not the exclusive, means of modification." + + + + +CHAPTER X. + +THE THEORY OF SEXUAL SELECTION, AND CONCLUDING REMARKS. + + +Although the explanatory value of the Darwinian theory of natural +selection is, as we have now seen, incalculably great, it nevertheless +does not meet those phenomena of organic nature which perhaps more than +any other attract the general attention, as well as the general +admiration, of mankind: I mean all that class of phenomena which go to +constitute the Beautiful. Whatever value beauty as such may have, it +clearly has not a life-preserving value. The gorgeous plumage of a +peacock, for instance, is of no advantage to the peacock in his struggle +for life, and therefore cannot be attributed to the agency of natural +selection. Now this fact of beauty in organic structures is a fact of +wide generality--almost as wide, indeed, as is the fact of their +utility. Mr. Darwin, therefore, suggested another hypothesis whereby to +render a scientific explanation of this fact. Just as by his theory of +natural selection he sought to explain the major fact of utility, so did +he endeavour to explain the minor fact of beauty by a theory of what he +termed Sexual Selection. + +It is a matter of observation that the higher animals do not pair +indiscriminately; but that the members of either sex prefer those +individuals of the opposite sex which are to them most attractive. It is +important to understand _in limine_ that nobody has ever attempted to +challenge this statement. In other words, it is an unquestionable fact +that among many of the higher animals there literally and habitually +occurs a _sexual selection_; and this fact is not a matter of inference, +but, as I have said, a matter of observation. The inference only begins +where, from this observable fact, it is argued,--1st, that the sexual +selection has reference to an aesthetic taste on the part of the animals +themselves; and 2nd, that, supposing the selection to be determined by +such a taste, the cause thus given is adequate to explain the phenomena +of beauty which are presented by these animals. I will consider these +two points separately. + +From the evidence which Darwin has collected, it appears to me +impossible to doubt that an aesthetic sense is displayed by many birds, +and not a few mammals. This of course does not necessarily imply that +the _standards_ of such a sense are the same as our own; nor does it +necessarily imply that there is any constant relation between such a +sense and high levels of intelligence in other respects. In point of +fact, such is certainly not the case, because the best evidence that we +have of an aesthetic sense in animals is derived from birds, and not from +mammals. The most cogent cases to quote in this connexion are those of +the numerous species of birds which habitually adorn their nests with +gaily coloured feathers, wool, cotton, or any other gaudy materials +which they may find lying about the woods and fields. In many cases a +marked preference is shown for particular objects--as, for instance, in +the case of the Syrian nut-hatch, which chooses the iridescent wings of +insects, or that of the great crested fly-catcher, which similarly +chooses the cast-off skins of snakes. But no doubt the most remarkable +of these cases is that of the baya-bird of Asia, which after having +completed its bottle-shaped and chambered nest[47], studs it over with +small lumps of clay, both inside and out, upon which the cock-bird +sticks fire-flies, apparently for the sole purpose of securing a +brilliantly decorative effect. Other birds, such as the hammer-head of +Africa, adorn the surroundings of their nests (which are built upon the +ground) with shells, bones, pieces of broken glass and earthenware, or +any objects of a bright and conspicuous character which they may happen +to find. The most consummate artists in this respect are, however, the +bower-birds; for the species of this family construct elaborate +play-houses in the form of arched tunnels, built of twigs upon the +ground. Through and around such a tunnel they chase one another; and it +is always observable that not only is the floor paved with a great +collection of shells, bones, coloured stones, and any other brilliant +objects which they are able to carry in their beaks, but also that the +walls are decorated with the most gaudy articles which the birds can +find. There is one genus, in Papua, which even goes so far as to provide +the theatre with a surrounding garden. A level piece of ground is +selected as a site for the building. The latter is about two feet high, +and constructed round the growing stalk of a shrub, which therefore +serves as a central pillar to which the frame-work of the roof is +attached. Twigs are woven into this frame-work until the whole is +rendered rain-proof. The tent thus erected is about nine feet in +circumference at its base, and presents a large arch as an entrance. The +central pillar is banked up with moss at its base, and a gallery is +built round the interior of the edifice. This gallery is decorated with +flowers, fruits, fungi, &c. These are also spread over the garden, which +covers about the same area as the play-house. The flowers are said to +be removed when they fade, while fresh ones are gathered to supply their +places. Thus the garden is always kept bright with flowers, as well as +with the brilliant green of mosses, which are collected and distributed +in patches, resembling tiny lawns. + + [47] The chambers are three in number. The two upper ones are + occupied respectively by the male and the sitting female. The lower + one serves as a general living room when the young are hatched. + + [Illustration: FIG. 121.--The Garden Bower-bird (_Amblyornis + inornata_). Reduced from _Gould's Birds of New Guinea_ to 1/4 nat. + size.] + +Now these sundry cases alone seem to prove a high degree of the aesthetic +sense as occurring among birds; for, it is needless to say, none of the +facts just mentioned can be due to natural selection, seeing that they +have no reference to utility, or the preservation of life. But if an +aesthetic sense occurs in birds, we should expect, on _a priori_ grounds, +that it would probably be exercised with reference to the personal +appearance of the sexes. And this expectation is fully realized. For it +is an observable fact that in most species of birds where the males are +remarkable for the brilliancy of their plumage, not only is this +brilliancy most remarkable during the pairing season, but at this season +also the male birds take elaborate pains to display their charms before +the females. Then it is that the peacock erects his tail to strut round +and round the hens, taking care always to present to them a front view, +where the coloration is most gorgeous. And the same is true of all other +gaily coloured male birds. During the pairing season they actively +compete with one another in exhibiting their attractiveness to the +females; and in many cases there are added all sorts of extraordinary +antics in the way of dancings and crowings. Again, in the case of all +song-birds, the object of the singing is to please the females; and for +this purpose the males rival one another to the best of their musical +ability. + +Thus there can be no question that the courtship of birds is a highly +elaborate business, in which the males do their best to surpass one +another in charming the females. Obviously the inference is that the +males do not take all this trouble for nothing; but that the females +give their consent to pair with the males whose personal appearance, or +whose voice, proves to be the most attractive. But, if so, the young of +the male bird who is thus _selected_ will inherit his superior beauty; +and thus, in successive generations, a continuous advance will be made +in the beauty of plumage or of song, as the case may be,--both the +origin and development of beauty in the animal world being thus supposed +due to the aesthetic taste of animals themselves. + +Such is the theory of sexual selection in its main outlines; and with +regard to it we must begin by noting two things which are of most +importance. In the first place, it is a theory wholly and completely +distinct from the theory of natural selection; so that any truth or +error in the one does not in the least affect the other. The second +point is, that there is not so great a wealth of evidence in favour of +sexual selection as there is in favour of natural selection; and, +therefore, that while all naturalists nowadays accept natural selection +as _a_ (whether or not _the_) cause of adaptive, useful, or +life-preserving structures, there is no such universal--but only a very +general--agreement with reference to sexual selection as a cause of +decorative, beautiful, or life-embellishing structures. Nevertheless, +the evidence in favour of sexual selection is both large in amount and +massive in weight. + +Our consideration of this evidence will bring us to the second division +of our subject, as previously marked out for discussion--namely, +granting that an aesthetic sense occurs in certain large divisions of the +animal kingdom, what is the proof that such a sense is a cause of the +beauty which is presented by the animals in question? + +Before proceeding to state this proof, however, it is desirable to +observe that under the theory of sexual selection Darwin has included +two essentially different classes of facts. For besides the large class +of facts to which I have thus far been alluding,--i. e. the cases where +two sexes of the same species differ from one another in respect of +ornamentation,--there is another class of facts equally important, +namely, the cases where the two sexes of the same species differ from +one another in respect of size, strength, and the possession of natural +weapons, such as spurs, horns, &c. In most of these cases it is the +males which are thus superiorly endowed; and it is a matter of +observation that in all cases where they are so endowed they use their +superior strength and natural weapons for fighting together, in order to +secure possession of the females. Hence results what Mr. Darwin has +called the Law of Battle between males of the same species; and this law +of battle he includes under his theory of sexual selection. But it is +evident that the principle which is operative in the law of battle +differs from the principle which is concerned in the form of sexual +selection that has to do with embellishment, and consequent charm. The +law of battle, in fact, more nearly approaches the law of natural +selection; seeing that it expresses the natural advantages of brute +force in the struggling of rival animals, and so frequently results in +_death of the less fitted_, as distinguished from a mere failure to +propagate. Now against this doctrine of the law of battle, and the +consequences to which it leads in the superior fighting powers of male +animals, no objection has been raised in any quarter. It is only with +regard to the other aspect of the theory of sexual selection--or that +which is concerned with the superior embellishment of male animals--that +any difference of opinion obtains. I will now proceed to give the main +arguments on both sides of this question, beginning with a _resume_ of +the evidences in favour of sexual selection. + +In the first place, the fact that secondary sexual characters of the +embellishing kind are so generally restricted to the male sex in itself +seems to constitute very cogent proof that, in some way or another, such +characters are connected with the part which is played by the male in +the act of propagation. Moreover, secondary sexual characters of this +kind are of quite as general occurrence as are those of the other kind +which have to do with rivalry in battle; and the former are usually of +the more elaborate description. Therefore, as there is no doubt that +secondary sexual characters of the one order have an immediate purpose +to serve in the act of propagation, we are by this close analogy +confirmed in our surmise that secondary sexual characters of the other, +and still more elaborate, order are likewise so concerned. Moreover, +this view of their meaning becomes still further strengthened when we +take into consideration the following facts. Namely, (_a_) secondary +sexual characters of the embellishing kind are, as a rule, developed +only at maturity; and most frequently during only a part of the year, +which is invariably the breeding season: (_b_) they are always more or +less seriously affected by emasculation: (_c_) they are always, and +only, displayed in perfection during the act of courtship: (_d_) then, +however, they are displayed with the most elaborate pains; yet always, +and only, before the females: (_e_) they appear, at all events in many +cases, to have the effect of charming the females into a performance of +the sexual act; while it is certain that in many cases, both among +quadrupeds and birds, individuals of the one sex are capable of feeling +a strong antipathy against, or a strong preference for, certain +individuals of the opposite sex. + +Such are the main lines of evidence in favour of the theory of sexual +selection. And although it is enough that some of them should be merely +stated as above in order that their immense significance should become +apparent, in the case of others a bare statement is not sufficient for +this purpose. More especially is this the case as regards the enormous +profusion, variety, and elaboration of sexually-embellishing characters +which occur in birds and mammals--not to mention several divisions of +Arthropoda; together with the extraordinary amount of trouble which, in +a no less extraordinary number of different ways, is taken by the male +animals to display their embellishments before the females. And even in +many cases where to our eyes there is no particular embellishment to +display, the process of courtship consists in such an elaborate +performance of dancings, struttings, and attitudinizings that it is +scarcely possible to doubt their object is to incite the opposite sex. +Here, for instance, is a series of drawings illustrating the courtship +of spiders. I choose this case as an example, partly because it is the +one which has been published most recently, and partly because it is of +particular interest as occurring so low down in the zoological scale. I +am indebted to the kindness of Mr. and Mrs. Peckham for permission to +reproduce these few selected drawings from their very admirable work, +which is published by the Natural History Society of Wisconsin, U.S. It +is evident at a glance that all these elaborate, and to our eyes +ludicrous, performances are more suggestive of incitation than of any +other imaginable purpose. And this view of the matter is strongly +corroborated by the fact that it is the most brightly coloured parts of +the male spiders which are most obtruded upon the notice of the female +by these peculiar attitudes--in just the same way as is invariably the +case in the analogous phenomena of courtship among birds, insects, &c. + + [Illustration: FIG. 122.--Courtship of Spiders. A few examples of + some of the attitudes adopted by different species of males when + approaching their females. (After Peckham.)] + + [Illustration: FIG. 123.--Courtship of Spiders. Continued from Fig. + 122, similarly showing some of the attitudes of approach adopted by + males of yet other different species. (After Peckham.)] + +But so great is the mass of material which Darwin has collected in proof +of all the points mentioned in the foregoing paragraph, that to attempt +anything in the way of an epitome would really be to damage its +evidential force. Therefore I deem it best simply to refer to it as it +stands in his _Descent of Man_, concluding, as he concludes,--"This +surprising uniformity in the laws regulating the differences between the +sexes in so many and such widely separated classes is intelligible if we +admit the action throughout all the higher divisions of the animal +kingdom of one common cause, namely, sexual selection"; while, as he +might well have added, it is difficult to imagine that all the large +classes of facts which an admission of this common cause serves to +explain, can ever admit of being rendered intelligible by any other +theory. + +We may next proceed to consider the objections which have been brought +against the theory of sexual selection. And this is virtually the same +thing as saying that we may now consider Mr. Wallace's views upon the +subject. + +Reserving for subsequent consideration the most general of these +objections--namely, that at best the theory can only apply to the more +intelligent animals, and so must necessarily fail to explain the +phenomena of beauty in the less intelligent, or in the non-intelligent, +as well as in all species of plants--we may take _seriatim_ the other +objections which, in the opinion of Mr. Wallace, are sufficient to +dispose of the theory even as regards the higher animals. + +In the first place, he argues that the principal cause of the greater +brilliancy of male animals in general, and of male birds in particular, +is that they do not so much stand in need of protection arising from +concealment as is the case with their respective females. Consequently +natural selection is not so active in repressing brilliancy of colour in +the males, or, which amounts to the same thing, is more active in +"repressing in the female those bright colours which are normally +produced in both sexes by general laws." + +Next, he argues that not only does natural selection thus exercise a +negative influence in passively permitting more heightened colour to +appear in the males, but even exercises a positive influence in actively +promoting its development in the males, while, at the same time, +actively repressing its appearance in the females. For heightened +colour, he says, is correlated with health and vigour; and as there can +be no doubt that healthy and vigorous birds best provide for their +young, natural selection, by always placing its premium on health and +vigour in the males, thus also incidentally promotes, through correlated +growth, their superior coloration. + +Again, with regard to the display which is practised by male birds, and +which constitutes the strongest of all Mr. Darwin's arguments in favour +of sexual selection, Mr. Wallace points out that there is no evidence of +the females being in any way affected thereby. On the other hand, he +argues that this display may be due merely to general excitement; and he +lays stress upon the more special fact that moveable feathers are +habitually erected under the influence of anger and rivalry, in order to +make the bird look more formidable in the eyes of antagonists. + +Furthermore, he adduces the consideration that, even if the females are +in any way affected by colour and its display on the part of the males, +and if, therefore, sexual selection be conceded a true principle in +theory, still we must remember that, as a matter of fact, it can only +operate in so far as it is allowed to operate by natural selection. Now, +according to Mr. Wallace, natural selection must wholly neutralize any +such supposed influence of sexual selection. For, unless the survivors +in the general struggle for existence happen to be those which are also +the most highly ornamented, natural selection must neutralize and +destroy any influence that may be exerted by female selection. But +obviously the chances against the otherwise best fitted males happening +to be likewise the most highly ornamented must be many to one, unless, +as Wallace supposes, there is some correlation between embellishment and +general perfection, in which case, as he points out, the theory of +sexual selection lapses altogether, and becomes but a special case of +natural selection. + +Once more, Mr. Wallace argues that the evidence collected by Mr. Darwin +himself proves that each bird finds a mate under any circumstances--a +general fact which in itself must quite neutralize any effect of sexual +selection of colour or ornament, since the less highly coloured birds +would be at no disadvantage as regards the leaving of healthy progeny. + +Lastly, he urges the high improbability that through thousands of +generations all the females of any particular species--possibly spread +over an enormous area--should uniformly and always have displayed +exactly the same taste with respect to every detail of colour to be +presented by the males. + +Now, without any question, we have here a most powerful array of +objections against the theory of sexual selection. Each of them is ably +developed by Mr. Wallace himself in his work on _Tropical Nature_; and +although I have here space only to state them in the most abbreviated of +possible forms, I think it will be apparent how formidable these +objections appear. Unfortunately the work in which they are mainly +presented was published several years after the second edition of the +_Descent of Man_, so that Mr. Darwin never had a suitable opportunity of +replying. But, if he had had such an opportunity, as far as I can judge +it seems that his reply would have been more or less as follows. + +In the first place, Mr. Wallace fails to distinguish between brilliancy +and ornamentation--or between colour as merely "heightened," and as +distinctively decorative. Yet there is obviously the greatest possible +difference between these two things. We may readily enough admit that a +mere heightening of already existing coloration is likely enough--at all +events in many cases--to accompany a general increase of vigour, and +therefore that natural selection, by promoting the latter, may also +incidentally promote the former, in cases where brilliancy is not a +source of danger. But clearly this is a widely different thing from +showing that not only a _general brilliancy of colour_, but also _the +particular disposition of colours_, in the form of ornamental patterns, +can thus be accounted for by natural selection. Indeed, it is expressly +in order to account for the occurrence of such ornamental patterns that +Mr. Darwin constructed his theory of sexual selection; and therefore, by +thus virtually ignoring the only facts which that theory endeavours to +explain, Mr. Wallace is not really criticizing the theory at all. By +representing that the theory has to do only with brilliancy of colour, +as distinguished from disposition of colours, he is going off upon a +false issue which has never really been raised[48]. Look, for example, +at a peacock's tail. No doubt it is sufficiently brilliant; but far more +remarkable than its brilliancy is its elaborate pattern on the one hand, +and its enormous size on the other. There is no conceivable reason why +mere _brilliancy of colour_, as an accidental concomitant of general +vigour, should have run into so extraordinary, so elaborate, and so +beautiful a _design of colours_. Moreover, this design is only unfolded +when the tail is erected, and the tail is not erected in battle (as Mr. +Wallace's theory of the erectile function in feathers would require), +but in courtship; obviously, therefore, the purpose of the pattern, so +to speak, is correlated with the act of courtship--it being only then, +in fact, that the general purpose of the whole structure, as well as the +more special purpose of the pattern, becomes revealed. Lastly, the fact +of this whole structure being so large, entailing not only a great +amount of physiological material in its production, but also of +physiological energy in carrying about such a weight, as well as of +increased danger from impeding locomotion and inviting capture--all this +is obviously incompatible with the supposition of the peacock's tail +having been produced by natural selection. And such a case does not +stand alone. There are multitudes of other instances of ornamental +structures imposing a drain upon the vital energies of their possessors, +without conferring any compensating benefit from a utilitarian point of +view. Now, in all these cases, without any exception, such structures +are ornamental structures which present a plain and obvious reference to +the relationship of the sexes. Therefore it becomes almost impossible to +doubt--first, that they exist for the sake of ornament; and next, that +the ornament exists on account of that relationship. If such structures +were due merely to a superabundance of energy, as Mr. Wallace supposes, +not only ought they to have been kept down by the economizing influence +of natural selection; but we can see no reason, either why they should +be so highly ornamental on the one hand, or so exclusively related to +the sexual relationship on the other. + + [48] Note C. + +Finally, we must take notice of the fact that where peculiar +_structures_ are concerned for purposes of display in courtship, the +_elaboration_ of these structures is often no less remarkable than that +of patterns where colours are thus concerned. Take, for example, the +case of the Bell-bird, which I select from an innumerable number of +instances that might be mentioned because, while giving a verbal +description of this animal, Darwin does not supply a pictorial +representation thereof. The bird, which lives in South America, has a +very loud and peculiar call, that can be heard at a distance of two or +three miles. The female is dusky-green; but the adult male is a +beautiful white, excepting the extraordinary structure with which we are +at present concerned. This is a tube about three inches long, which +rises from the base of the beak. It is jet black, and dotted over with +small downy feathers. The tube is closed at the top, but its cavity +communicates with the palate, and thus the whole admits of being +inflated from within, when, of course, it stands erect as represented in +one of the two drawings. When not thus inflated, it hangs down, as +shown in the second figure, which represents the plumage of a young +male. (Fig. 124.) + + [Illustration: FIG. 124.--The Bell-bird (_Chasmorhynchus niveus_, + 1/4 natural size). Drawn from nature (_R. Coll. Surg. Mus._). In the + drawing of the adult male the ornamental appendage is represented in + its inflated condition, during courtship; in the drawing of the + young male it is shown in its flaccid condition.] + +In another species of the genus there are three of these appendages--the +two additional ones being mounted on the corners of the mouth. (Fig. +125.) In all species of the genus (four in number) the tubes are +inflated during courtship, and therefore perform the function of sexual +embellishments. Now the point to which I wish to draw attention is, that +so specialized and morphologically elaborate a structure cannot be +regarded as merely adventitious. It must have been developed by some +definite cause, acting through a long series of generations. And as no +other function can be assigned to it than that of charming the female +when it is erected in courtship, the peculiarity of form and mechanism +which it presents--like the elaboration of patterns in cases where +colour only is concerned--virtually compels us to recognise in sexual +selection the only conceivable cause of its production. + + [Illustration: FIG. 125.--_C. tricarunculatus_, 1/4 natural size. + Copied from the _Ibis_. The ornamental appendages of the male are + represented in a partly inflated condition.] + +For these reasons I think that Mr. Wallace's main objection falls to the +ground. Passing on to his subsidiary objections, I do not see much +weight in his merely negative difficulty as to there being an absence of +evidence upon hen birds being charmed by the plumage, or the voice, of +their consorts. For, on the one hand, it is not very safe to infer what +sentiments may be in the mind of a hen; and, on the other hand, it is +impossible to conceive what motive can be in the mind of a cock, other +than that of making himself attractive, when he performs his various +antics, displays his ornamental plumes, or sings his melodious songs. +Considerations somewhat analogous apply to the difficulty of supposing +so much similarity and constancy of taste on the part of female animals +as Mr. Darwin's theory undoubtedly requires. Although we know very +little about the psychology of the lower animals, we do observe in many +cases that small details of mental organization are often wonderfully +constant and uniform throughout all members of a species, even where it +is impossible to suggest any utility as a cause. + +Again, as regards the objection that each bird finds a mate under any +circumstances, we have here an obvious begging of the whole question. +That every feathered Jack should find a feathered Jill is perhaps what +we might have antecedently expected; but when we meet with innumerable +instances of ornamental plumes, melodious songs, and the rest, as so +many witnesses to a process of sexual selection having always been in +operation, it becomes irrational to exclude such evidence on account of +our antecedent prepossessions. + +There remains the objection that the principles of natural selection +must necessarily swallow up those of sexual selection. And this +consideration, I doubt not, lies at the root of all Mr. Wallace's +opposition to the supplementary theory of sexual selection. He is +self-consistent in refusing to entertain the evidence of sexual +selection, on the ground of his antecedent persuasion that in the great +drama of evolution there is no possible standing-ground for any other +actor than that which appears in the person of natural selection. But +here, again, we must refuse to allow any merely antecedent presumption +to blind our eyes to the actual evidence of other agencies having +co-operated with natural selection in producing the observed results. +And, as regards the particular case now before us, I think I have shown, +as far as space will permit, that in the phenomena of decorative +colouring (as distinguished from merely brilliant colouring), of +melodious song (as distinguished from merely tuneless cries), of +enormous arborescent antlers (as distinguished from merely offensive +weapons), and so forth--I say that in all these phenomena we have +phenomena which cannot possibly be explained by the theory of natural +selection; and, further, that if they are to be explained at all, this +can only be done, so far as we can at present see, by Mr. Darwin's +supplementary theory of sexual selection. + +I have now briefly answered all Mr. Wallace's objections to this +supplementary theory, and, as previously remarked, I feel pretty +confident that, at all events in the main, the answer is such as Mr. +Darwin would himself have supplied, had there been a third edition of +his work upon the subject. At all events, be this as it may, we are +happily in possession of unquestionable evidence that he believed all +Mr. Wallace's objections to admit of fully satisfactory answers. For his +very last words to science--read only a few hours before his death at a +meeting of the Zoological Society--were: + + I may perhaps be here permitted to say that, after having carefully + weighed, to the best of my ability, the various arguments which + have been advanced against the principle of sexual selection, I + remain firmly convinced of its truth[49]. + + [49] Since the above exposition of the theory of sexual selection + was written, Mr. Poulton has published his work on the _Colours of + Animals_. He there reproduces some of the illustrations which occur + in Mr. and Mrs. Peckham's work on _Sexual Selection in Spiders_, and + furnishes appropriate descriptions. Therefore, while retaining the + illustrations, I have withdrawn my own descriptions. + + Mr. Poulton has also in his book supplied a _resume_ of the + arguments for and against the theory of sexual selection in general. + Of course in nearly all respects this corresponds with the _resume_ + which is given in the foregoing pages; but I have left the latter as + it was originally written, because all the critical part is + reproduced _verbatim_ from a review of Mr. Wallace's _Darwinism_, of + a date still earlier than that of Mr. Poulton's book--viz. + _Contemporary Review_, August, 1889. + + +_Concluding Remarks._ + +I will now conclude this chapter, and with it the present volume, by +offering a few general remarks on what may be termed the philosophical +relations of Darwinian doctrine to the facts of adaptation on the one +hand, and to those of beauty on the other. Of course we are all aware +that before the days of this doctrine the facts of adaptation in organic +nature were taken to constitute the clearest possible evidence of +special design, on account of the wonderful mechanisms which they +everywhere displayed; while the facts of beauty were taken as +constituting no less conclusive evidence of the quality of such special +design as beneficent, not to say artistic. But now that the Darwinian +doctrine appears to have explained scientifically the former class of +facts by its theory of natural selection, and the latter class of facts +by its theory of sexual selection, we may fitly conclude this brief +exposition of the doctrine as a whole by considering what influence such +naturalistic explanations may fairly be taken to exercise upon the +older, or super-naturalistic, interpretations. + +To begin with the facts of adaptation, we must first of all observe that +the Darwinian doctrine is immediately concerned with these facts only in +so far as they occur in organic nature. With the adaptations--if they +can properly be so called--which occur in all the rest of nature, and +which go to constitute the Cosmos as a whole so wondrous a spectacle of +universal law and perfect order, this doctrine is but indirectly +concerned. Nevertheless, it is of course fundamentally concerned with +them to the extent that it seeks to bring the phenomena of organic +nature into line with those of inorganic; and therefore to show that +whatever view we may severally take as to the kind of causation which is +energizing in the latter we must now extend to the former. This is +usually expressed by saying that the theory of evolution by natural +selection is a mechanical theory. It endeavours to comprise all the +facts of adaptation in organic nature under the same category of +explanation as those which occur in inorganic nature--that is to say, +under the category of physical, or ascertainable, causation. Indeed, +unless the theory has succeeded in doing this, it has not succeeded in +doing anything--beyond making a great noise in the world. If Mr. Darwin +has not discovered a new mechanical cause in the selection principle, +his labour has been worse than in vain. + +Now, without unduly repeating what has already been said in Chapter +VIII, I may remark that, whatever we may each think of the measure of +success which has thus far attended the theory of natural selection in +explaining the facts of adaptation, we ought all to agree that, +considered as a matter of general reasoning, the theory does certainly +refer to a _vera causa_ of a strictly physical kind; and, therefore, +that no exception can be taken to the theory in this respect on grounds +of _logic_. If the theory in this respect is to be attacked at all, it +can only be on grounds of _fact_--namely, by arguing that the cause does +not occur in nature, or that, if it does, its importance has been +exaggerated by the theory. Even, however, if the latter proposition +should ever be proved, we may now be virtually certain that the only +result would be the relegation of all the residual phenomena of +adaptation to other causes of the physical order--whether known or +unknown. Hence, as far as the matter of _principle_ is concerned, we may +definitely conclude that the great naturalistic movement of our century +has already brought all the phenomena of adaptation in organic nature +under precisely the same category of mechanical causation, as similar +movements in previous centuries have brought all the known phenomena of +inorganic nature: the only question that remains for solution is the +strictly _scientific_ question touching the particular causes of the +mechanical order which have been at work. + +So much, then, for the phenomena of adaptation. Turning next to those of +beauty, we have already seen that the theory of sexual selection stands +to these in precisely the same relation as the theory of natural +selection does to those of adaptation. In other words, it supplies a +physical explanation of them; because, as far as our present purposes +are concerned, it may be taken for granted, or for the sake of argument, +that inasmuch as psychological elements enter into the question the +cerebral basis which they demand involves a physical side. + +There is, moreover, this further point of resemblance between the two +theories: neither of them has any reference to inorganic nature. +Therefore, with the charm or the loveliness of landscapes, of earth and +sea and sky, of pebbles, crystals, and so forth, we have at present +nothing to do. How it is that so many inanimate objects are invested +with beauty--why it is that beauty attaches to architecture, music, +poetry, and many other things--these are questions which do not +specially concern the biologist. If they are ever to receive any +satisfactory explanation in terms of natural causation, this must be +furnished at the hands of the psychologist. It may be possible for him +to show, more satisfactorily than hitherto, that all beauty, whenever +and wherever it occurs, is literally "in the eyes of the beholder"; or +that objectively considered, there is no such thing as beauty. It may +be--and in my opinion it probably is--purely an affair of the percipient +mind itself, depending on the association of ideas with pleasure-giving +objects. This association may well lead to a liking for such objects, +and so to the formation of what is known as aesthetic feeling with regard +to them. Moreover, beauty of inanimate nature must be an affair of the +percipient mind itself, unless there be a creating intelligence with +organs of sense and ideals of beauty similar to our own. And, apart from +any deeper considerations, this latter possibility is scarcely entitled +to be regarded as a probability, looking to the immense diversities in +those ideals among different races of mankind. But, be this as it may, +the scientific problem which is presented by the fact of aesthetic +feeling, even if it is ever to be satisfactorily solved, is a problem +which, as already remarked, must be dealt with by psychologists. As +biologists we have simply to accept this feeling as a fact, and to +consider how, out of such a feeling as a cause, the beauty of organic +nature may have followed as an effect. + +Now we have already seen how the theory of sexual selection supposes +this to have happened. But against this theory a formidable objection +arises, and one which I have thought it best to reserve for treatment in +this place, because it serves to show the principal difference between +Mr. Darwin's two great generalizations, considered as generalizations in +the way of mechanical theory. For while the theory of natural selection +extends equally throughout the whole range of organic nature, the theory +of sexual selection has but a comparatively restricted scope, which, +moreover, is but vaguely defined. For it is obvious that the theory can +only apply to living organisms which are sufficiently intelligent to +admit of our reasonably accrediting them with aesthetic taste--namely, in +effect, the higher animals. And just as this consideration greatly +restricts the possible scope of the theory, as compared with that of +natural selection, so does it render undefined the zoological limits +within which it can be reasonably employed. Lastly, this necessarily +undefined, and yet most important limitation exposes the theory to the +objection just alluded to, and which I shall now mention. + +The theory, as we have just seen, is necessarily restricted in its +application to the higher animals. Yet the facts which it is designed to +explain are not thus restricted. For beauty is by no means restricted to +the higher animals. The whole of the vegetable world, and the whole of +the animal world at least as high up in the scale as the insects, must +be taken as incapable of aesthetic feeling. Therefore, the extreme +beauty of flowers, sea-anemones, corals, and so forth, cannot possibly +be ascribed to sexual selection. + +Now, with regard to this difficulty, we must begin by excluding the case +of the vegetable kingdom as irrelevant. For it has been rendered highly +probable--if not actually proved--by Darwin and others, that the beauty +of flowers and of fruits is in large part due to natural selection. It +is to the advantage of flowering plants that their organs of +fructification should be rendered conspicuous--and in many cases also +odoriferous,--in order to attract the insects on which the process of +fertilization depends. Similarly, it is to the advantage of all plants +which have brightly coloured fruits that these should be conspicuous for +the purpose of attracting birds, which eat the fruits and so disseminate +the seed. Hence all the gay colours and varied forms, both of flowers +and fruits, have been thus adequately explained as due to natural +causes, working for the welfare, as distinguished from the beauty, of +the plants. For even the distribution of colours on flowers, or the +beautiful patterns which so many of them present, are found to be useful +in guiding insects to the organs of fructification. + +Again, the green colouring of leaves, which lends so much beauty to the +vegetable world, has likewise been shown to be of vital importance to +the physiology of plant-life; and, therefore, may also be ascribed to +natural selection. Thus, there remains only the forms of plants other +than the flowers. But the forms of leaves have also in many cases been +shown to be governed by principles of utility; and the same is to be +said of the branching structure which is so characteristic of trees and +shrubs, since this is the form most effectual for spreading out the +leaves to the light and air. Here, then, we likewise find that the cause +determining plant beauty is natural selection; and so we may conclude +that the only reason why the forms of trees which are thus determined by +utility appeal to us as beautiful, is because we are accustomed to these +the most ordinary forms. Our ideas having been always, as it were, +moulded upon these forms, aesthetic feeling becomes attached to them by +the principle of association. At any rate, it is certain that when we +contemplate almost any forms of plant-structure which, for special +reasons of utility, differ widely from these (to us) more habitual +forms, the result is not suggestive of beauty. Many of the tropical and +un-tree-like plants--such as the cactus tribe--strike us as odd and +quaint, not as beautiful. Be this however as it may, I trust I have said +enough to prove that in the vegetable world, at all events, the +attainment of beauty cannot be held to have been an object aimed at, so +to speak, for its own sake. Even if, for the purposes of argument, we +were to suppose that all the forms and colours in the vegetable world +are due to special design, there could be no doubt that the purpose of +this design has been in chief part a utilitarian purpose; it has not +aimed at beauty exclusively for its own sake. For most of such beauty as +we here perceive is plainly due to the means adopted for the attainment +of life-preserving ends, which, of course, is a metaphorical way of +saying that it is probably due to natural selection[50]. + + [50] The beauty of autumnal tints in fading leaves may possibly be + adduced _per contra_. But here we have to remember that it is only + some kinds of leaves which thus become beautiful when fading, while, + even as regards those that do, it is not remarkable that their + chlorophyll should, as it were, accidentally assume brilliant tints + while breaking down into lower grades of chemical constitution. The + case, in fact, is exactly parallel to those in the animal kingdom + which are considered in the ensuing paragraphs. + +Turning, then, to the animal kingdom below the level of insects, here we +are bound to confess that the beauty which so often meets us cannot +reasonably be ascribed either to natural or to sexual selection. Not to +sexual selection for the reasons already given; the animals in question +are neither sufficiently intelligent to possess any aesthetic taste, nor, +as a matter of fact, do we observe that they exercise any choice in +pairing. Not to natural selection, because we cannot here, as in the +case of vegetables, point to any benefit as generally arising from +bright colours and beautiful forms. On the principles of naturalism, +therefore, we are driven to conclude that the beauty here is purely +adventitious, or accidental. Nor need we be afraid to make this +admission, if only we take a sufficiently wide view of the facts. For, +when we do take such a view, we find that beauty here is by no means of +invariable, or even of general, occurrence. There is no loveliness about +an oyster or a lob-worm; parasites, as a rule, are positively ugly, and +they constitute a good half of all animal species. The truth seems to +be, when we look attentively at the matter, that in all cases where +beauty does occur in these lower forms of animal life, its presence is +owing to one of two things--either to the radiate form, or to the bright +tints. Now, seeing that the radiate form is of such general occurrence +among these lower animals--appearing over and over again, with the +utmost insistence, even among groups widely separated from one another +by the latest results of scientific classification--seeing this, it +becomes impossible to doubt that the radiate form is due to some +morphological reasons of wide generality. Whether these reasons be +connected with the internal laws of growth, or to the external +conditions of environment, I do not pretend to suggest. But I feel safe +in saying that it cannot possibly be due to any design to secure beauty +for its own sake. The very generality of the radiate form is in itself +enough to suggest that it must have some physical, as distinguished from +an aesthetic, explanation; for, if the attainment of beauty had here been +the object, surely it might have been even more effectually accomplished +by adopting a greater variety of typical forms--as, for instance, in the +case of flowers. + +Coming then, lastly, to the case of brilliant tints in the lower +animals, Mr. Darwin has soundly argued that there is nothing forced or +improbable in the supposition that organic compounds, presenting as they +do such highly complex and such varied chemical constitutions, should +often present brilliant colouring _incidentally_. Considered merely as +colouring, there is nothing in the world more magnificent than arterial +blood; yet here the colouring is of purely utilitarian significance. It +is of the first importance in the chemistry of respiration; but is +surely without any meaning from an aesthetic point of view. For the +colour of the cheeks, and of the flesh generally, in the _white_ races +of mankind, could have been produced quite as effectually by the use of +pigment--as in the case of certain monkeys. Now the fact that in the +case of blood, as in that of many other highly coloured fluids and +solids throughout the animal kingdom, the colour is _concealed_, is +surely sufficient proof that the colour, if regarded from an aesthetic +point of view, is accidental. Therefore, when, as in other cases, such +colouring occurs upon the surface, and thus becomes apparent, are we not +irresistibly led to conclude that its _exhibition_ in such cases is +likewise accidental, so far as any question of aesthetic design is +concerned? + +I have now briefly glanced at all the main facts of organic nature with +reference to beauty; and, as a result, I think it is impossible to +resist the general conclusion, that in organic nature beauty does not +exist as an end _per se_. All cases where beauty can be pointed to in +organic nature are seemingly due--either to natural selection, acting +without reference to beauty, but to utility; to sexual selection, acting +with reference to the taste of animals; or else to sheer accident. And +if this general conclusion should be held to need any special +verification, is it not to be found in the numberless cases where +organic nature not only fails to be beautiful, but reveals itself as the +reverse. Not again to refer to the case of parasites, what can be more +unshapely than a hippopotamus, or more generally repulsive than a +crocodile? If it be said that these are exceptions, and that the forms +of animals as a rule are graceful, the answer--even apart from +parasites--is obvious. In all cases where the habits of life are such as +to render rapid locomotion a matter of utilitarian necessity, the +outlines of an animal _must_ be graceful--else, whether the locomotion +be terrestrial, aerial, or aquatic, it must fail to be swift. Hence it +is only in such cases as that of the hippopotamus, rhinoceros, +elephant, crocodile, and so forth, where natural selection has had no +concern in developing speed, that the accompanying accident of +gracefulness can be allowed to disappear. But if beauty in organic +nature had been in itself what may be termed an artistic object on the +part of a divine Creator, it is absurd to suggest that his design in +this matter should only have been allowed to appear where we are able to +detect other and very good reasons for its appearance. + + * * * * * + +Thus, whether we look to the facts of adaptation or to those of beauty, +everywhere throughout organic nature we meet with abundant evidence of +natural causation, while nowhere do we meet with any independent +evidence of supernatural design. But, having led up to this conclusion, +and having thus stated it as honestly as I can, I should like to finish +by further stating what, in my opinion is its logical bearing upon the +more fundamental tenets of religious thought. + +As I have already observed at the commencement of this brief exposition, +prior to the Darwinian theory of organic evolution, the theologian was +prone to point to the realm of organic nature as furnishing a peculiarly +rich and virtually endless store of facts, all combining in their +testimony to the wisdom and the beneficence of the Deity. Innumerable +adaptations of structures to functions appeared to yield convincing +evidence in favour of design; the beauty so profusely shed by living +forms appeared to yield evidence, no less convincing, of that design as +beneficent. But both these sources of evidence have now, as it were, +been tapped at their fountain-head: the adaptation and the beauty are +alike receiving their explanation at the hands of a purely mechanical +philosophy. Nay, even the personality of man himself is assailed; and +this not only in the features which he shares with the lower animals, +but also in his god-like attributes of reason, thought, and conscience. +All nature has thus been transformed before the view of the present +generation in a manner and to an extent that has never before been +possible: and inasmuch as the change which has taken place has taken +place in the direction of naturalism, and this to the extent of +rendering the mechanical interpretation of nature universal, it is no +wonder if the religious mind has suddenly awakened to a new and a +terrible force in the words of its traditional enemy--Where is now thy +God? + +This is not the place to discuss the bearings of science on +religion[51]; but I think it is a place where one may properly point out +the limits within which no such bearings obtain. Now, from what has just +been said, it will be apparent that I am not going to minimise the +change which has been wrought. On the contrary, I believe it is only +stupidity or affectation which can deny that the change in question is +more deep and broad than any single previous change in the whole history +of human thought. It is a fundamental, a cosmical, a world-transforming +change. Nevertheless, in my opinion, it is a change of a non-theistic, +as distinguished from an a-theistic, kind. It has rendered impossible +the appearance in literature of any future Paley, Bell, or Chalmers; but +it has done nothing in the way of negativing that belief in a Supreme +Being which it was the object of these authors to substantiate. If it +has demonstrated the futility of their proof, it has furnished nothing +in the way of disproof. It has shown, indeed, that their line of +argument was misjudged when they thus sought to separate organic nature +from inorganic as a theatre for the special or peculiar display of +supernatural design; but further than this it has not shown anything. +The change in question therefore, although greater in degree, is the +same in kind as all its predecessors: like all previous advances in +cosmological theory which have been wrought by the advance of science, +this latest and greatest advance has been that of revealing the +constitution of nature, or the method of causation, as everywhere the +same. But it is evident that this change, vast and to all appearance +final though it be, must end within the limits of natural causation +itself. The whole world of life and mind may now have been annexed to +that of matter and energy as together constituting one magnificent +dominion, which is everywhere subject to the same rule, or method of +government. But the ulterior and ultimate question touching the nature +of this government as mental or non-mental, personal or impersonal, +remains exactly where it was. Indeed, this is a question which cannot be +affected by _any_ advance of science, further than science has proved +herself able to dispose of erroneous arguments based upon ignorance of +nature. For while the sphere of science is necessarily restricted to +that of natural causation which it is her office to explore, the +question touching the _nature of this natural causation_ is one which as +necessarily lies without the whole sphere of such causation itself: +therefore it lies beyond any possible intrusion by science. And not only +so. But if the nature of natural causation be that of the highest order +of known existence, then, although we must evidently be incapable of +conceiving what such a Mind is, at least we seem capable of judging what +in many respects it is not. It cannot be more than one; it cannot be +limited either in space or time; it cannot be other than at least as +self-consistent as its manifestations in nature are invariable. Now, +from the latter deduction there arises a point of first-rate importance +in the present connexion. For if the so-called First Cause be +intelligent, and therefore all secondary causes but the expression of a +supreme Will, in as far as such a Will is self-consistent, the operation +of all natural causes must be uniform,--with the result that, as seen by +us, this operation must needs appear to be what we call mechanical. The +more unvarying the Will, the more unvarying must be this expression +thereof; so that, if the former be absolutely self-consistent, the +latter cannot fail to be as reasonably interpreted by the theory of +mindless necessity, as by that of ubiquitous intention. Such being, as +it appears to me, the pure logic of the matter, the proof of organic +evolution amounts to nothing more than the proof of a natural process. +What mode of being is ultimately concerned in this process--or in what +it is that this process ultimately consists--is a question upon which +science is as voiceless as speculation is vociferous. + + [51] The best treatise on this subject is Prof. Le Conte's + _Evolution and its Relation to Religious Thought_ (Appleton & Co. + 1888). + +But, it may still be urged, surely the principle of natural selection +(with its terrible basis in the struggle for existence) and the +principle of sexual selection (with its consequence in denying beauty +to be an end in itself) demonstrate that, _if_ there be design in +nature, such design at all events cannot be beneficent. To this, +however, I should again reply that, just as touching the major question +of design itself, so as touching this minor question of the quality of +such design as beneficent, I do not see how the matter has been much +affected by a discovery of the principles before us. For we did not need +a Darwin to tell us that the whole creation groaneth and travaileth +together in pain. The most that in this connexion Darwin can fairly be +said to have done is to have estimated in a more careful and precise +manner than any of his predecessors, the range and the severity of this +travail. And if it be true that the result of what may be called his +scientific analysis of nature in respect of suffering is to have shown +the law of suffering even more severe, more ubiquitous, and more +necessary than it had ever been shown before, we must remember at the +same time how he has proved, more rigidly than was ever proved before, +that suffering is a condition to improvement--struggle for life being +the _raison d'etre_ of higher life, and this not only in the physical +sphere, but also in the mental and moral. + +Lastly, if it be said that the _choice_ of such a method, whereby +improvement is only secured at the cost of suffering, indicates a kind +of callousness on the part of an intelligent Being supposed to be +omnipotent, I confess that such does appear to me a legitimate +conclusion--subject, however, to the reservation that higher knowledge +might displace it. For, as far as matters are now actually presented to +the unbiased contemplation of a human mind, this provisional inference +appears to me unavoidable--namely, that if the world of sentient life be +due to an Omnipotent Designer, the aim or motive of the design must have +been that of securing a continuous advance of animal improvement, +without any regard at all to animal suffering. For I own it does not +seem to me compatible with a fair and honest exercise of our reason to +set the sum of animal happiness over against the sum of animal misery, +and then to allege that, in so far as the former tends to balance--or to +over-balance--the latter, thus far is the moral character of the design +as a whole vindicated. Even if it could be shown that the sum of +happiness in the brute creation considerably preponderates over that of +unhappiness--which is the customary argument of theistic apologists,--we +should still remain without evidence as to this state of matters having +formed any essential part of the design. On the other hand, we should +still be in possession of seemingly good evidence to the contrary. For +it is clearly a condition to progress by survival of the fittest, that +as soon as organisms become sentient selection must be exercised with +reference to sentiency; and this means that, if further progress is to +take place, states of sentiency _must_ become so organized with +reference to habitual experience of the race, that pleasures and pains +shall answer respectively to states of agreement and disagreement with +the sentient creature's environment. Those animals which found pleasure +in what was deleterious to life would not survive, while those which +found pleasure in what was beneficial to life would survive; and so +eventually, in every species of animal, states of sentiency as agreeable +or disagreeable must approximately correspond with what is good for the +species or bad for the species. Indeed, we may legitimately surmise that +the reason why sentiency (and, _a fortiori_, conscious volition) has +ever appeared upon the scene at all, has been because it +furnishes--through this continuously selected adjustment of states of +sentiency to states of the sentient organism--so admirable a means of +securing rapid, and often refined, adjustments by the organism to the +habitual conditions of its life[52]. But, if so, not only is this state +of matters a _condition_ to progress in the future; it is further, and +equally, a _consequence_ of progress in the past. + + [52] See _Mental Evolution in Animals_, pp. 110-111. + +However, be this as it may, from all that has gone before does it not +become apparent that pleasure or happiness on the one hand, and pain or +misery on the other, must be present in sentient nature? And so long as +they are both seen to be equally necessary under the process of +evolution by natural selection, we have clearly no more reason to regard +the pleasure than the pain as an object of the supposed design. Rather +must we see in both one and the same condition to progress under the +method of natural causation which is before us; and therefore I cannot +perceive that it makes much difference--so far as the argument for +beneficence is concerned--whether the pleasures of animals outweigh +their pains, or _vice versa_. + +Upon the whole, then, it seems to me that such evidence as we have is +against rather than in favour of the inference, that if design be +operative in animate nature it has reference to animal enjoyment or +well-being, as distinguished from animal improvement or evolution. And +if this result should be found distasteful to the religious mind--if it +be felt that there is no desire to save the evidences of design unless +they serve at the same time to testify to the nature of that design as +beneficent,--I must once more observe that the difficulty thus presented +to theism is not a difficulty of modern creation. On the contrary, it +has always constituted the fundamental difficulty with which natural +theologians have had to contend. The external world appears, in this +respect, to be at variance with our moral sense; and when the antagonism +is brought home to the religious mind, it must ever be with a shock of +terrified surprise. It has been newly brought home to us by the +generalizations of Darwin; and therefore, as I said at the beginning, +the religious thought of our generation has been more than ever +staggered by the question--Where is now thy God? But I have endeavoured +to show that the logical standing of the case has not been materially +changed; and when this cry of Reason pierces the heart of Faith, it +remains for Faith to answer now, as she has always answered before--and +answered with that trust which is at once her beauty and her +life--Verily thou art a God that hidest thyself. + + + + +_APPENDIX AND NOTES_ + + + + +APPENDIX TO CHAPTER V. + +ON OBJECTIONS WHICH HAVE BEEN BROUGHT AGAINST THE THEORY OF ORGANIC +EVOLUTION ON GROUNDS OF PALAEONTOLOGY. + + +While stating in the text, and in a necessarily general way, the +evidence which is yielded by palaeontology to the theory of organic +evolution, I have been desirous of not overstating it. Therefore, in the +earlier paragraphs of the chapter, which deal with the most general +heads of such evidence, I introduced certain qualifying phrases; and I +will now give the reasons which led me to do so. + +Of all the five biological sciences which have been called into +evidence--viz. those of Classification, Morphology, Embryology, +Palaeontology, and Geographical Distribution--it is in the case of +palaeontology alone that any important or professional opinions still +continue to be unsatisfied. Therefore, in order that justice may be done +to this line of dissent, I have thought it better to deal with the +matter in a separate Appendix, rather than to hurry it over in the text. +And, as all the difficulties or objections which have been advanced +against the theory of evolution on grounds of palaeontology must vary, as +to their strength, with the estimate which is taken touching the degree +of imperfection of the geological record, I will begin by adding a few +paragraphs to what has already been said in the text upon this subject. + +First, then, as to the difficulties in the way of fossils being formed +at all. We have already noticed in the text that it is only the more or +less hard parts of organisms which under any circumstances can be +fossilized; and even the hardest parts quickly disintegrate if not +protected from the weather on land, or from the water on the sea-bottom. +Moreover, as Darwin says, "we probably take a quite erroneous view when +we assume that sediment is being deposited over nearly the whole bed of +the sea, at a rate sufficiently quick to embed and preserve fossil +remains. Throughout an enormously large proportion of the ocean, the +bright blue tint of the water bespeaks its purity. The many cases on +record of a formation conformably covered, after an immense interval of +time, by another and a later formation, without the underlying bed +having suffered in the interval any wear and tear, seem explicable only +on the view of the bottom of the sea not rarely lying for ages in an +unaltered condition." Next, as regards littoral animals, he shows the +difficulty which they must have in becoming fossils, and gives a +striking example in several of the existing species of a sub-family of +cirripedes (_Chthamalinae_), "which coat the rocks all over the world in +infinite numbers," yet, with the exception of one species which inhabits +deep water, no vestige of any of them has been found in any tertiary +formation, although it is known that the genus _Chthamalus_ existed +through the Chalk period. Lastly, "with respect to the terrestrial +productions which lived through the secondary and palaeozoic periods, it +is superfluous to state our evidence is fragmentary in an extreme +degree. For instance, until recently not a land shell was known +belonging to either of these vast periods," with one exception; while, +"in regard to mammiferous remains, a glance at the historical table in +Lyell's Manual will bring home the truth, how accidental and rare has +been their preservation, far better than pages of detail. Nor is their +rarity surprising, when we remember how large a proportion of the bones +of tertiary mammals have been discovered either in caves or in +lacustrine deposits; and that not a cave or true lacustrine bed is known +belonging to the age of our secondary or palaeozoic formations." + +But perhaps of even more importance than all these known causes which +prevent the formation of fossils, is the existence of unknown causes +which make for the same result. For example, the Flysch-formation is a +formation of several thousand feet in thickness (as much as 6000 in some +places), and it extends for at least 300 miles from Vienna to +Switzerland; moreover, it consists of shale and sandstone. Therefore, +alike in respect of time, space, and character, it is just such a +formation as we should expect to find highly rich in fossils; yet, +"although this great mass has been most carefully searched, no fossils, +except a few vegetable remains, have been found." + +So much then for the difficulty, so to speak, which nature experiences +in the manufacture of fossils. Probably not one per cent. of the species +of animals which have inhabited the earth has left a single individual +as a fossil, whereby to record its past existence. + +But of even more importance than this difficulty of making fossils in +the first instance, is the difficulty of preserving them when they are +made. The vast majority of fossils have been formed under water, and a +large proportional number of these--whether the animals were marine, +terrestrial, or inhabitants of fresh water--have been formed in +sedimentary deposits either of sand, gravel, or other porous material. +Now, where such deposits have been afterwards raised into the air for +any considerable time--and this has been more or less the case with all +deposits which are available for exploration--their fossiliferous +contents will have been, as a general rule, dissolved by the percolation +of rain-water charged with carbonic acid. Similarly, sea-water has +recently been found to be a surprisingly strong solvent of calcareous +material: hence, Saturn-like, the ocean devours her own progeny as far +as shells and bones of all kinds are concerned--and this to an extent of +which we have probably no adequate conception. + +Of still greater destructive influence, however, than these solvent +agencies in earth and sea, are the erosive agencies of both. Any one who +watches the pounding of the waves upon the shore; who then observes the +effect of it upon the rocks broken into shingle, and on the shingle +reduced to sand; who, looking behind him at the cliffs, sees there the +evidence of the gradual advance of this all-pulverising power--an +advance so gradual that no yard of it is accomplished until within that +yard the "white teeth" have eaten well into the "bowels of the earth"; +who then reflects that this process is going on simultaneously over +hundreds of thousands of miles of coast-lines throughout the world; and +who finally extends his mental vision from space to time, by trying +dimly to imagine what this ever-roaring monster must have consumed +during the hundreds of millions of years that slowly rising and slowly +sinking continents have exposed their whole areas to her jaws; whoever +thus observes and thus reflects must be a dull man, if he does not begin +to feel that in the presence of such a destroyer as this we have no +reason to wonder at a frequent silence in the testimony of the rocks. + +But although the erosive agency of the sea is thus so inconceivably +great, it is positively small if compared with erosive agencies on land. +The constant action of rain, wind, and running water, in wearing down +the surfaces of all lands into "the dust of continents to be"; the +disintegrating effects on all but the very hardest rocks of winter +frosts alternating with summer heats; the grinding power of ice in +periods of glaciation; and last, but not least, the wholesale melting up +of sedimentary formations whenever these have sunk for any considerable +distance beneath the earth's surface:--all these agencies taken together +constitute so prodigious a sum of energies combined through +immeasureable ages in their common work of destruction, that when we +try to realise what it must amount to, we can scarcely fail to wonder, +not that the geological record is highly imperfect, but that so much of +the record has survived as we find to have been the case. And, if we add +to these erosive and solvent agencies on land the erosive and solvent +agencies of the sea, we may almost begin to wonder that anything +deserving the name of a geological record is in existence at all. + +That such estimates of the destructive powers of nature are not mere +matters of speculative reasoning may be amply shown by stating one +single fact, which, like so many others where the present subject is +concerned, we owe to the generalizations of Darwin. Plutonic rocks, +being those which have emerged from subterranean heat of melting +intensity, must clearly at some time or another have lain beneath the +whole thickness of sedimentary deposits, which at that time occupied any +part of the earth's surface where we now find the Plutonic rocks exposed +to view. Or, in other words, wherever we now find Plutonic rocks at the +surface of the earth, we must conclude that all the sedimentary rocks by +which they were covered when in a molten state have since been entirely +destroyed; several vertical miles of the only kinds of rocks in which +fossils can possibly occur must in all such cases have been abolished +_in toto_. Now, in many parts of the world metamorphic rocks--which have +thus gradually risen from Plutonic depths, while miles of various other +rock-formations have been removed from their now exposed surfaces--cover +immense areas, and therefore testify by their present horizontal range, +no less than by their previously vertical depth, to the enormous scale +on which a total destruction has taken place of everything that once lay +above them. For instance, the granitic region of Parime is at least +nineteen times the size of Switzerland; a similar region south of the +Amazon is probably larger than France, Spain, Italy, and Great Britain +all put together; and, more remarkable still, over the area of the +United States and Canada, granitic rocks exceed in the proportion of 19 +to 12-1/2 the whole of the newer Palaeozoic formations. Lastly, after +giving these examples, Darwin adds the important consideration, that "in +many regions the metamorphic and granitic rocks would be found much more +widely extended than they appear to be, if all the sedimentary beds were +removed which rest unconformably on them, and which could not have +formed part of the original mantle under which they were crystallized." + +The above is a brief condensation of the already condensed statement +which Darwin has given of the imperfection of the geological record; but +I think it is enough to show, in a general way, how precarious must be +the nature of any objections to the theory of evolution which are +founded merely upon the silence of palaeontology in cases where, if the +record were anything like complete, we should be entitled to expect from +it some positive information. But, as we have seen in the text, +imperfect though the record be, in as far as it furnishes positive +information at all, this is well-nigh uniformly in favour of the theory; +and therefore, even on grounds of palaeontology alone, it appears to me +that Darwin is much too liberal where he concludes his discussion by +saying,--"Those who believe that the geological record is in any degree +perfect, will undoubtedly at once reject the theory." If in any measure +reasonable, such persons ought rather to examine their title to such a +belief; and even if they disregard the consensus of testimony which is +yielded by all the biological sciences to the theory of evolution, they +ought at least to hold their judgment in suspense until they shall have +not only set against the apparently negative testimony which is yielded +by geology its unquestionably positive testimony, but also well +considered the causes which may--or rather must--have so gravely +impaired the geological record. + +However, be this as it may, I will now pass on to consider the +difficulties and objections which have been brought against the theory +on grounds of palaeontology. + +These may be classified under four heads. First, the absence of varietal +links between allied species; second, the sudden appearance of whole +groups of species--not only as genera and families, but even sometimes +as orders and classes--without any forms leading up to them; third, the +occurrence of highly organized types at much lower levels of geological +strata than an evolutionist would antecedently expect; and, fourth, the +absence of fossils of any kind lower down than the Cambrian strata. + +Now all these objections depend on estimates of the imperfection of the +geological record much lower than that which is formed by Darwin. +Therefore I have arranged the objections in their order of difficulty in +this respect, or in the order that requires successively increasing +estimates of the imperfection of the record, if they are to be +successively answered. + +I think that the first of them has been already answered in the text, by +showing that even a very moderate estimate of the imperfection of the +record is enough to explain why intermediate _varieties_, connecting +allied _species_, are but comparatively seldom met with. Moreover it was +shown that in some cases, where shells are concerned, remarkably +well-connected series of such varieties have been met with. And the same +applies to species and genera in certain other cases, as in the equine +family. + +But no doubt a greater difficulty arises where whole groups of species +and genera, or even families and orders, appear to arise suddenly, +without anything leading up to them. Even this the second difficulty, +however, admits of being fully met, when we remember that in very many +cases it has been proved, quite apart from the theory of descent, that +superjacent formations have been separated from one another by wide +intervals of time. And even although it often happens that intermediate +deposits which are absent in one part of the world are present in +another, we have no right to assume that such is always the case. +Besides, even if it were, we should have no right further to assume that +the faunas of widely separated geographical areas were identical during +the time represented by the intermediate formation. Yet, unless they +were identical, we should not expect the fossils of the intermediate +formation, where extant, to yield evidence of what the fossils would +have been in this same formation elsewhere, had it not been there +destroyed. Now, as a matter of fact, "geological formations of each +region are almost invariably intermittent"; and although in many cases a +more or less continuous record of past forms of life can be obtained by +comparing the fossils of one region and formation with those of another +region and adjacent formations, it is evident (from what we know of the +present geographical distribution of plants and animals) that not a few +cases there must have been where the interruption of the record in one +region cannot be made good by thus interpolating the fossils of another +region. And we must remember it is by selecting the cases where this +cannot be done that the objection before us is made to appear +formidable. In other words, _unless_ whole groups of new species which +are unknown in formation A appear suddenly in formation C of one region +(X), where the intermediate formation B is absent; and _unless_ in some +other region (Y), where B is present, the fossiliferous contents of B +fail to supply the fossil ancestry of the new species in A (X); _unless_ +such a state of matters is found to obtain, the objection before us has +nothing to say. But at best this is negative evidence; and, in order to +consider it fairly, we ought to set against it the cases where an +interposition of fossils found in B (Y) _does_ furnish the fossil +ancestry of what would _otherwise_ have been an abrupt appearance of +whole groups of new species in A (X). Now such cases are neither few +nor unimportant, and therefore they deprive the objection of the force +it would have had if the selected cases to the contrary were the general +rule. + +In addition to these considerations, the following, some of which are of +a more special kind, appear to me so important that I will quote them +almost _in extenso_. + + We continually forget how large the world is, compared with the + area over which our geological formations have been carefully + examined: we forget that groups of species may elsewhere have long + existed, and have slowly multiplied, before they invaded the + ancient archipelagoes of Europe and the United States. We do not + make due allowance for the intervals of time which have elapsed + between our consecutive formations,--longer perhaps in many cases + than the time required for the accumulation of each formation. + These intervals will have given time for the multiplication of + species from some one parent form; and, in the succeeding + formation, such groups of species will appear as if suddenly + created. + + I may here recall a remark formerly made, namely, that it might + require a long succession of ages, to adapt an organism to some new + and peculiar line of life, for instance, to fly through the air; + and consequently that the transitional form would often long remain + confined to some one region; but that, when this adaptation had + once been effected, and a few species had thus acquired a great + advantage over other organisms, a comparatively short time would be + necessary to produce many divergent forms, which would spread + rapidly and widely throughout the world.... + + In geological treatises, published not many years ago, mammals were + always spoken of as having abruptly come in at the commencement of + the tertiary series. And now one of the richest known accumulations + of fossil mammals belongs to the middle of the secondary series; + and true mammals have been discovered in the new red sandstone at + nearly the commencement of this great series. Cuvier used to urge + that no monkey occurred in any tertiary stratum; but now extinct + species have been discovered in India, South America, and in Europe + as far back as the miocene stage. Had it not been for the rare + accident of the preservation of footsteps in the new red sandstone + of the United States, who would have ventured to suppose that, no + less than at least thirty kinds of bird-like animals, some of + gigantic size, existed during that period? Not a fragment of bone + has been discovered in these beds. Not long ago palaeontologists + maintained that the whole class of birds came suddenly into + existence during the eocene period; but now we know, on the + authority of Professor Owen, that a bird certainly lived during the + deposition of the upper green-sand. And still more recently that + strange bird, the Archeopteryx ... has been discovered in the + oolitic slates of Solenhofen. Hardly any recent discovery shows + more forcibly than this, how little we as yet know of the former + inhabitants of the world. + + I may give another instance, which, from having passed under my own + eyes, has much struck me. In a memoir on Fossil Sessile Cirripedes, + I stated that, from the number of existing and extinct tertiary + species; from the extraordinary abundance of the individuals of + many species all over the world from the Arctic regions to the + equator, inhabiting various zones of depths from the upper tidal + limits to 50 fathoms; from the perfect manner in which specimens + are preserved in the oldest tertiary beds; from the ease with which + even a fragment of a valve can be recognized; from all these + circumstances, I inferred that had sessile cirripedes existed + during the secondary periods, they would certainly have been + preserved and discovered; and as not one species had then been + discovered in beds of this age, I concluded that this great group + had been suddenly developed at the commencement of the tertiary + series. This was a sore trouble to me, adding as I thought one more + instance of the abrupt appearance of a great group of species. But + my work had hardly been published, when a skilful palaeontologist, + M. Bosquet, sent me a drawing of a perfect specimen of an + unmistakeable sessile cirripede, which he had himself extracted + from the chalk of Belgium. And, as if to make the case as striking + as possible, this sessile cirripede was a Chthamalus, a very + common, large, and ubiquitous genus, of which not one specimen has + as yet been found even in any tertiary stratum. Still more + recently, a Pyrgoma, a member of a distinct sub-family of sessile + cirripedes, has been discovered by Mr. Woodward in the upper chalk; + so that we now have abundant evidence of the existence of this + group of animals during the secondary period. + + The case most frequently insisted on by palaeontologists of the + apparently sudden appearance of a whole group of species, is that + of the teleostean fishes, low down, according to Agassiz, in the + Chalk period. This group includes the large majority of existing + species. But certain Jurassic and Triassic forms are now commonly + admitted to be teleostean; and even some palaeozoic forms have been + thus classed by one high authority. If the teleosteans had really + appeared suddenly in the northern hemisphere, the fact would have + been highly remarkable; but it would not have formed an insuperable + difficulty, unless it could likewise have been shown that at the + same period the species were suddenly and simultaneously developed + in other quarters of the world. It is almost superfluous to remark + that hardly any fossil fish are known from south of the equator; + and by running through Pictet's Palaeontology it will be seen that + very few species are known from several formations in Europe. Some + few families of fish now have a confined range; the teleostean fish + might formerly have had a similarly confined range, and after + having been largely developed in some one sea, might have spread + widely. Nor have we any right to suppose that the seas of the world + have always been so freely open from south to north as they are at + present. Even at this day, if the Malay Archipelago were converted + into land, the tropical parts of the Indian Ocean would form a + large and perfectly enclosed basin, in which any great group of + marine animals might be multiplied; and here they would remain + confined, until some of the species became adapted to a cooler + climate, and were enabled to double the southern capes of Africa or + Australia, and thus reach other and distant seas. + + From these considerations, from our ignorance of the geology of + other countries beyond the confines of Europe and the United + States; and from the revolution in our palaeontological knowledge + effected by the discoveries of the last dozen years, it seems to me + to be about as rash to dogmatize on the succession of organic + forms throughout the world, as it would be for a naturalist to + land for five minutes on some one barren point in Australia, and + then to discuss the number and range of its productions[53]. + + [53] _Origin of Species_, 282-5. + +In view of all the foregoing facts and considerations, it appears to me +that the second difficulty on our list is completely answered. Indeed, +even on a moderate estimate of the imperfection of the geological +record, the wonder would have been if many cases had _not_ occurred +where groups of species present the fictitious appearance of having been +suddenly and simultaneously created in the particular formations where +their remains now happen to be observable. + +Turning next to the third objection, there cannot be any question that +every here and there in the geological series animals occur of a much +higher grade zoologically than the theory of evolution would have +expected to find in the strata where they are found. At any rate, +speaking for myself, I should not have antecedently expected to meet +with such highly differentiated insects as butterflies and dragonflies +in the middle of the Secondaries: still less should I have expected to +encounter beetles, cockroaches, spiders, and May-flies in the upper and +middle Primaries--not to mention an insect and a scorpion even in the +lower. And I think the same remark applies to a whole sub-kingdom in the +case of Vertebrata. For although it is only the lowest class of the +sub-kingdom which, so far as we positively know, was represented in the +Devonian and Silurian formations, we must remember, on the one hand, +that even a cartilaginous or ganoid fish belongs to the highest +sub-kingdom of the animal series; and, on the other hand, that such +animals are thus proved to have abounded in the very lowest strata where +there is good evidence of there having been any forms of life at all. +Lastly, the fact that Marsupials occur in the Trias, coupled with the +fact that the still existing Monotremata are what may be termed animated +fossils, referring us by their lowly type of organization to some period +enormously more remote,--these facts render it practically certain that +some members of this very highest class of the highest sub-kingdom must +have existed far back in the Primaries. + +These things, I say, I should not have expected to find, and I think all +other evolutionists ought to be prepared to make the same +acknowledgment. But as these things have been found, the only possible +way of accounting for them on evolutionary principles is by supposing +that the geological record is even more imperfect than we needed to +suppose in order to meet the previous objections. I cannot see, however, +why evolutionists should be afraid to make this acknowledgment. For I do +not know any reason which would lead us to suppose that there is any +common measure between the distances marked on our tables of geological +formations, and the times which those distances severally represent. Let +the reader turn to the table on page 163, and then let him say why the +30,000 feet of so-called Azoic rocks may not represent a greater +duration of time than does the thickness of all the Primary rocks above +them put together. For my own part I believe that this is probably the +case, looking to the enormous ages during which these very early +formations must have been exposed to destructive agencies of all kinds, +now at one time and now at another, in different parts of the world. +And, of course, we are without any means of surmising what ranges of +time are represented by the so-called Primeval rocks, for the simple +reason that they are non-sedimentary, and non-sedimentary rocks cannot +be expected to contain fossils. + +But, it will be answered, the 30,000 feet of Azoic rocks, lying above +the Primeval, _are_ sedimentary to some extent: they are not all +completely metamorphic: yet they are all destitute of fossils. This is +the fourth and last difficulty which has to be met, and it can only be +met by the considerations which have been advanced by Lyell and Darwin. +The former says:-- + + The total absence of any trace of fossils has inclined many + geologists to attribute the origin of the most ancient strata to an + azoic period, or one antecedent to the existence of organic beings. + Admitting, they say, the obliteration, in some cases, of fossils by + plutonic action, we might still expect that traces of them would + oftener be found in certain ancient systems of slate, which can + scarcely be said to have assumed a crystalline structure. But in + urging this argument it seems to be forgotten that there are + stratified formations of enormous thickness, and of various ages, + some of them even of tertiary date, and which we know were formed + after the earth had become the abode of living creatures, which + are, nevertheless, in some districts, entirely destitute of all + vestiges of organic bodies[54]. + + [54] _Elements of Geology_, p. 587. + +He then proceeds to mention sundry causes (in addition to plutonic +action) which are adequate to destroy the fossiliferous contents of +stratified rocks, and to show that these may well have produced enormous +destruction of organic remains in these oldest of known formations. + +Darwin's view is that, during the vast ages of time now under +consideration, it is probable that the distribution of sea and land over +the earth's surface has not been uniformly the same, even as regards +oceans and continents. Now, if this were the case, "it might well happen +that strata which had subsided some miles nearer to the centre of the +earth, and which had been pressed on by an enormous weight of +superincumbent water, might have undergone far more metamorphic action +than strata which have always remained nearer to the surface. The +immense areas in some parts of the world, for instance in South America, +of naked metamorphic rocks, which must have been heated under great +pressure, have always seemed to me to require some special explanation; +and we may perhaps believe that we see, in these large areas, the many +formations long anterior to the Cambrian epoch in a completely +metamorphosed and denuded condition[55]." The probability of this view +he sustains by certain general considerations, as well as particular +facts touching the geology of oceanic islands, &c. + + [55] _Origin of Species_, p. 289. + +On the whole, then, it seems to me but reasonable to conclude, with +regard to all four objections in question, as Darwin concludes with +regard to them:-- + + For my part, following out Lyell's metaphor, I look at the + geological record as a history of the world imperfectly kept, + written in a changing dialect; of this history we possess the last + volume alone, relating only to two or three countries. Of this + volume, only here and there a short chapter has been preserved; and + of each page only here and there a few lines. Each word of the + slowly-changing language, more or less different in the successive + chapters, may represent the forms of life, which are entombed in + our consecutive formations, and which falsely appear to us to have + been abruptly introduced. On this view, the difficulties above + discussed are greatly diminished, or even disappear[56]. + + [56] _Ibid._ + +As far as I can see, the only reasonable exception that can be taken to +this general view of the whole matter, is one which has been taken from +the side of astronomical physics. + +Put briefly, it is alleged by one of the highest authorities in this +branch of science, that there cannot have been any such enormous reaches +of unrecorded time as would be implied by the supposition of there +having been a lost history of organic evolution before the Cambrian +period. The grounds of this allegation I am not qualified to examine; +but in a general way I agree with Prof. Huxley in feeling that, from the +very nature of the case, they are necessarily precarious,--and this in +so high a degree that any conclusions raised on such premises are not +entitled to be deemed formidable[57]. + + [57] See _Lay Sermons_, Lecture on Geological Reform. + + * * * * * + +Turning now to plants, the principal and the ablest opponent of the +theory of evolution is here unquestionably Mr. Carruthers[58]. The +difficulties which he adduces may be classified under three heads, as +follows:-- + + [58] See especially the following Presidential addresses:--Geol. + Assoc. Nov. 1876; Section D. Brit. Assoc., 1886; Lin. Soc., 1890. + +1. There is no evidence of change in specific forms of existing plants. +Not only are the numerous species of plants which have been found in +Egyptian mummies indistinguishable from their successors of to-day; but, +what is of far more importance, a large number of our own indigenous +plants grew in Great Britain during the glacial period (including under +this term the warm periods between those of successive glaciations), and +in no one case does it appear that any modification of specific type has +occurred. This fact is particularly remarkable as regards leaves, +because on the one hand they are the organs of plants which are most +prone to vary, while on the other hand they are likewise the organs +which lend themselves most perfectly to the process of fossilization, so +that all details of their structure can be minutely observed in the +fossil state. Yet the interval since the glacial period, although not a +long one geologically speaking, is certainly what may be called an +appreciable portion of time in the history of Dicotyledonous plants +since their first appearance in the Cretaceous epoch. Again, if we +extend this kind of enquiry so as to include the world as a whole, a +number of other species of plants dating from the glacial epoch are +found to tell the same story--notwithstanding that, in the opinion of +Mr. Carruthers, they must all have undergone many changes of environment +while advancing before, and retreating after, successive glaciations in +different parts of the globe. Or, to quote his own words:--"The various +physical conditions which of necessity affected these {41} species in +their diffusion over such large areas of the earth's surface in the +course of, say, 250,000 years, should have led to the production of many +varieties; but the uniform testimony of the remains of this considerable +pre-glacial flora, as far as the materials admit of a comparison, is +that no appreciable change has taken place." + +2. There is no appearance of generalized forms among the earliest plants +with which we are acquainted. For example, in the first dry land +flora--the Devonian--we have representatives of the _Filices_, +_Equisetaceae_, and _Lycopodiaceae_, all as highly specialized as their +living representatives, and exhibiting the differential characters of +these closely related groups. Moreover, these plants were even more +highly organized than their existing descendants in regard to their +vegetative structure, and in some cases also in regard to their +reproductive organs. So likewise the Gymnosperms of that time show in +their fossil state the same highly organized woody structure as their +living representatives. + +3. Similarly, and more generally, the Dicotyledonous plants, which first +appear in the Cretaceous rocks, appear there suddenly, without any forms +leading up to them--notwithstanding that "we know very well the +extensive flora of the underlying Wealden." Moreover, we have all the +three great divisions of the Dicotyledons appearing together, and so +highly differentiated that all the species are referred to existing +genera, with the exception of a very few imperfectly preserved, and +therefore uncertain fragments. + +Such being the facts, we may begin by noticing that, even at first +sight, they present different degrees of difficulty. Thus, I cannot see +that there is much difficulty with regard to those in class 2. Only if +we were to take the popular (and very erroneous) view of organic +evolution as a process which is always and everywhere bound to promote +the specialization of organic types--only then ought we to see any real +difficulty in the absence of generalized types preceding these existing +types. Of course we may wonder why still lower down in the geological +series we do not meet with more generalized (or ancestral) types; but +this is the difficulty number 3, which we now proceed to examine. + +Concerning the other two difficulties, then, the only possible way of +meeting that as to the absence of any parent forms lower down in the +geological series is by falling back--as in the analogous case of +animals--upon the imperfection of the geological record. Although it is +certainly remarkable that we should not encounter any forms serving to +connect the Dicotyledonous plants of the Chalk with the lower forms of +the underlying Wealden, we must again remember that difficulties thus +depending on the absence of any corroborative record, are by no means +equivalent to what would have arisen in the presence of an adverse +record--such, for instance, as would have been exhibited had the floras +of the Wealden and the Chalk been inverted. But, as the case actually +stands, the mere fact that Dicotyledonous plants, where they first +occur, are found to have been already differentiated into their three +main divisions, is in itself sufficient evidence, on the general theory +of evolution, that there must be a break in the record as hitherto known +between the Wealden and the Chalk. Nor is it easy to see how the +opponents of this theory can prove their negative by furnishing evidence +to the contrary. And although such might justly be deemed an unfair way +of putting the matter, were this the only case where the geological +record is in evidence, it is not so when we remember that there are +numberless other cases where the geological record does testify to +connecting links in a most satisfactory manner. For in view of this +consideration the burden of proof is thrown upon those who point to +particular cases where there is thus a conspicuous absence of +transitional forms--the burden, namely, of proving that such cases are +not due merely to a break in the record. Besides, the break in the +record as regards this particular case may be apparent rather than real. +For I suppose there is no greater authority on the pure geology of the +subject than Sir Charles Lyell, and this is what he says of the +particular case in question. "If the passage seem at present to be +somewhat sudden from the flora of the Lower or Neocomian to that of the +Upper Cretaceous period, the abruptness of the change will probably +disappear when we are better acquainted with the fossil vegetation of +the uppermost tracts of the Neocomian and that of the lowest strata of +the Gault, or true Cretaceous series[59]." + + [59] _Elements of Geology_, p. 280. + +Lastly, the fact of the flora of the glacial epoch not having exhibited +any modifications during the long residence of some of its specific +types in Great Britain and elsewhere, is a fact of some importance to +the general theory of evolution, since it shows a higher degree of +stability on the part of these specific types than might perhaps have +been expected, supposing the theory to be true. But I do not see that +this constitutes a difficulty against the theory, when we have so many +other cases of proved transmutation to set against it. For instance, not +to go further afield than this very glacial flora itself, it will be +remembered that in an earlier chapter I selected it as furnishing +specially cogent proof of the transmutation of species. What, then, is +the explanation of so extraordinary a difference between Mr. Carruthers' +views and my own upon this point? I believe the explanation to be that +he does not take a sufficiently wide survey of the facts. + +To begin with, it seems to me that he exaggerates the vicissitudes to +which the species of plants that he calls into evidence have been +exposed while advancing before, and retreating after, the ice. Rather do +I agree with Darwin that "they would not have been exposed during their +long migrations to any great diversity of temperature; and as they all +migrated in a body together, their mutual relations will not have been +much disturbed; hence, in accordance with the principles indicated in +this volume, these forms will not have been liable to much +modification[60]." But, be this matter of opinion as it may, a much +better test is afforded by those numerous cases all the world over, +where arctic species have been left stranded on alpine areas by the +retreat of glaciation; because here there is no room for differences of +opinion as to a "change of environment" having taken place. Not to speak +of climatic differences between arctic and alpine stations, consider +merely the changes which must have taken place in the relations of the +thus isolated species to each other, as well as to those of all the +foreign plants, insects, &c., with which they have long been thrown into +close association. If in _such_ cases no variation or transmutation had +taken place since the glacial epoch, then indeed there would have been a +difficulty of some magnitude. But, by parity of reasoning, whatever +degree of difficulty would have been thus presented is not merely +discharged, but converted into at least an equal degree of +corroboration, when it is found that under such circumstances, in +whatever part of the world they have occurred, some considerable amount +of variation and transmutation has always taken place,--and this in the +animals as well as in the plants. For instance, again to quote Darwin, +"If we compare the present Alpine plants and animals of the several +great European mountain-ranges one with another, though many of the +species remain identically the same, some exist as varieties, some as +doubtful forms or sub-species, and some as distinct yet closely allied +species representing each other on the several ranges[61]." Lastly, if +instead of considering the case of alpine floras, we take the much +larger case of the Old and New World as a whole, we meet with much +larger proofs of the same general facts. For, "during the slowly +decreasing warmth of the Pliocene period, as soon as the species in +common, which inhabited the New and Old Worlds, migrated south of the +Polar Circle, they will have been completely cut off from each other. +This separation, as far as the more temperate productions are concerned, +must have taken place long ages ago. As the plants and animals migrated +southward, they will have become mingled in one great region with the +native American productions, and would have had to compete with them; +and, in the other great region, with those of the Old World. +Consequently we have here everything favourable for much +modification,--for far more modification than with the Alpine +productions left isolated, within a much more recent period, on the +several mountain ranges and on the arctic lands of Europe and N. +America. Hence it has come, that when we compare the now living +productions of the temperate regions of the New and Old Worlds, we find +very few identical species; but we find in every class many forms, which +some naturalists rank as geographical races, and others as distinct +species; and a host of closely allied or representative forms which are +ranked by all naturalists as specifically distinct[62]." + + [60] _Origin of Species_, p. 332. + + [61] _Origin of Species_, p. 332. + + [62] _Ibid_. pp. 333-4. + +In view then of all the above considerations--and especially those +quoted from Darwin--it appears to me that far from raising any +difficulty against the theory of evolution, the facts adduced by Mr. +Carruthers make in favour of it. For when once these facts are taken in +connection with the others above mentioned, they serve to complete the +correspondence between degrees of modification with degrees of time on +the one hand, and with degrees of evolution, of change of environment, +&c., on the other. Or, in the words of Le Conte, when dealing with this +very subject, "It is impossible to conceive a more beautiful +illustration of the principles we have been trying to enforce[63]." + + [63] _Evolution and its Relation to Religious Thought_, p. 194. + + + + +NOTE A TO PAGE 257. + + +The passages in Dr. Whewell's writings, to which allusion is here made, +are somewhat too long to be quoted in the text. But as I think they +deserved to be given, I will here reprint a letter which I wrote to +_Nature_ in March, 1888. + + In his essay on the _Reception of the Origin of Species_, Prof. + Huxley writes:-- + + "It is interesting to observe that the possibility of a fifth + alternative, in addition to the four he has stated, has not dawned + upon Dr. Whewell's mind" (_Life and Lectures of Charles Darwin_, + vol. ii, p. 195). + + And again, in the article _Science_, supplied to _The Reign of + Queen Victoria_, he says:-- + + "Whewell had not the slightest suspicion of Darwin's main theorem, + even as a logical possibility" (p 365). + + Now, although it is true that no indication of such a logical + possibility is to be met with in the _History of the Inductive + Sciences_, there are several passages in the _Bridgewater Treatise_ + which show a glimmering idea of such a possibility. Of these the + following are, perhaps, worth quoting. Speaking of the adaptation + of the period of flowering to the length of a year, he says:-- + + "Now such an adjustment must surely be accepted as a proof of + design, exercised in the formation of the world. Why should the + solar year be so long and no longer? or, this being such a length, + why should the vegetable cycle be exactly of the same length? Can + this be chance?... And, if not by chance, how otherwise could such + a coincidence occur than by an intentional adjustment of these two + things to one another; by a selection of such an organization in + plants as would fit them to the earth on which they were to grow; + by an adaptation of construction to conditions; of the scale of + construction to the scale of conditions? It cannot be accepted as + an explanation of this fact in the economy of plants, that it is + necessary to their existence; that no plants could possibly have + subsisted, and come down to us, except those which were thus + suited to their place on the earth. This is true; but it does not + at all remove the necessity of recurring to design as the origin of + the construction by which the existence and continuance of plants + is made possible. A watch could not go unless there were the most + exact adjustment in the forms and positions of its wheels; yet no + one would accept it as an explanation of the origin of such forms + and positions that the watch would not go if these were other than + they were. If the objector were to suppose that plants were + originally fitted to years of various lengths, and that such only + have survived to the present time as had a cycle of a length equal + to our present year, or one which could be accommodated to it, we + should reply that the assumption is too gratuitous and extravagant + to require much consideration." + + Again, with regard to "the diurnal period," he adds:-- + + "Any supposition that the astronomical cycle has occasioned the + physiological one, that the structure of plants has been brought to + be what it is by the action of external causes, or that such plants + as could not accommodate themselves to the existing day have + perished, would be not only an arbitrary and baseless assumption, + but, moreover, useless for the purposes of explanation which it + professes, as we have noticed of a similar supposition with respect + to the annual cycle." + + Of course these passages in no way make against Mr. Huxley's + allusions to Dr. Whewell's writings in proof that, until the + publication of the _Origin of Species_, the "main theorem" of this + work had not dawned on any other mind, save that of Mr. Wallace. + But these passages show, even more emphatically than total silence + with regard to the principle of survival could have done, the real + distance which at that time separated the minds of thinking men + from all that was wrapped up in this principle. For they show that + Dr. Whewell, even after he had obtained a glimpse of the principle + "as a logical possibility," only saw in it an "arbitrary and + baseless assumption." Moreover, the passages show a remarkable + juxtaposition of the very terms in which the theory of natural + selection was afterwards formulated. Indeed, if we strike out the + one word "intentional" (which conveys the preconceived idea of the + writer, and thus prevented him from doing justice to any + naturalistic view), all the following parts of the above quotations + might be supposed to have been written by a Darwinian. "If not by + chance, how otherwise could such a coincidence occur, than by an + _adjustment_ of these two things to one another; by a _selection_ + of such an organization in plants as would _fit_ them to the earth + on which they were to grow; by an adaptation of _construction_ to + _conditions_; of the _scale_ of construction to the _scale_ of + conditions?" Yet he immediately goes on to say: "If the objector + were to suppose that plants were originally _fitted_ to years of + various lengths, and that such only have _survived_ to the present + time ... _as could be accommodated to it_ (i. e. the actual cycle), + we should reply that the assumption is too gratuitous and + extravagant to require much consideration." Was there ever a more + curious exhibition of failure to perceive the importance of a + "logical possibility"? And this at the very time when another mind + was bestowing twenty years of labour on its "consideration." + + + + +NOTE B TO PAGE 295. + + +Since these remarks were delivered in my lectures as here printed, Mr. +Mivart has alluded to the subject in the following and precisely +opposite sense:-- + + Many of the more noteworthy instincts lead us from manifestations + of purpose directed to the maintenance of the individual, to no + less plain manifestations of a purpose directed to the preservation + of the race. But a careful study of the interrelations and + interdependencies which exist between the various orders of + creatures inhabiting this planet shows us yet a more noteworthy + teleology--the existence of whole orders of such creatures being + directed to the service of other orders in various degrees of + subordination and augmentation respectively. This study reveals to + us, as a fact, the enchainment of all the various orders of + creatures in a hierarchy of activities, in harmony with what we + might expect to find in a world the outcome of a First Cause + possessed of intelligence and will[64]. + + [64] _On Truth_, p. 493. + +Having read this much, a Darwinian is naturally led to expect that Mr. +Mivart is about to offer some examples of instincts or structures +exemplifying what in the margin he calls the "Hierarchy of +Ministrations." Yet the only facts he proceeds to adduce are the +sufficiently obvious facts, that the inorganic world existed before the +organic, plants before herbivorous animals, these before carnivorous, +and so on: that is to say, everywhere the conditions to the occurrence +of any given stage of evolution preceded such occurrence, as it is +obvious that they must, if, as of course it is not denied, the +possibility of such occurrence depended on the precedence of such +conditions. Now, it is surely obvious that such a "hierarchy of +ministrations" as this, far from telling against the theory of natural +selection, is the very thing which tells most in its favour. The fact +that animals, for instance, only appeared upon the earth after there +were plants for them to feed upon, is clearly a necessity of the case, +whether or not there was any design in the matter. Such "ministrations," +therefore, as plant-organisms yield to animal-organisms is just the kind +of ministration that the theory of natural selection requires. Thus far, +then, both the theories--natural selection and super-natural +design--have an equal right to appropriate the facts. But now, if in no +one instance can it be shown that the ministration of plant-life to +animal-life is of such a kind as to subserve the interests of +animal-life without at the same time subserving those of the plant-life +itself, then the fact makes wholly in favour of the naturalistic +explanation of such ministration as appears. If any plants had presented +any characters pointing prospectively to needs of animals without +primarily ministering to their own, then, indeed, there would have been +no room for the theory of natural selection. But as this can nowhere be +alleged, the theory of natural selection finds all the facts to be +exactly as it requires them to be: such ministration as plants yield to +animals becomes so much evidence of natural selection having slowly +formed the animals to appropriate the nutrition which the plants had +previously gathered--and gathered under the previous influence of +natural selection acting on themselves entirely for their own sakes. +Therefore I say it is painfully manifest that "the enchainment of all +the various orders of creatures in a hierarchy of activities," is _not_ +"in harmony with what we might expect to find in a world the outcome of +a First Cause possessed of intelligence and [beneficent] will." So far +as any argument from such "enchainment" reaches, it makes entirely +against the view which Mr. Mivart is advocating. In point of fact, there +is a total absence of any such "ministration" by one "order of +creatures" to the needs of any other order, as the beneficent design +theory would necessarily expect; while such ministration as actually +does obtain is exactly and universally the kind which the naturalistic +theory requires. + +Again, quite independently, and still more recently, Mr. Mivart alluded +in _Nature_ (vol. xli, p. 41) to the difficulty which the apparently +exceptional case of gall-formation presents to the theory of natural +selection. Therefore I supplied (vol. xli, p. 80) the suggestion given +in the text, viz. that although it appears impossible that the sometimes +remarkably elaborate and adaptive structures of galls can be due to +natural selection acting directly on the plants themselves--seeing that +the adaptation has reference to the needs of their parasites--it is +quite possible that the phenomena may be due to natural selection acting +indirectly on the plants, by always preserving those individual insects +(and larvae) the character of whose secretions is such as will best +induce the particular shapes of galls that are required. Several other +correspondents took part in the discussion, and most of them accepted +the above explanation. Mr. T. D. A. Cockerell, however, advanced another +and very ingenious hypothesis, showing that there is certainly one +conceivable way in which natural selection might have produced all the +phenomena of gall-formation by acting directly on the plants +themselves[65]. Subsequently Mr. Cockerell published another paper upon +the subject, stating his views at greater length. The following is the +substance of his theory as there presented:-- + + [65] _Nature_, vol. xli, p. 344. + + Doubtless there were internal plant-feeding larvae before there + were galls: and, indeed, we have geological evidence that boring + insects date very far back indeed. The primitive internal feeders, + then, were miners in the roots, stems, twigs, or leaves, such as + occur very commonly at the present day. These miners are + excessively harmful to plant-life, and form a class of the most + destructive insect-pests known to the farmer: they frequently cause + the death of the whole or part of the plant attacked. Now, we may + suppose that the secretions of certain of these insects caused a + swelling to appear where the larvae lived, and on this excrescence + the larvae fed. It is easy to see that the greater the excrescence, + and the greater the tendency of the larvae to feed upon it, instead + of destroying the vital tissues, the smaller is the amount of harm + to the plant. Now the continued life and vitality of the plant is + beneficial to the larvae, and the larger or more perfect the gall, + the greater the amount of available food. Hence natural selection + will have preserved and accumulated the gall-forming tendencies, as + not only beneficial to the larvae, but as a means whereby the + larvae can feed with least harm to the plant. So far from being + developed for the exclusive benefit of the larvae, it is easy to + see that, allowing a tendency to gall-formation, natural selection + would have developed galls exclusively for the benefit of the + plants, so that they might suffer a minimum of harm from the + unavoidable attacks of insects. + + But here it may be questioned--have we proof that internal feeders + tend to form galls? In answer to this I would point out that + gall-formation is a peculiar feature, and cannot be expected to + arise in every group of internal feeders. But I think we can afford + sufficient proof that wherever it has arisen it has been preserved; + and further, that even the highly complex forms of galls are + evolved from forms so simple that we hesitate to call them galls at + all[66]. + + [66] _Entomologist_, March, 1890. + +The paper then proceeds to give a number of individual cases. No doubt +the principal objection to which Mr. Cockerell's hypothesis is open is +one that was pointed out by Herr Wetterhan, viz. "the much greater +facility afforded to the indirect action through insects, by the +enormously more rapid succession of generations with the latter than +with many of their vegetable hosts--oaks above all[67]." This +difficulty, however, Mr. Cockerell believes maybe surmounted by the +consideration that a growing plant need not be regarded as a single +individual, but rather as an assemblage of such[68]. + + [67] _Nature_, vol. xli, p. 394. + + [68] _Ibid._ vol. xli, pp. 559-560. + + + + +NOTE C TO PAGE 394. + + +The only remarks that Mr. Wallace has to offer on the _pattern of +colours_, as distinguished from a mere _brilliancy of colour_, are added +as an afterthought suggested to him by the late Mr. Alfred Tylor's book +on _Colouration of Animals and Plants_ (1886). But, in the first place, +it appears to me that Mr. Wallace has formed an altogether extravagant +estimate of the value of this work. For the object of the work is to +show, "that diversified colouration follows the chief lines of +structure, and changes at points, such as the joints, where function +changes." Now, in publishing this generalization, Mr. Tylor--who was not +a naturalist--took only a very limited view of the facts. When applied +to the animal kingdom as a whole, the theory is worthless; and even +within the limits of mammals, birds, and insects--which are the classes +to which Mr. Tylor mainly applies it--there are vastly more facts to +negative than to support it. This may be at once made apparent by the +following brief quotation from Prof. Lloyd Morgan:-- + + It can hardly be maintained that the theory affords us any adequate + explanation of the _specific_ colour-tints of the humming-birds, or + the pheasants, or the Papilionidae among butterflies. If, as Mr. + Wallace argues, the immense tufts of golden plumage in the bird of + paradise owe their origin to the fact that they are attached just + above the point where the arteries and nerves for the supply of the + pectoral muscles leave the interior of the body--and the + physiological rationale is not altogether obvious,--are there no + other birds in which similar arteries and nerves are found in a + similar position? Why have these no similar tufts? And why, in the + birds of paradise themselves, does it require four years ere these + nervous and arterial influences take effect upon the plumage? + Finally, one would inquire how the colour is determined and held + constant in each species. The difficulty of the Tylor-Wallace view, + even as a matter of origin, is especially great in those numerous + cases in which the colour is determined by delicate lines, thin + plates, or thin films of air or fluid. Mr. Poulton, who takes a + similar line of argument in his _Colours of Animals_ (p. 326), lays + special stress on the production of _white_ (pp. 201-202). + +As regards the latter point, it may be noticed that not in any part of +his writings, so far as I can find, does Mr. Wallace allude to the +highly important fact of colours in animals being so largely due to +these purely physical causes. Everywhere he argues as if colours were +universally due to pigments; and in my opinion this unaccountable +oversight is the gravest defect in Mr. Wallace's treatment both of the +facts and the philosophy of colouration in the animal kingdom. For +instance, as regards the particular case of sexual colouration, the +oversight has prevented him from perceiving that his theory of +"brilliancy" as due to "a surplus of vital energy," is not so much as +logically possible in what must constitute at least one good half of the +facts to which he applies it--unless he shows that there is some +connection between vital energy and the development of striations, +imprisonment of air-bubbles, &c. But any such connection--so +essentially important for his theory--he does not even attempt to show. +Lastly, and quite apart from these remarkable oversights, even if Mr. +Tylor's hypothesis were as reasonable and well-sustained as it is +fanciful and inadequate, still it could not apply to _sexual_ +colouration: it could apply only to colouration as affected by +physiological functions common to both sexes. Yet it is in order to +furnish a "preferable substitute" for Mr. Darwin's theory of _sexual_ +colouration, that Mr. Wallace adduces the hypothesis in question as one +of "great weight"! In this matter, therefore, I entirely agree with +Poulton and Lloyd Morgan. + + + + +INDEX + + +A. + +Accident, Darwin's use of the word, 334-340; + beauty due to, 408, 409. + +Achromatin, 126-134. + +Acquired characters, _see_ Characters. + +_Acraea eurita_, 328. + +Adaptation, facts of, in relation to theory of natural selection, + 401-403, 411. + +Adaptive characters, _see_ Characters. + +AEsthetic sense in animals, 380-385; + _see_ Beautiful. + +Agassiz, Prof. A., on fauna of the Mammoth cave, 70. + +Alpine plants, 209, 210, 440-442. + +_Amauris niavius_, 328. + +_Amblyornis inornata_, 381-383. + +_Amphioxus_, 137, 138, 145, 146. + +Analogy, 38, 50-65, 176, 177, 347-350. + +Anthropoid, _see_ Apes. + +Antlers, 98-100, 167-169. + +Ants, co-operative instincts of, 268; + leaf-cutting, 332; + keeping aphides, 292. + +Ape, eye of, 75; + _appendix vermiformis_ of, 84-86. + +Apes, ears of, compared with those of man, 88; + muscles of, 77, 82, 83; + feet of, 77, 78; + tail of, compared with that of man, 82-84; + hair of, compared with that of man, 89-91; + teeth of, compared with those of man, 92-94; + flattening of tibiae of, 95, 96. + +Aphides, 292. + +_Appendix vermiformis_ of man compared with that of orang, 84-86. + +_Apteryx_, 68, 69. + +_Archaeopteryx_, 171-173. + +Arctic plants, 209, 210, 440-442. + +Argyll, Duke of, on natural selection, 334-362. + +Aristotle, his idea of scientific method, 1; + on classification, 23, 24. + +Arm, distribution of hair on, in man and apes, 89-92. + +_Arthropoda_, embryology of, 155. + +Artificial selection, analogy of, to natural selection, 295-314; + pictorial representations of products of, 298-312. + +Artiodactyls, 182-191. + +Association, principle of, in aesthetics, 404-407. + +Aster, 129-133. + +Attraction-spheres, 128, 132, 133. + +Australia, fauna of, 204, 205; + thriving of exotic species in, 286; + portrait of wild dog of, 304. + +Azores, 224, 225. + + +B. + +Bacon, Lord, on scientific method, 2. + +_Balanoglossus_, 147, 148. + +_Baptanodon discus_, posterior limb of, 179-181. + +Barriers, in relation to geographical distribution, 216-224. + +Bats, 56, 224, 226, 240. + +Battle, law of, 385, 386. + +Baya-bird, 381. + +Bear, skeleton of, 174; + feet of, 178. + +Beautiful, the, sense of, in animals, 380-385; + standards of, 380-404; + Darwin's explanation of, in organic nature, 379-411; + facts of, in inorganic nature in relation to Darwin's theory of, in + organic, 404; + often determined by natural selection, 406, 407; + absent in many plants and animals, 408; + in nature often accidental, 409-411; + does not exist in organic nature as an end _per se_, 410, 411. + +Bees, co-operative instincts of, 268. + +Beetles, wingless, 68-70; + on oceanic islands, 224, 226, 229, 232. + +Bell, Dr., on natural theology, 412. + +Bell-bird, 396-398. + +_Bembidium_, 233. + +Bermudas, 225-227. + +Biology, ideas of method in, 1-9. + +Birds, ovum of, 124; + embryology of, 151-155; + paleontology of, 163-165, 172, 173; + brain of, 194-197; + as carriers of seed, eggs, and small organisms, 217, 218; + distribution of, 224-240; + aesthetic sense of, 380-385; + courtship of, 380-385. + +_Birgus latro_, 62-65. + +Blood, colour of arterial, 409. + +Boar, _see_ Pig. + +_Bombus lapidarius_, 331. + +Bower-birds, play-houses of, 381-383. + +Boyd-Dawkins, on flattening of early human tibiae, 96. + +Brain, palaeontology of, 194-197. + +British Isles, _see_ Islands. + +Broca, 363. + +Bronn, 363. + +Budding, _see_ Germination. + +Burdon-Sanderson, Prof., on electric organ of skate, 366. + +Butler, Bishop, on argument from ignorance, 41. + +Butterflies, defensive colouring of, 321-329. + + +C. + +Caesalpino, on classification, 24. + +Calf, embryology of, 153. + +Camel, foot of, 187-191. + +Canadian stag, 196, 198, 199. + +Canaries, portraits of, 303; + first mentioned by Gesner, 312, 313. + +Cape de Verde Archipelagoes, fauna of, 228. + +_Carcharias melanopterus_, 149. + +Carruthers, on evolution, 436-442. + +Caterpillars, colours and forms of, 319, 322-326. + +Cattle, portraits of, 311. + +Causation, natural, 402, 413, 414. + +Caves, faunas of dark, 70-72. + +Cell, physiological, and properties of the, 104-134. + +_Cerura vinula_, 325, 326. + +_Cervalces Americanus_, 196, 198, 199. + +_Cervus dicrocerus_, _issiodorensis_, _matheronis_, _pardinensis_, + _Sedgwickii_, _tetraceros_, 168. + +Chalmers, Dr., on natural theology, 412. + +Chameleons, 317. + +Characters, as adaptive, 273-276, 286-293, 349; + as specific, 274-276, 286-295; + as congenital and acquired, 274-276. + +_Chasmorhynchus niveus_, and _C. tricarunculatus_, 396-398. + +_Chelydra serpentina_, anterior limb of, 179-181. + +Chick, embryology of, 153. + +Chimpanzee, _see_ Apes. + +Chlorophyll, 408. + +_Chondracanthus cornutus_, 122. + +Cirripedes, 430. + +Classification, 23-49; + of organic nature by Genesis and Leviticus, 23; + artificial and natural, 24-26; + empirical rules of, 33-40; + Darwin on, 35, 36, 39,40; + form of, a nexus or tree, 29-32; + of organic forms like that of languages, 32; + single characters in relation to, 37; + aggregates of characters in relation to, 35-37; + adaptive and non-adaptive characters in relation to, 34, 35, 38, 39; + chains of affinities in relation to, 39-40; + biological differs from astronomical, 43. + +Cockerell, on vegetable galls, 447, 448. + +Colours, of plants and animals in relation to the theory of natural + selection, 317-332; + in relation to the theory of sexual selection, 391, 392, 394-396, + 408-410, 448-450. + +Colouring, _see_ Recognition marks, Protective, Seasonal, Warning, and + Mimicry. + +Congenital characters, _see_ Characters. + +Conjugation, of Protozoa, 115-117. + +Continuity, principle of, in nature, 15-21. + +Contrivance, Darwin's use of the word, 281. + +Co-operation, mutual, of species alleged, 445-448. + +Co-operative instincts, due to natural selection, 267, 269. + +Cope, Professor, his table of geological formations, 163, 164; + his table of palaeontological development of feet, vertebral column, and + brain, 197. + +Correlation of growth, 357-362. + +_Cossonidae_, 233. + +Courtship, _see_ Sexual Selection. + +Crabs, 62-65, 139. + +Cuttle-fish, 317. + +Cuvier, on method in natural history, 3-4; + on monkeys, 429. + +Cyst, _see_ Encystation. + + +D. + +Darwin, Charles, his influence on ideas of method, 1-9; + on classification, 35, 36, 39, 40; + on vestigial characters in man, 77, 86, 87, 92; + on imperfection of geological record, 165, and Appendix; + on means of dispersal, 216, 218; + on geographical distribution, 218, 219; + on fauna of the Galapagos Archipelago, 227, 228; + on natural selection, 252, 253, 255, 256, 286, 375, 376; + his use of such words as 'accident,' 'fortuitous,' 'purpose,' + 'contrivance,' &c., 281, 334-340; + on sexual selection, 379-400. + +Darwin, Erasmus, his theory of evolution, 253. + +De Blainville, on the theory of descent, 258. + +De Candolle, on classification, 34. + +Deer, 98, 99, 167-169, 187, 191, 196, 198, 199. + +Degeneration, 269, 270, 342. + +Delamination, 139. + +_Diadema euryta_, 330. + +Diaster, 129-133. + +Dingo, _see_ Dog. + +_Dinornis_, 60, 61. + +_Diptera_ mimicking _Hymenoptera_, 329. + +Dog, dentition of, 39; + Dingo, 304; + domesticated varieties of, 305, 307; + hairless, 307; + skulls of, 307. + +Duck, logger-headed, 68. + +Dugong, eye of, 75. + + +E. + +Eagle, eye of, 75. + +Ear, of whales, 65; + vestigial features of human, 76, 86-89; + of man and apes compared, 88. + +Eaton, Rev. A. E., on wingless insects, 70. + +_Echinodermata_, 125-127, 138, 155. + +Ectoderm, 137-142. + +Egg, _see_ Ovum. + +Eimer, 363. + +_Elaps fulvius_ imitated by non-venomous snakes, 330. + +Electric organs, 365-373. + +Elephant, foot of, 185, 186; + rate of propagation of, 261, 262. + +Elk, 196-198, 199. + +Embryo, human, _see_ Man. + +Embryogeny, _see_ Ontogeny. + +Embryology, 98-155. + +Embryos, comparative series of, 152, 153. + +_Encyclopaedia Britannica_, eighth ed., on instinct, 289-291. + +Encystation of Protozoa, 115. + +Endoderm, 137-142. + +Equatorial plate, 129. + +_Equus_, _see_ Horse. + +_Erythrolamprus venustissimus_, 330. + +Evolution, organic, fact of, Section I; + Method of, Section II; + ideas upon, prior to Darwin, 253-258; + divergent, 266, 267. + +Ewart, Professor Cossar, on electric organ of skate, 364, 367. + +Existence, _see_ Struggle for. + +Eye, of octopus, 57, 58, 347-350; + absence of, in dark cave animals, 70-72; + nictitating membrane of, 74, 75; + development of, from cutaneous nerve-ending, 352-354. + + +F. + +Feet, 51-59, 66, 77-80, 174-192, 197. + +Fertilization of ova, 127, 128; + of flowers by insects, 406. + +Fish, embryology of, 143-155; + palaeontology of, 163, 165, 169-171; + brain of, 194-197; + distribution of, 224-246; + flying, 355. + +Fission, reproduction by, 106, 107. + +Flat fish, 317. + +Float, _see_ Swim-bladder. + +Flowers, fertilization of, by insects, 406. + +Fly, imitating a wasp, 329. + +Flying-fish, and squirrels, 355. + +_Foraminifera_, 346. + +Forbes, H. O., on scapulo-coracoid bones of _Dinornis_, 60. + +Fortuitous, Darwin's use of the word, 340. + +Fossils, _see_ Palaeontology. + +Frogs, 317. + + +G. + +Galapagos Islands, 227-231, 236, 237. + +_Galeus_, eye of, 75. + +Galls, vegetable, 293-295, 446-448. + +Gastraea, 137-140. + +_Gastrophysema_, 138. + +Gastrulation, 137, 140. + +Gegenbaur, 147, 181. + +Gemmation, reproduction by, 106, 107, 110, 111. + +Generalization, 5. + +Generalized types, 33. + +Genesis, classification of organic nature in, 23. + +Genial tubercle, 96. + +Geographical distribution, 204-248; + _see_ Glacial period, Barriers Transport of organisms, Oceanic + islands, &c. + +Geology, record of imperfect, 156-160, and Appendix; + _see_ Palaeontology. + +Germs, prophetic, 272, 351-362. + +Gesner, on classification, 24; + on canaries, 313. + +Gill-arches, 146, 147, 150, 151. + +Gill-slits, 146, 147, 150-153. + +Gills, of young salamanders, 102; + origin of, in embryo, 144; + of fish, 150, 152. + +Giraffe, neck of, in relation to Lamarck's theory, 254. + +Glacial periods, effects of, on distribution of plants and animals, + 209, 210, and Appendix. + +Goose, Frizzled, portrait of, 304. + +Gorilla, _see_ Apes. + +Gray, Professor Asa, 337 + +Great-toe, in man and apes, 79-81. + +Grouse, 317-319 + +Growth, correlation of, 357, 362. + +_Gymnotus_, 365, 367. + + +H. + +Haeckel, on analogy between species and languages, 32; + on reproduction as discontinuous growth, 105, 106; + his ideal primitive vertebrate, 143, 144. + +Hair, vestigial characters of, in man, 89-92. + +Hales, 3. + +Haller, 3. + +Hamilton, Sir William, 272. + +Hands, 51-55, 66, 80-82, 174-192. + +Hare, 318, 319. + +Hartmann, on flattening of early human tibiae, 96. + +Harvey, on Lord Bacon's writings, 2. + +Heart, development of, 154. + +Heilprin, on skulls of deer, 198, 199; + on fossil shells, 201, 202. + +Hen, ovum of, 122. + +Heredity, in relation to classification, 28-31; + in relation to embryology, 98-102; + chromatin-fibres in relation to, 134; + in relation to theories of organic evolution, 253-255, 260-264, 377. + +Hermit-crabs, 62-65, 288, 289. + +_Heteromera_, 233. + +Hilgendorf, on shells of _Planorbis_, 201. + +_Hipparion_, 191, 192. + +Hippopotamus, foot of, 187. + +Hog, _see_ Pig. + +Homology, 38, 50-65, 176, 177, 347-350, 357-359. + +Homopterous insect, imitating leaf-cutting ants, 331, 332. + +Hooker, Sir Joseph, on flora of St. Helena, 234. + +Horns, 98-100, 167-169. + +Horse, eye of, 75; + limb-bones of, 176, 177, 186, 188-192; + teeth of, 189-191; + portraits of domesticated breeds of, 309. + +Human, _see_ Man. + +_Humerus_, perforations of, in quadrumana and man, 94, 95. + +Humming-birds, restricted to the New World, 211. + +Hunter, 3; + on ear of whale, 65. + +Huxley, Prof., on mechanical selection, 283; + on age of the earth, 435, 436; + on Dr. Whewell, 243. + +Hyatt, on shells of _Planorbis_, 201. + +_Hydra_, 111, 122. + +_Hyrax_, foot of, 185, 186. + + +I. + +Ignorance, argument from, 41, 42, 49. + +Illative Sense, 6. + +Imitative colours, 317-323, 326-332. + +Infant, feet of, 78, 79; + grasping power of, 81. + +Infertility, inter-specific, in relation to natural selection, 374-376. + +Insects, wingless, 68-70; + in primary formations, 163, Appendix; + on oceanic islands, 224-238; + in relation to galls, 293-295, 446-448; + defensive colouring of, 321-332; + fertilizing flowers, 406. + +Instincts, always of primary use to species presenting them, 286-293. + +Intercrossing, in relation to natural selection, 374-376. + +Inutility of specific characters, in relation to natural selection, + 374-376. + +Islands, oceanic, 224-237; + British, 238-241. + + +J. + +Japan, hairless dog of, 101. + +Jelly-fish, 119, 120. + + +K. + +_Kallima_, 323. + +Karyokinesis, 112-114, 128-134. + +Kepler, 272. + +Kerguelen Island, flightless insects of, 70. + +Kropotkin, Prince, on co-operative instincts, 269. + + +L. + +_Lagopus mutus_, 317, 318. + +Lamarck, his method in natural history, 4; + his theory of evolution, 253-256. + +Lamprey, 148. + +Languages, classification of, resembles that of organic forms, 32. + +Lankester, E. Ray, on karyokinesis, 129, 130. + +Leaf insect, 322. + +Le Conte, on geological succession of animal classes, 164, 165; + on types of tails, 169-173; + on fossil shells of _Planorbis_, 201; + his work on the relation of the theory of evolution to religious + thought, 412. + +_Leptalis_, 328. + +_Leuculmis echinus_, 122. + +Leviticus, classification of organic nature in, 23. + +Life, origin of, 15. + +Linnaeus, on method in natural history, 3; + on classification, 26, 35-40. + +Lion, skeleton of, 175; + feet of, 178. + +Lizard, heart and gill-arches of, 150. + +Lloyd Morgan, 273, 449, 450. + +Lungs, development of, 154, 354. + +Lyell, Sir Charles, on classification, 32; + on uniformitarianism, 258; + on rational species, 344; + on geological record, 420, 435, 439. + + +M. + +Madeira, wingless beetles of, 68-70; + peculiar beetles of, 226, 227. + +Mammals, ovum of, 120-124; + embryology of, 151-155; + palaeontology of, 163, 165, 167, 180-199; + limbs of, 174-178, 182-199; + brain of, 194-199; + of Australia and New Zealand, 204, 205; + distribution of, on islands, 224-240. + +Mammoth cave, fauna of, 70-72. + +Man, nictitating membrane of, 75; + vestigial muscles of, 76, 77, 82, 83; + tail of, compared with that of apes, 82-84; + hair of, compared with that of apes, 89-92; + teeth of, compared with those of apes, 92-94; + perforation of humerus of, 94, 95; + flattening of ancient tibiae of, 95, 96; + embryology of, 119, 153; + hand of, 54; + arm of, 90, 91; + limb-bones of, 176, 177; + palaeontology of, 163, 165; + brain of, 194, 195; + Mr. Syme on, 346, 347. + +Marsh, on palaeontology of the horse, 188-190. + +Matthew, Patrick, on natural selection, 257. + +Mesoderm, 142. + +_Mesohippus_, 189, 192. + +Metaphyta, 104, 105. + +Metazoa, 104. + +Method, ideas of, in natural history, 1-9; + of organic evolution, 252-261. + +Meyer, Professor Ludwig, on helix of the human ear, 86. + +Mimicry, 320-322. + +Ministration, mutual, of species alleged, 445, 446. + +_Miohippus_, 189. + +Mivart, St. George, on eye of octopus, 57, 58, 348, 349; + on incipient organs, 362; + on mutual ministration of species, 445, 446. + +Mollusca, shells of, 19, 199-203; + eye of, 57, 58; + embryology of, 155; + palaeontology of, 163, 165. + +Monkeys, why all, do not become men, 342-344. + +_Monotremata_, 205. + +Morgan, _see_ Lloyd Morgan. + +Morphology, 50-97. + +Mule, portrait of, 309. + +Multicellular organisms, 104. + +Multiplication, _see_ Reproduction. + + +N. + +Naegeli, Prof., 337, 367. + +Natural History, ideas of method in, 1-9. + +Natural, interpretations as opposed to super-natural, 13-15; + causation, 13-15. + +Natural selection, 252-378, 401-410; + Wells, Matthew, and Whewell on, 257, 258, 443-445; + statement of theory of, 256-284; + of evidences of, 285-332; + of criticisms of, 333-378; + relation of theory of, to religious thought, 401-410; + preserves types, 264-267; + cessation and reversal of, 270, 342; + errors touching theory of, 270-284, 332-364; + definition of, 275-376; + antecedent standing of theory of, 277-284; + Prof. Owen on, 333, 334; + Duke of Argyll on, 334-362; + Mr. Syme on, 340, 341, 345; + need not always make for improvement, 341-347; + homology and analogy in relation to, 347-350; + often determines beauty, 406, 407; + in relation to the formation of galls, 293-295. 446-448. + +Nature, organic, 17; + inorganic, 1, 17, 18. + +_Nauplius_, 138. + +Neumayr, 19. + +New Zealand, fauna of, 68, 204, 205; + thriving of exotic species in, 286. + +Newman, on the Illative Sense, 6. + +Newton, his idea of scientific method, 6. + +Nictitating membrane, 74, 75. + +Notochord, 146. + +Novum Organon, the, on scientific method, 2. + +Nucleus, 105, 112-134. + +Nucleus-spindle, 129. + +Nut-hatch, Syrian, ornamented nests of, 381. + + +O. + +Objective methods, 6. + +Oceanic islands, _see_ Islands. + +Octopus, eye of, 57, 58, 348-350. + +_[OE]dicnemus crepitans_, 320. + +Ontogeny, as recapitulation of phylogeny, 98-104. + +Orang Outang, _see_ Apes. + +_Oredon Culbertsoni_, 167. + +Origin of Species, the, influence exercised by, on ideas of method, 1-9 + +_Orohippus_, 189. + +Otaria, eye of, 75. + +Ovum, 113-142; + human, 120-133; + amoeboid movements of young, 121-123; + segmentation of, 134, 135. + +Owen, on ear of whale, 65; + on natural selection, 333, 334. + +Owl, eye of, 75. + + +P. + +Paddle, _see_ Whale, and _Baptanodon discus_. + +_Pagurus bernhardus_, 64. + +Pain, in relation to the theory of evolution, 417. + +Palaeontology, 159-203; + general testimony of, 156-165; + testimony of, in particular cases, 165-203; + consideration of objections to theory of evolution founded on grounds + of, 156-165, and Appendix. + +_Palaeotherium_, 190, 191. + +Paley, on natural theology, 98, 412. + +_Paludina_, successive forms of, 19. + +Panama, Isthmus of, 219. + +_Panniculus carnosis_, 77. + +_Papilio merope_, 330. + +Parasites, of animals, devoid of beauty, 408. + +Parsimony, law of, 272. + +Parthenogenesis, 119. + +Partridges, 319. + +Peacock, tail of, 378; + courtship of, 383. + +Peckham, Mr. and Mrs., on courtship of spiders, 388-390. + +Perissodactyls, 182-192. + +_Petromyzon marinus_, 148. + +_Phenacodus primaevus_, 184, 185. + +Phylogeny, _see_ Ontogeny. + +Physiological selection, 376. + +Pig, embryology of, 153; + feet of, 176, 187; + portraits of wild and domesticated, 312. + +Pigeons, portraits of, 298, 299; + feather-footed, 359. + +Pilot fish, 289. + +_Planorbis_, transmutations of, 200, 201. + +Pleasure and pain, in relation to the theory of evolution, 417. + +_Plica semilunaris_, 75. + +_Pliohippus_, 189. + +Polar bear, skeleton of, 174; + feet of, 178. + +Polar bodies, 125, 126. + +Polar star, 129. + +Polyps, 114. + +Porpoises, 24, 25, 50. + +Poulton, E. B., on warning colours, 325, 326; + on mimicry, 331, 332; + sexual selection, 400, 401, 449, 450. + +Poultry, portraits of, 300-302. + +Pronucleus, 126-128. + +Prophetic types, 272, 351-362. + +_Prophysema primordiale_, 140. + +Protective colouring, 317-323. + +_Protohippus_, 189. + +Protozoa, 104. + +Ptarmigan, 317, 318. + +_Pterodactyl_, wing of, 56. + +Purpose, Darwin's use of the word, 281, 340. + +Puss moth, larva of, 325, 326. + +Python, 66, 67. + + +Q. + +Quadrumana, muscles of, 76, 82, 83; + perforations of humeri of, 94, 95; + hair on phalanges of, 91. + + +R. + +Rabbit, embryology of, 153; + multiplication of, in Australia, 286; + portraits of wild and domesticated breeds of, 308; + protective colouring of, 319, 320. + +Radiate form, beauty of, 408, 409. + +_Raia radiata_, and _batis_, 367-371. + +Rats, species of, restricted to Old and New Worlds, 212; + British and Norwegian, 285, 286. + +Rattle-snake, tail of, 289. + +Recognition marks, 271-273. + +Religion, in relation to Darwinism, 401-418. + +Reproduction, different methods of, 106-117; + essence of sexual, 110; + foreshadowing of sexual in unicellular organisms, 115-117. + +Reptiles, wing of flying, 56; + rudimentary limbs of, 67; + nictitating membrane of, 75; + branchial arches of, 150; + embryology of, 152; + palaeontology of, 163, 165, 178-180; + brain of, 194-197; + distribution of, 224-240. + +_Rhinoceros_, foot of, 186. + +Robinson, Dr L., on grasping power of an infant's hands, 80-82. + +Rudimentary organs, 65-97. + +Ruminants, palaeontology of, 167, 168. + + +S. + +Sacrum of man, compared with that of apes, 82-84. + +_Sagitta_, 138. + +Salamander, young of terrestrial, living in water, 102; + embryology of, 152. + +Sandwich Islands, 234-237. + +Science, method of, 1-9. + +Sclater, W. L., on a case of mimicry, 331, 332. + +Scorpion in Silurian formation, 163. + +Sea, lamprey, 148; + destructive agency of the, 423, 424. + +Seal, 51, 52, 75. + +Seasonal changes of colour, 317-319. + +Selection, value, 275; + by physical processes, 282, 283, 335. _See also_ Natural selection, + Artificial selection, Sexual selection, Physiological selection. + +Sentiency, in relation to the theory of evolution, 417. + +Sex, difference of, restricted to Metazoa and Metaphyta, 105. + +Sexual reproduction, _see_ Reproduction. + +Sexual selection, theory of, 277, 378-410; + statement and evidences of, 379-391; + criticisms of, 391-400; + includes law of battle with that of charming, 385, 386; + in relation to religious thought, 411-418; + Tylor's theory substituted for, by Wallace, 449, 450. + +Shark, eye of, 75; + man-eating, 149; + and pilot-fish, 289. + +Sheep, limb-bones of, 176, 177; + portraits of, 310. + +Shells, of crabs, 62-64; + palaeontology of mollusks, 199-203; + land on oceanic islands, 224-240. + +Silliman's Journal, on fauna of the Mammoth Cave, 70. + +Skate, electric organ of, 364-373. + +Skull, palaeontology of, 194-199; + of bull-dog compared with that of deer-hound, 307. + +Slavonia, Tertiary deposits of, 18, 19. + +Species, not eternal, but either created or evolved, 13; + named as such through absence of intermediate forms, 18-20; + groups of, in classification, 20, + and appearing suddenly in geological formations, 427-432, 437-440; + origin of, coincide in space and time with pre-existing and allied + species, 22; + geographical distribution of, 204-248; + extinct and living allied on same areas, 213; + life of, preserved by natural selection, 264-270; + not room for more than one rational, 344; + characters of, 274-276, 286-295, 374-376; + inter-sterility of allied, 374-376; + mutual ministration of alleged, 445, 446. + +Specific characters, _see_ Characters. + +Speculation, method of, 3-9. + +Spencer, Herbert, on reproduction as discontinuous growth, 105, 106; + on use-inheritance, 253-256; + his failure to conceive the idea of natural selection, 257. + +Spermatozoa, 123, 126-128. + +Spiders, in primary formations, 163; + courtship of, 388, 389. + +Sponges, 122, 139, 140. + +Spontaneous, Darwin's use of the term, 340. + +Spores, 115. + +Squirrels, flying, 355. + +Sterility, _see_ Infertility. + +St. Helena, 231-234, 236-237. + +St. Hilaire, 4. + +Stick-insect, 322. + +Stoat, 318. + +_Strombus accipilrinus_, 201. + +_Strombus Leidy_, 201. + +Struggle for existence, 259-270. + +Subjective, methods, 6. + +Survival of the fittest, 335. _See also_ Natural selection. + +Swim-bladder of fish, 154, 354. + +Symbiosis, 269. + +Syme, David, on the theory of natural selection, 340, 341. + + +T. + +Tail, types of, in fish and birds, 169-173. + +Tasmanian wolf, dentition of, 39. + +Teeth, of Tasmanian wolf, 39; + molar, of man, compared with those of apes, 92-94; + palaeontology of horses', 189-191. + +Temperature, sense of, probable origin of that of sight, 353, 354. + +Tennyson, 266. + +Tibiae, flattening of, 95, 96. + +Tissue-cells, _see_ Cell. + +Toes, 79, 80; _see also_ Feet. + +Tomes, C. S., on molar teeth of man and apes, 94. + +_Torpedo_, 365, 367. + +Tortoise, embryology of, 152, 154. + +_Toxopneustes variegatus_, and _T. lividus_, 122. + +Transport of organisms, means of, 207, 216-218. + +Tribal fitness, as distinguished from individual, 267-269. + +Trout, ovum of, 122. + +Turtle, eye of, 75. + +Tylor, Alfred, on colouration of animals, 448-450. + +Type, preserved by natural selection, 264-269; + improvement of, by natural selection, 269, 270; + prophetic, 272, 351-362. + +Types, as simple and generalized, 33. + + +U. + +Unicellular organisms, 104. + +_Uraster_, 138. + +Utility, of specific characters, 274, 275; + of incipient characters, 351-363; + of electric organs, 365-373. + + +V. + +Variation, in relation to natural selection, 263, 335-340, 377. + +Verification, 6-9. + +Vertebral column, embryology of 145, 146; + palaeontology of, 192, 193. + +Vertebrated animal, ideal primitive, 143, 144; + embryology of, 143, 155. + +_Vespa vulgaris_, 331. + +Vestigial organs, 65-97. + +_Volucella inans_, and _V. bombylans_, 329. + + +W. + +Wagner, Moritz, on geographical distribution, 216. + +Wallace, A. R., on origin of species as coincident in time and space + with pre-existing and allied species, 22; + on wingless insects, 70; + on absence of hair from human back, and function of on arms of + orang, 89; + on geographical distribution, 207, 231, 232, 233, 243; + on natural selection, 256; + on recognition marks, 271-273; + on alleged deductive consequences of the natural selection theory, + 273-276; + his theory of warning colours, 323, 324; + on sexual selection, 391-400, 450; + his principal defect in treating of animal colouration, 449, 450. + +Warning colours, 323-326. + +Wasp, imitated by a fly, 329. + +Water-cress, multiplication of, in New Zealand, 286. + +Weevils, on St. Helena, 232. + +Weismann, his theory of heredity, 130, 134. + +Wells, Dr., on natural selection, 257. + +Wetterhan, Prof., on vegetable galls, 448. + +Whales, 38, 50, 53, 54, 65, 180. + +Whewell, on natural selection, 257, 258, 443-445. + +Wings, 54-56, 60, 61, 68-70, 355. + +Wolf, Tasmanian, dentition of, 34. + +Wood, John, on vestigial muscles in man, 77. + +Woodward, on fossil cirripedes, 431. + +Woolner, on the human ear, 86. + +Worms, embryology of, 155. + +Wyman, Prof., on the great toe of human embryo, 79, 80. + + +Z. + +_Zona pellucida_, 121. + + +--------------------------------------------------------------+ + | | + | Transcriber's Notes and Errata | + | | + | The following words were found in both hyphenated and | + | unhyphenated forms in the text. The number of instances is | + | given in parentheses after each word. | + | | + | |deer-hound (2) |deerhound (1) | | + | |fresh-water (13) |freshwater (1) | | + | |inter-relations (1) |interrelations (1) | | + | |re-action (1) |reaction (1) | | + | |sea-weed (7) |seaweed (1) | | + | |super-natural (2) |supernatural (24) | | + | |wood-cut (3) |woodcut (3) | | + | |wood-cuts (4) |woodcuts (1) | | + | | + | There were 9 instances of 'larvae' and 3 instances of | + | 'larvae'. | + | | + | The following typographical errors were corrected: | + | | + | |Error |Correction | | + | | | | | + | |arboresent |arborescent | | + | |the |The | | + | |dicussion |discussion | | + | | + | In the index, the page entry for "Lyell, Sir Charles ... on | + | geological record" was changed from '420' to '422'. | + | | + | Also, the page entry for "Natural selection ... definition | + | of" was changed from '275-376' to '275-276'. | + +--------------------------------------------------------------+ + + + + + +End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Darwin, and After Darwin (Vol. 1 and +3, of 3), by George John Romanes + +*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK DARWIN *** + +***** This file should be named 24800.txt or 24800.zip ***** +This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: + http://www.gutenberg.org/2/4/8/0/24800/ + +Produced by Marilynda Fraser-Cunliffe, LN Yaddanapudi and +the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at +http://www.pgdp.net + + +Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions +will be renamed. + +Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no +one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation +(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without +permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, +set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to +copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to +protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project +Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you +charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you +do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the +rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose +such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and +research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do +practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is +subject to the trademark license, especially commercial +redistribution. + + + +*** START: FULL LICENSE *** + +THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE +PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK + +To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free +distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work +(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project +Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project +Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at +http://gutenberg.org/license). + + +Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works + +1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to +and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property +(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all +the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy +all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession. +If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the +terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or +entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. + +1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be +used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who +agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few +things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works +even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See +paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement +and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. See paragraph 1.E below. + +1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation" +or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the +collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an +individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are +located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from +copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative +works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg +are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project +Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by +freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of +this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with +the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by +keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project +Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others. + +1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern +what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in +a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check +the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement +before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or +creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project +Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning +the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United +States. + +1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: + +1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate +access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently +whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the +phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project +Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, +copied or distributed: + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + +1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived +from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is +posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied +and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees +or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work +with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the +work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 +through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the +Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or +1.E.9. + +1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted +with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution +must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional +terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked +to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the +permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. + +1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this +work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. + +1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this +electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without +prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with +active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project +Gutenberg-tm License. + +1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, +compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any +word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or +distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than +"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version +posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org), +you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a +copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon +request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other +form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. + +1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, +performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works +unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. + +1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing +access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided +that + +- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from + the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method + you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is + owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he + has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the + Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments + must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you + prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax + returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and + sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the + address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to + the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." + +- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies + you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he + does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm + License. You must require such a user to return or + destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium + and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of + Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any + money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the + electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days + of receipt of the work. + +- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free + distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set +forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from +both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael +Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the +Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. + +1.F. + +1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable +effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread +public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm +collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain +"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or +corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual +property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a +computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by +your equipment. + +1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right +of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project +Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all +liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal +fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT +LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE +PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE +TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE +LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR +INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH +DAMAGE. + +1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a +defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can +receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a +written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you +received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with +your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with +the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a +refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity +providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to +receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy +is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further +opportunities to fix the problem. + +1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth +in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER +WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO +WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. + +1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied +warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. +If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the +law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be +interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by +the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any +provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. + +1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the +trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone +providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance +with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, +promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, +harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, +that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do +or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm +work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any +Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause. + + +Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm + +Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of +electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers +including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists +because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from +people in all walks of life. + +Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the +assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's +goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will +remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure +and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. +To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation +and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 +and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org. + + +Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive +Foundation + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit +501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the +state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal +Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification +number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at +http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent +permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. + +The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. +Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered +throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at +809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email +business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact +information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official +page at http://pglaf.org + +For additional contact information: + Dr. Gregory B. Newby + Chief Executive and Director + gbnewby@pglaf.org + + +Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation + +Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide +spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of +increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be +freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest +array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations +($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt +status with the IRS. + +The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating +charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United +States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a +considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up +with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations +where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To +SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any +particular state visit http://pglaf.org + +While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we +have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition +against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who +approach us with offers to donate. + +International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make +any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from +outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. + +Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation +methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other +ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. +To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate + + +Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. + +Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm +concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared +with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project +Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. + + +Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. +unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily +keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. + + +Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: + + http://www.gutenberg.org + +This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, +including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to +subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. |
